Selected quad for the lemma: grace_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
grace_n faith_n justification_n sanctification_n 4,477 5 10.0495 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A49183 An apology for the ministers who subscribed only unto the stating of the truths and errours in Mr. William's book shewing, that the Gospel which they preach, is the old everlasting Gospel of Christ, and vindicating them from the calumnies, wherewith they (especially the younger sort of them) have been unjustly aspersed by the letter from a minister in the city, to a minister in the countrey. Lorimer, William, d. 1721. 1694 (1694) Wing L3073; ESTC R22599 321,667 222

There are 78 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

church_n or_o rome_n and_o be_v in_o it_o and_o hold_v by_o some_o of_o its_o bishop_n at_o this_o day_n and_o we_o know_v the_o possibility_n or_o impossibility_n of_o the_o thing_n have_v be_v matter_n of_o not_o dispute_v among_o their_o schoolman_n witness_v vasque●_n in_o 1●_n 2dae_o dispur_n 206_o 207._o suarez_n l._n 2._o degratiâ_fw-la cap._n 22_o 23._o becan_n in_o summâ_fw-la theolog._n partis_fw-la 2dae_o part_n 1._o tract_n 4._o de_fw-la justificat_fw-la cathol_n cap._n 3._o q._n 5._o §_o 26._o bezant_n duval_n &_o meratius_n if_o our_o author_n please_v to_o consult_v those_o popish_a schoolman_n he_o may_v find_v some_o argument_n that_o may_v be_v of_o some_o use_n to_o he_o and_o may_v help_v he_o to_o persuade_v the_o people_n to_o believe_v that_o god_n may_v forgive_v they_o their_o sin_n before_o there_o be_v any_o save_a change_n of_o their_o heart_n and_o any_o holy_a seed_n or_o principle_n or_o grace_n put_v into_o they_o or_o any_o gracious_a disposition_n or_o qualification_n wrought_v in_o they_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o people_n may_v if_o they_o please_v go_v on_o to_o drink_v in_o that_o pelagian_a popish_a and_o arminian_n doctrine_n take_v it_o upon_o our_o author_n word_n to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o pure_a christian_a religion_n and_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o free_a grace_n without_o good_a work_n and_o holy_a qualification_n or_o any_o thing_n that_o look_v like_o they_o but_o for_o our_o part_n we_o declare_v that_o we_o be_v for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n in_o the_o point_n of_o a_o real_a holy_a change_n and_o holy_a qualification_n before_o justification_n and_o can_v but_o prefer_v it_o before_o that_o pelagian_a opinion_n which_o some_o people_n be_v so_o fond_a of_o and_o they_o must_v not_o expect_v that_o ever_o we_o will_v humour_v they_o in_o that_o matter_n unless_o our_o author_n will_v solid_o answen_v our_o argument_n and_o give_v we_o better_a argument_n for_o his_o opinion_n than_o we_o have_v here_o give_v for_o we_o as_o for_o what_o he_o say_v to_o that_o purpose_n in_o his_o letter_n we_o can_v therein_o find_v nothing_o of_o any_o weight_n as_o r._n in_o page_n 9_o we_o say_v not_o quoth_v he_o that_o there_o be_v a_o actual_a partake_n of_o christ_n fullness_n of_o grace_n till_o we_o be_v in_o he_o by_o faith_n though_o this_o faith_n be_v also_o give_v we_o on_o christ_n behalf_n phil._n 1.29_o and_o we_o believe_v through_o grace_n act_v 18.27_o thus_o he_o argue_v to_o prove_v that_o all_o the_o grace_n we_o receive_v from_o christ_n come_v from_o our_o be_v unite_v to_o he_o by_o faith_n and_o so_o that_o we_o can_v actual_o partake_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n before_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n by_o faith_n now_o if_o this_o be_v so_o we_o demand_v of_o he_o concern_v this_o be_v in_o christ_n by_o faith_n or_o which_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n this_o union_n with_o christ_n by_o faith_n either_o it_o be_v effect_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n or_o without_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o mere_a power_n of_o nature_n not_o the_o second_o to_o wit_n without_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o mere_a power_n of_o nature_n for_o 1._o that_o be_v rank_a pelagianism_n or_o semipelagianism_n at_o least_o 2._o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o what_o he_o say_v in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o the_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o come_v to_o be_v in_o christ_n be_v give_v we_o on_o christ_n behalf_n and_o that_o we_o believe_v through_o grace_n the_o first_o than_o be_v that_o which_o he_o do_v and_o must_v choose_v to_o say_v to_o wit_n that_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n by_o faith_n be_v effect_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o then_o it_o be_v self-evident_a that_o that_o grace_n of_o christ_n which_o effect_n faith_n in_o we_o and_o the_o union_n with_o christ_n by_o faith_n be_v before_o faith_n and_o the_o union_n by_o faith_n because_o the_o cause_n always_o be_v and_o must_v be_v in_o order_n of_o nature_n before_o the_o effect_n and_o further_o if_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n by_o which_o we_o believe_v first_o in_o he_o and_o be_v unite_v to_o he_o be_v before_o that_o faith_n and_o union_n by_o faith_n than_o we_o receive_v that_o grace_n from_o christ_n before_o we_o be_v in_o christ_n by_o faith_n and_o we_o receive_v it_o to_o this_o end_n that_o our_o faculty_n may_v be_v fit_v and_o prepare_v yea_o and_o powerful_o help_v actual_o to_o believe_v and_o by_o believe_v to_o be_v actual_o unite_v unto_o christ_n thus_o our_o author_n be_v catch_v in_o a_o net_n of_o his_o own_o make_n he_o blow_v hot_a and_o cold_a out_o of_o the_o same_o mouth_n and_o contradict_v himself_o most_o foul_o in_o say_v that_o we_o do_v not_o actual_o partake_v of_o christ_n fullness_n till_o we_o be_v in_o he_o by_o faith_n and_o yet_o that_o we_o have_v that_o faith_n and_o union_n by_o faith_n from_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o cause_n thereof_o for_o certain_o that_o grace_n be_v a_o part_n of_o christ_n fullness_n and_o if_o he_o give_v it_o we_o and_o we_o receive_v it_o from_o he_o for_o the_o produce_v of_o faith_n and_o union_n with_o he_o by_o faith_n than_o we_o actual_o partake_v of_o his_o fullness_n before_o we_o be_v in_o he_o by_o faith_n that_o people_n therefore_o may_v no_o more_o be_v puzzle_v with_o such_o self-confounding_a and_o contradictious_a stuff_n we_o desire_v they_o to_o consider_v 1._o that_o all_o our_o supernatural_a grace_n be_v from_o christ_n by_o his_o spirit_n this_o we_o be_v all_o agree_v in_o 2._o that_o yet_o all_o supernatural_a grace_n be_v not_o from_o christ_n after_o the_o same_o way_n and_o manner_n for_o there_o be_v some_o grace_n from_o christ_n before_o union_n and_o in_o order_n to_o union_n and_o some_o grace_n be_v from_o christ_n unite_v from_o christ_n now_o in_o actual_a union_n with_o our_o soul_n by_o faith_n of_o the_o first_o sort_n be_v the_o first_o prevent_v grace_n the_o grace_n by_o which_o we_o be_v effectual_o call_v the_o grace_n by_o which_o we_o be_v dispose_v and_o prepare_v to_o believe_v and_o by_o which_o we_o do_v actual_o believe_v and_o by_o so_o believe_v answer_v the_o call_v receive_v christ_n into_o our_o heart_n and_o come_v to_o be_v actual_o unite_v unto_o he_o this_o grace_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o union_n by_o faith_n be_v before_o union_n with_o christ_n and_o so_o can_v possible_o be_v from_o christ_n consider_v as_o unite_v to_o we_o by_o faith_n though_o then_o all_o our_o grace_n be_v from_o christ_n yet_o it_o be_v notorious_o false_a that_o it_o be_v all_o from_o he_o as_o we_o already_o by_o faith_n for_o prevent_v grace_n which_o be_v before_o faith_n be_v not_o draw_v from_o christ_n by_o faith_n as_o also_o faith_n itself_o we_o mean_v the_o first_o principle_n and_o first_o act_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o draw_v from_o christ_n as_o already_o we_o by_o faith_n for_o then_o faith_n will_v be_v both_o before_o and_o after_o itself_o which_o be_v contradictious_a nonsense_n and_o impossible_a of_o the_o second_o sort_n be_v all_o subsequent_a grace_n the_o grace_n of_o justification_n of_o progressive_a sanctification_n and_o perseverance_n yea_o all_o that_o grace_n whereby_o god_n select_a people_n be_v once_o call_v according_a to_o his_o purpose_n be_v fit_v for_o and_o bring_v unto_o glory_n be_v from_o christ_n unite_v from_o christ_n in_o actual_a union_n with_o our_o soul_n by_o faith_n augustin_n write_v against_o the_o pelagian_o above_o 12_o hundred_o year_n ago_o 105._o angust_n epist_n 105._o have_v clear_v up_o this_o matter_n in_o few_o word_n write_v thus_o to_o sixtus_n ita_fw-la sine_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sidei_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la rectê_fw-la quispiam_fw-la crediturus_fw-la nec_fw-la sine_fw-la spiritu_fw-la orationis_fw-la salubriter_fw-la oraturus_fw-la non_fw-la quia_fw-la tot_fw-la sint_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sed_fw-la omne_fw-la haec_fw-la operatur_fw-la unus_fw-la atque_fw-la idem_fw-la spiritus_fw-la dividens_fw-la propria_fw-la unicuique_fw-la prout_fw-la vult_fw-la quia_fw-la spiritus_fw-la ubi_fw-la vult_fw-la spirat_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la fatendum_fw-la est_fw-la aliter_fw-la adjuvat_fw-la nondum_fw-la inhabitans_fw-la aliter_fw-la inhabitans_fw-la nam_fw-la nondum_fw-la inhabitans_fw-la adjuvat_fw-la ut_fw-la sint_fw-la fideles_fw-la inhabitans_fw-la adjuvat_fw-la jam_fw-la fideles_fw-la that_o be_v so_o without_o the_o spirit_n of_o faith_n no_o man_n will_v ever_o believe_v aright_o nor_o without_o the_o spirit_n of_o prayer_n will_v any_o man_n ever_o pray_v in_o a_o save_a manner_n not_o that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o spirit_n but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n do_v all_o these_o thing_n divide_v unto_o every_o man_n that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o he_o as_o he_o will_v for_o the_o spirit_n breathe_v where_o he_o will_n
but_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o the_o spirit_n do_v otherwise_o help_v before_o he_o do_v inhabit_v and_o otherwise_o when_o he_o do_v inhabit_v in_o the_o soul_n for_o before_o be_v come_v to_o inhabit_v in_o the_o soul_n he_o help_v man_n that_o they_o may_v be_v believer_n but_o when_o he_o do_v inhabit_v and_o dwell_v in_o the_o soul_n he_o help_v they_o who_o be_v believer_n this_o one_o distinction_n of_o augustine_n attend_v unto_o will_v help_v people_n to_o understand_v this_o matter_n and_o to_o answer_v all_o that_o our_o author_n say_v against_o any_o real_a change_n or_o holy_a seed_n disposition_n or_o qualification_n wrought_v in_o the_o soul_n before_o it_o be_v justify_v for_o our_o bless_a lord_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n first_o prepare_v and_o qualify_v and_o make_v we_o meet_v to_o be_v a_o habitation_n for_o himself_o and_o then_o he_o come_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n and_o dwell_v in_o we_o and_o abide_v with_o we_o for_o ever_o ephes_n 2.22_o and_o 3.17_o and_o 1_o cor._n 3.16_o now_o the_o first_o of_o these_o be_v in_o order_n before_o justification_n god_n by_o his_o spirit_n and_o word_n first_o make_v we_o such_o as_o his_o word_n require_v we_o to_o be_v that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v he_o saving_o enlighten_v our_o mind_n and_o enlivens_fw-la our_o heart_n he_o give_v we_o a_o seed_n of_o faith_n and_o a_o holy_a principle_n of_o light_n lise_n and_o love_n and_o by_o a_o influence_n of_o actual_a grace_n cause_v we_o free_o to_o reduce_v the_o say_a seed_n and_o principle_n into_o act_n and_o so_o actual_o to_o believe_v and_o repent_v which_o when_o we_o do_v through_o grace_n than_o he_o justify_v we_o on_o the_o account_n of_o christ_n satisfactory_a meritorious_a righteousness_n impute_v to_o we_o and_o after_o that_o we_o be_v effectual_o call_v and_o thereupon_o be_v become_v penitent_a believer_n and_o be_v justify_v and_o reconcile_v the_o lord_n give_v we_o his_o spirit_n and_o by_o his_o spirit_n he_o come_v and_o dwell_v in_o we_o he_o strengthen_v and_o increase_v the_o grace_n that_o he_o have_v begin_v in_o we_o and_o make_v we_o more_o and_o more_o holy_a in_o heart_n and_o life_n this_o be_v that_o which_o be_v common_o call_v sanctification_n and_o follow_v after_o justification_n and_o through_o christ_n dwelling_n in_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n be_v carry_v on_o from_o one_o decree_n to_o another_o till_o it_o have_v attain_v its_o gradual_a perfection_n and_o be_v consummate_v in_o glory_n 11._o let._n p._n 11._o but_o he_o object_n 2._o shall_v we_o tell_v man_n that_o unless_o they_o be_v holy_a they_o must_v not_o believe_v on_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o venture_v on_o he_o for_o salvation_n till_o they_o be_v qualify_v and_o fit_a to_o be_v receive_v by_o he_o this_o be_v to_o forbear_v preach_v the_o gospel_n at_o all_o or_o to_o forbid_v all_o man_n to_o believe_v on_o christ_n for_o never_o be_v any_o sinner_n qualify_v for_o christ_n nor_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o ever_o any_o sinner_n shall_v be_v qualify_v for_o christ_n we_o answer_v our_o author_n have_v say_v a_o little_a before_o in_o the_o same_o page_n that_o every_o one_o who_o believe_v on_o christ_n act_v that_o faith_n as_o the_o chief_a of_o sinner_n that_o be_v believe_v as_o a_o unbeliever_n as_o be_v before_o prove_v to_o be_v his_o meaning_n by_o his_o own_o express_a word_n if_o his_o word_n be_v expressive_a of_o his_o mind_n and_o now_o by_o the_o question_n which_o he_o put_v to_o we_o here_o he_o seem_v plain_o to_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o every_o man_n must_v believe_v as_o a_o unbeliever_n or_o else_o no_o man_n can_v ever_o believe_v at_o all_o and_o minister_n must_v give_v over_o preach_v the_o gospel_n for_o they_o can_v never_o preach_v it_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v preach_v unless_o they_o tell_v people_n that_o they_o must_v act_n their_o faith_n as_o the_o chief_a of_o sinner_n that_o be_v they_o must_v believe_v as_o unbeliever_n for_o either_o we_o must_v tell_v people_n that_o they_o must_v believe_v as_o unbeliever_n or_o else_o that_o they_o must_v not_o believe_v till_o they_o be_v first_o holy_a and_o that_o be_v that_o they_o must_v never_o believe_v at_o all_o because_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o be_v holy_a till_o after_o they_o have_v believe_v in_o christ_n and_o be_v unite_v unto_o he_o by_o faith_n this_o be_v plain_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o author_n word_n and_o the_o force_n of_o his_o reason_v which_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o what_o calvin_n say_v out_o of_o augustin_n the_o bono_fw-mi perseverantiae_fw-la cap._n 22._o 14._o calv._n instit_fw-la lib._n 3._o cap._n 23._o §_o 14._o that_o there_o be_v insulsi_fw-la doctores_fw-la gratiae_fw-la some_o foolish_a preacher_n of_o grace_n and_o sure_o if_o any_o they_o be_v to_o be_v account_v such_o preacher_n who_o in_o effect_n tell_v people_n that_o they_o must_v believe_v as_o unbeliever_n or_o else_o they_o must_v not_o believe_v till_o they_o be_v first_o holy_a and_o that_o be_v they_o must_v never_o believe_v at_o all_o but_o be_v there_o no_o way_n to_o avoid_v this_o foolish_a senseless_a way_n of_o preach_v our_o author_n think_v there_o be_v not_o we_o on_o the_o contrary_n be_v persuade_v that_o there_o be_v a_o way_n to_o avoid_v it_o and_o in_o our_o judgement_n it_o may_v thus_o be_v easy_o do_v we_o tell_v people_n that_o they_o must_v believe_v in_o christ_n not_o as_o unholy_a unbeliever_n nor_o yet_o as_o holy_a with_o that_o holiness_n which_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o believe_v and_o follow_v after_o faith_n in_o christ_n but_o by_o cease_v to_o be_v unholy_a unbeliever_n and_o by_o become_v holy_a believer_n and_o if_o they_o ask_v we_o how_o this_o can_v possible_o be_v do_v we_o answer_v not_o by_o power_n of_o nature_n but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n special_a grace_n if_o they_o ask_v further_o how_o they_o can_v obtain_v that_o special_a grace_n before_o they_o believe_v and_o be_v in_o christ_n by_o faith_n since_o all_o grace_n be_v derive_v from_o christ_n by_o faith_n we_o answer_v that_o all_o grace_n indeed_o be_v derive_v from_o christ_n but_o it_o be_v a_o most_o notorious_a falsehood_n that_o all_o grace_n be_v derive_v from_o christ_n by_o faith_n for_o the_o first_o special_a grace_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o faith_n and_o whereby_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v not_o from_o christ_n by_o faith_n but_o it_o be_v from_o christ_n before_o faith_n and_o it_o be_v give_v we_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o christ_n to_o work_v faith_n in_o we_o and_o to_o bring_v we_o into_o union_n with_o christ_n by_o faith_n if_o they_o say_v that_o even_o according_a to_o this_o way_n people_n must_v still_o believe_v before_o they_o be_v holy_a and_o so_o must_v believe_v as_o not_o be_v yet_o holy_a we_o answer_v that_o be_v true_a in_o one_o respect_n and_o false_a in_o another_o it_o be_v true_a that_o people_n must_v believe_v before_o they_o be_v holy_a with_o that_o progressive_a holiness_n which_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o justify_v faith_n and_o follow_v after_o justification_n but_o it_o be_v utter_o false_a that_o people_n do_v believe_v or_o can_v believe_v save_o before_o they_o be_v initial_o holy_a before_o they_o be_v holy_a with_o that_o first_o beginning_n and_o principle_n of_o holiness_n which_o consist_v in_o remove_v the_o ill_a disposition_n of_o our_o faculty_n and_o in_o give_v our_o faculty_n a_o right_a spiritual_a supernatural_a disposition_n and_o fitness_n for_o the_o act_n of_o believe_v this_o holy_a principle_n concur_v to_o the_o produce_v of_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o must_v be_v in_o order_n before_o it_o and_o then_o the_o act_n itself_o of_o faith_n which_o be_v a_o holy_a act_n must_v be_v in_o order_n before_o justification_n therefore_o it_o be_v utter_o false_a that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o holiness_n at_o all_o in_o any_o kind_n or_o degree_n before_o faith_n and_o justification_n by_o faith_n since_o before_o actual_a faith_n there_o be_v the_o holy_a seed_n and_o principle_n both_o of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o of_o other_o grace_n too_o and_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n there_o be_v a_o holy_a actual_a faith_n before_o justification_n and_o this_o be_v a_o truth_n so_o clear_a that_o our_o author_n himself_o sometime_o can_v see_v it_o as_o pag._n 21._o where_o he_o say_v that_o no_o man_n can_v do_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a till_o gospel_n grace_n renew_v he_o and_o make_v he_o first_o a_o good_a man_n this_o be_v very_o true_a if_o it_o be_v right_o understand_v thus_o no_o man_n can_v do_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v spiritual_o supernatural_o and_o save_o good_a till_o gospel_n grace_n that_o be_v internal_a special_a grace_n renew_v he_o and_o make_v he_o first_o a_o
unwilling_a to_o believe_v of_o so_o great_a and_o good_a a_o man_n but_o we_o can_v be_v so_o confident_a of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o our_o author_n as_o we_o be_v of_o calvin_n and_o therefore_o we_o commend_v to_o his_o serious_a consideration_n a_o passage_n of_o the_o reverend_n and_o learned_a pitcarne_n in_o his_o evangelical_n harmony_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n and_o james_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n art_n 1._o pag._n 10._o tantum_n addo_fw-la quod_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o only_o add_v say_v he_o that_o in_o the_o scripture_n the_o word_n faith_n be_v also_o use_v for_o the_o conscience_n or_o persuasion_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n approve_v our_o fact_n or_o that_o which_o we_o be_v to_o do_v whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n that_o be_v it_o be_v sin_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v that_o be_v do_v with_o a_o conscience_n that_o be_v doubt_v and_o uncertain_a of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n i_o be_v not_o a_o little_a grieve_a when_o i_o read_v suarez_n accuse_v our_o divine_n that_o they_o act_v the_o part_n of_o sophister_n when_o to_o prove_v justification_n by_o faith_n alone_o they_o allege_v without_o make_v a_o right_a choice_n or_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o one_o and_o another_o any_o place_n of_o scripture_n where_o faith_n be_v mention_v although_o in_o they_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o tittle_n to_o be_v find_v of_o faith_n relate_v to_o christ_n and_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o that_o have_v respect_n unto_o absolution_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n this_o shall_v teach_v we_o all_o to_o take_v great_a care_n how_o we_o quote_v and_o apply_v scripture_n to_o prove_v our_o opinion_n lest_o by_o misapply_v text_n we_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n grieve_v god_n spirit_n and_o harden_v our_o adversary_n in_o their_o erroneous_a opinion_n four_o obj._n four_o he_o object_n against_o we_o the_o seven_o canon_n of_o the_o six_o session_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n which_o anathematize_v all_o those_o who_o say_v that_o all_o work_v do_v before_o justification_n howsoever_o they_o be_v do_v be_v true_o sin_n we_o answer_v that_o this_o objection_n be_v impertinent_a and_o make_v against_o himself_o as_o well_o as_o against_o we_o 16.32_o let._n p._n 16.32_o for_o 1._o he_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v in_o order_n of_o nature_n before_o justification_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v from_o several_a passage_n in_o his_o letter_n 2._o he_o say_v pag._n 11._o that_o faith_n be_v a_o work_n that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a work_n that_o it_o be_v a_o work_n of_o god_n yea_o a_o work_n of_o god_n which_o we_o do_v and_o can_v do_v too_o soon_o now_o we_o hope_v he_o will_v not_o say_v that_o this_o great_a work_n of_o god_n which_o through_o grace_n we_o do_v before_o justification_n and_o can_v do_v too_o soon_o be_v a_o evil_a work_n and_o be_v true_o sin_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o evil_a work_n and_o true_o sin_n than_o it_o must_v be_v a_o good_a work_n and_o true_o gracious_a and_o thus_o we_o have_v himself_o hold_v with_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n as_o well_o as_o we_o do_v that_o before_o justification_n there_o be_v a_o good_a work_n which_o be_v not_o true_o sin_n but_o true_o good_a and_o gracious_a if_o he_o say_v that_o faith_n do_v not_o justify_v as_o a_o work_n that_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o the_o question_n now_o be_v not_o whether_o faith_n justify_v as_o a_o work_n or_o as_o a_o instrument_n but_o whether_o faith_n real_o be_v a_o work_n a_o internal_a work_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o it_o may_v well_o be_v and_o yet_o not_o justify_v as_o a_o work_n and_o he_o himself_o have_v express_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v a_o work_n and_o a_o great_a work_n too_o and_o likewise_o that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a work_n which_o not_o only_o god_n do_v but_o which_o we_o do_v through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n enable_v we_o but_o after_o all_o if_o he_o be_v so_o resolve_v that_o he_o will_v have_v nothing_o common_a with_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n but_o differ_v from_o they_o in_o all_o thing_n true_a or_o false_a right_a or_o wrong_n and_o therefore_o because_o they_o hold_v that_o justify_v faith_n be_v a_o good_a work_n before_o justification_n that_o be_v not_o true_o sin_n he_o will_v hold_v the_o contrary_a that_o tho_o justify_v faith_n be_v before_o justification_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o a_o good_a work_n but_o a_o evil_a work_n and_o be_v true_o sin_n we_o can_v say_v nothing_o to_o it_o he_o have_v his_o free_a choice_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o we_o can_v do_v to_o the_o contrary_a yet_o we_o shall_v advise_v he_o to_o be_v wise_a and_o not_o to_o reject_v any_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n because_o a_o adversary_n hold_v and_o believe_v it_o and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o gospel-truth_n that_o justify_v save_a faith_n be_v a_o good_a work_n though_o it_o be_v in_o order_n before_o justification_n we_o doubt_v not_o but_o his_o own_o conscience_n know_v it_o and_o be_v convince_v of_o it_o sure_o we_o be_v that_o our_o conscience_n be_v full_o persuade_v of_o it_o and_o though_o we_o believe_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o confess_v with_o our_o mouth_n that_o justify_v faith_n in_o the_o best_a of_o we_o be_v too_o too_o little_a and_o weak_a and_o that_o the_o gradual_a defect_n of_o it_o be_v true_o sin_n and_o deserve_v the_o hatred_n of_o god_n yet_o be_v we_o infallible_o sure_a that_o the_o grace_n and_o gracious_a act_n itself_o of_o justify_v save_a faith_n so_o far_o as_o we_o have_v any_o of_o it_o be_v true_o good_a and_o can_v be_v true_o evil_a and_o sin_n this_o we_o be_v sure_o be_v a_o truth_n and_o we_o believe_v it_o and_o be_v resolve_v through_o grace_n so_o to_o do_v and_o never_o to_o like_v it_o the_o worse_a because_o the_o papist_n believe_v it_o and_o curse_v all_o those_o who_o disbelieve_v it_o we_o join_v with_o they_o in_o believe_v the_o truth_n so_o far_o as_o they_o do_v believe_v it_o but_o we_o utter_o abhor_v their_o curse_v of_o dissenter_n if_o our_o author_n think_v fit_a to_o dissent_n from_o we_o in_o this_o matter_n we_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o from_o curse_v he_o that_o we_o shall_v pray_v god_n to_o bless_v he_o with_o a_o better_a understanding_n of_o this_o and_o all_o other_o thing_n wherein_o he_o may_v be_v mistake_v as_o for_o the_o other_o passage_n which_o our_o author_n quote_v out_o of_o the_o 11_o canon_n and_o call_v the_o bellow_n of_o the_o beast_n we_o may_v pass_v it_o over_o for_o it_o do_v not_o at_o all_o concern_v we_o nor_o the_o controversy_n that_o be_v between_o the_o author_n of_o the_o letter_n and_o we_o yet_o this_o we_o will_v say_v that_o he_o seem_v not_o to_o understand_v the_o language_n of_o that_o beast_n of_o trent_n for_o they_o confess_v with_o we_o that_o the_o grace_n whereby_o we_o be_v justify_v be_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n as_o plain_o appear_v from_o what_o they_o say_v before_o the_o canon_n in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n but_o they_o curse_v all_o those_o who_o say_v that_o the_o grace_n whereby_o we_o be_v justify_v be_v only_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n for_o they_o hold_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o a_o twofold_a grace_n the_o one_o external_n without_o we_o and_o it_o be_v the_o mercy_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n which_o be_v that_o that_o principal_o move_v he_o to_o justify_v we_o the_o other_o internal_a within_o we_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o first_o and_o it_o be_v the_o habit_n of_o grace_n or_o charity_n infuse_v into_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o make_v we_o formal_o just_a by_o something_o inherent_a in_o ourselves_o now_o we_o do_v not_o say_v any_o more_o than_o they_o do_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n only_o and_o exclusive_o of_o all_o other_o thing_n for_o we_o maintain_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o also_o by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n impute_v to_o we_o according_a to_o rom._n 3.24_o and_o this_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o quarrel_n this_o be_v it_o for_o which_o they_o curse_v our_o author_n and_o we_o both_o because_o we_o both_o believe_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o christ_n righteousness_n impute_v to_o we_o and_o not_o by_o god_n grace_n infuse_v into_o we_o and_o inherent_a in_o we_o and_o yet_o we_o believe_v this_o too_o to_o wit_n that_o god_n grace_n be_v infuse_v into_o we_o and_o inherent_a in_o we_o only_o we_o do_v not_o call_v this_o justification_n but_o give_v it_o another_o name_n and_o call_v it_o sanctification_n those_o trent_n father_n therefore_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o be_v so_o angry_a with_o we_o and_o in_o their_o beastly_a wrath_n to_o fall_v a_o curse_v of_o we_o
spirit_n together_o because_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n aforesaid_a the_o write_a word_n be_v suppose_v to_o say_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o that_o matter_n therefore_o if_o ever_o it_o be_v reveal_v to_o the_o man_n and_o so_o if_o ever_o he_o be_v comfort_v in_o this_o world_n it_o must_v be_v by_o the_o spirit_n without_o the_o word_n and_o then_o all_o the_o poor_a disconsolate_a man_n ground_n of_o comfort_n must_v be_v reduce_v to_o this_o that_o god_n will_v reveal_v it_o to_o he_o by_o his_o spirit_n immediate_o without_o the_o write_a word_n but_o then_o we_o demand_v how_o our_o author_n will_v be_v able_a to_o assure_v the_o poor_a disconsolate_a die_a man_n that_o god_n will_v real_o do_v so_o that_o god_n will_v reveal_v it_o to_o he_o by_o his_o spirit_n immediate_o without_o the_o write_a word_n for_o that_o immediate_a extraordinary_a revelation_n be_v a_o thing_n that_o depend_v also_o upon_o god_n arbitrary_a free_a will_n he_o may_v do_v it_o or_o not_o do_v it_o as_o he_o please_v and_o if_o god_n may_v free_o not_o do_v it_o how_o can_v our_o author_n ever_o assure_v the_o man_n that_o he_o will_v do_v it_o that_o be_v that_o he_o will_v by_o his_o spirit_n immediate_o and_o extraordinary_o reveal_v to_o he_o without_o the_o write_a word_n that_o he_o shall_v have_v eternal_a life_n and_o not_o eternal_a death_n for_o his_o portion_n but_o now_o if_o our_o author_n shall_v say_v that_o god_n have_v give_v unto_o man_n a_o promise_n in_o his_o write_a word_n to_o ground_v his_o faith_n upon_o though_o he_o have_v not_o give_v a_o state_v rule_n and_o stand_v positive_a law_n according_a to_o which_o he_o will_v proceed_v with_o man_n at_o death_n and_o judgement_n we_o will_v ready_o reply_v thus_o either_o the_o promise_n in_o the_o write_a word_n make_v to_o the_o die_a disconsolate_a man_n be_v a_o absolute_a promise_n that_o god_n for_o christ_n sake_n will_v give_v he_o eternal_a life_n however_o it_o be_v with_o he_o whether_o he_o be_v convert_v or_o unconvert_v penitent_a or_o impenitent_a believer_n or_o unbeliever_n and_o we_o be_v sure_o there_o be_v no_o such_o promise_n in_o the_o bible_n and_o to_o tell_v he_o of_o such_o a_o promise_n will_v be_v at_o once_o to_o belie_v god_n and_o to_o delude_v the_o poor_a man._n or_o 2._o it_o be_v a_o conditional_a promise_n that_o god_n for_o christ_n sake_n will_v give_v he_o eternal_a life_n if_o through_o grace_n he_o unfeigned_o repent_v of_o all_o his_o sin_n and_o believe_v on_o christ_n with_o a_o lively_a effectual_a faith_n a_o faith_n work_v by_o love_n which_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v under_o the_o pain_n of_o eternal_a death_n if_o this_o be_v the_o promise_n that_o the_o poor_a die_a man_n must_v ground_v his_o faith_n upon_o that_o god_n for_o christ_n sake_n will_v give_v he_o eternal_a life_n than_o this_o be_v the_o very_a thing_n which_o dr._n twisse_n and_o we_o after_o he_o call_v the_o law_n according_a to_o which_o god_n proceed_v in_o dispense_n to_o his_o people_n the_o subsequent_a blessing_n of_o the_o covenant_n such_o as_o justification_n and_o glorification_n be_v and_o so_o our_o author_n come_v over_o into_o our_o camp_n which_o he_o must_v do_v at_o last_o and_o confess_v if_o not_o to_o we_o at_o least_o to_o god_n that_o he_o have_v gross_o misrepresent_v and_o false_o accuse_v christ_n faithful_a minister_n and_o have_v endeavour_v to_o delude_v the_o people_n and_o to_o render_v the_o minister_n odious_a to_o the_o people_n and_o thereby_o to_o hinder_v the_o success_n of_o their_o ministry_n and_o he_o must_v sincere_o repent_v of_o have_v do_v so_o but_o if_o he_o will_v yet_o go_v on_o in_o the_o way_n of_o his_o own_o heart_n we_o shall_v be_v sorry_a for_o he_o and_o not_o cease_v to_o pray_v the_o lord_n if_o it_o be_v his_o will_n to_o have_v mercy_n on_o he_o and_o to_o give_v he_o repentance_n for_o the_o scandalous_a sin_n which_o he_o have_v commit_v in_o public_o slander_v christ_n minister_n and_o in_o bold_o assert_v a_o notorious_a falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n say_v that_o the_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v a_o new_a word_n of_o a_o old_a but_o ill_a meaning_n and_o that_o he_o have_v real_o do_v so_o we_o have_v not_o only_o say_v but_o prove_v by_o the_o plain_a testimony_n of_o credible_a witness_n whereof_o two_o seal_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n with_o their_o blood_n above_o fourteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o sect_n ii_o of_o his_o second_o error_n that_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v absolute_a and_o not_o conditional_a second_o the_o author_n of_o the_o letter_n assert_n that_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v absolute_a and_o not_o conditional_a as_o appear_v from_o page_n 18._o at_o the_o end_n and_z page_z 24._o and_o particular_o he_o deny_v that_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o justification_n page_n 8._o some_o say_n that_o faith_n justify_v as_o it_o be_v a_o fulfil_n of_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n if_o thou_o believe_v thou_o shall_v be_v save_v this_o he_o find_v fault_n with_o and_o oppose_v to_o it_o the_o old_a protestant_a doctrine_n as_o he_o call_v it_o that_o the_o place_n of_o faith_n in_o justification_n be_v only_o that_o of_o a_o hand_n or_o instrument_n etc._n etc._n where_o we_o observe_v 1._o that_o he_o make_v faith_n its_o be_v a_o condition_n and_o its_o be_v a_o hand_n or_o instrument_n to_o be_v two_o opposite_a thing_n the_o one_o whereof_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o and_o destructive_a of_o the_o other_o and_o so_o in_o this_o he_o not_o only_o fight_v against_o we_o but_o likewise_o against_o the_o assembly_n of_o divine_n at_o westminster_n who_o hold_v faith_n to_o be_v both_o a_o instrument_n and_o a_o condition_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n as_o be_v show_v before_o 2._o he_o make_v it_o to_o be_v new_a doctrine_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o old_a protestant_a doctrine_n to_o hold_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n as_o a_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n wherein_o he_o make_v the_o assembly_n as_o well_o as_o we_o to_o be_v preacher_n of_o a_o new_a doctrine_n and_o corrupter_n of_o the_o gospel_n since_o they_o likewise_o hold_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n as_o aforesaid_a and_o again_o in_o page_n 9_o we_o say_v that_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v neither_o work_n nor_o condition_n nor_o qualification_n in_o justification_n but_o be_v a_o mere_a instrument_n and_o he_o affirm_v that_o their_o say_n so_o be_v that_o by_o which_o the_o fire_n be_v kindle_v so_o that_o say_v he_o in_o page_n 10._o it_o be_v come_v to_o that_o as_o mr._n christopher_n fowler_n say_v that_o he_o that_o will_v not_o be_v antichristian_a must_v be_v call_v a_o antinomian_n here_o it_o be_v very_o remarkable_a that_o he_o not_o only_o deny_v faith_n to_o be_v either_o work_n condition_n or_o qualification_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n but_o he_o also_o in_o effect_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v antichristian_a to_o assert_v that_o faith_n be_v either_o work_n condition_n or_o qualification_n and_o that_o he_o will_v therefore_o rather_o choose_v to_o be_v call_v a_o antinomian_a for_o deny_v than_o to_o be_v a_o antichristian_a for_o affirm_v it_o this_o be_v and_o must_v be_v his_o meaning_n or_o else_o he_o be_v dream_v and_o know_v not_o what_o he_o do_v when_o he_o cite_v mr._n fowler_n and_o bring_v in_o his_o judicious_a say_n with_o a_o so_o that_o it_o be_v come_v to_o that_o as_o mr._n fowler_n say_v etc._n etc._n final_o in_o page_n 25_o at_o the_o beginning_n he_o say_v that_o faith_n in_o the_o office_n of_o justification_n be_v neither_o condition_n nor_o qualification_n but_o in_o its_o very_a act_n be_v a_o renounce_n of_o all_o such_o pretence_n from_o all_o which_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o we_o do_v not_o wrest_v his_o word_n nor_o charge_v he_o with_o a_o opinion_n which_o he_o do_v not_o hold_v for_o he_o so_o firm_o hold_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n to_o be_v absolute_a and_o not_o conditional_a and_o particular_o that_o faith_n be_v neither_o the_o condition_n of_o obtain_v justification_n nor_o a_o qualification_n of_o the_o person_n then_o justify_v when_o he_o believe_v that_o he_o glory_v to_o be_v account_v a_o antinomian_a rather_o than_o renounce_v that_o opinion_n page_n 24._o and_o he_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v new_a and_o antichristian_a doctrine_n to_o maintain_v that_o faith_n be_v either_o a_o condition_n of_o obtain_v justification_n or_o a_o qualification_n of_o the_o person_n justify_v or_o to_o be_v justify_v in_o that_o instant_n of_o time_n wherein_o he_o believe_v before_o we_o refute_v this_o opinion_n we_o will_v brief_o
foresay_a book_n call_v the_o synod_n of_o dort_n and_o arles_n reduce_v to_o practice_n page_n 195_o 196._o as_o god_n do_v ordain_v we_o to_o everlasting_a life_n by_o way_n of_o reward_n of_o our_o faith_n repentance_n and_o good_a work_n so_o likewise_o he_o do_v ordain_v we_o to_o the_o obtain_n of_o faith_n repentance_n and_o good_a work_n to_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o partly_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n therein_o speak_v unto_o we_o and_o partly_o by_o our_o prayer_n seek_v unto_o he_o to_o bless_v his_o word_n unto_o we_o and_o fulfil_v the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o goodness_n towards_o we_o and_o the_o work_n of_o faith_n in_o power_n for_o god_n do_v expect_v that_o we_o shall_v seek_v unto_o he_o by_o prayer_n for_o this_o as_o we_o read_v ezek._n 36.37_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n i_o will_v yet_o for_o this_o be_v seek_v of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n to_o perform_v it_o unto_o they_o neither_o do_v we_o maintain_v that_o god_n do_v ordain_v any_o man_n of_o ripe_a year_n unto_o eternal_a lise_n in_o any_o moment_n of_o nature_n before_o he_o ordain_v he_o to_o faith_n repentance_n and_o good_a work_n and_o that_o to_o be_v wrought_v in_o he_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n with_o god_n blessing_n thereupon_o according_a to_o the_o prayer_n in_o common_a both_o of_o the_o pastor_n and_o the_o people_n by_o this_o passage_n we_o see_v that_o though_o dr._n twisse_n deny_v that_o god_n give_v we_o grace_n to_o convert_v believe_v and_o repent_v do_v depend_v upon_o any_o proper_a condition_n to_o be_v antecedent_o perform_v by_o we_o before_o we_o can_v ever_o in_o any_o case_n receive_v that_o grace_n yet_o he_o confess_v and_o maintain_v that_o ordinary_o god_n give_v that_o first_o special_a save_v grace_n depend_v upon_o the_o use_n of_o his_o appoint_a mean_n and_o that_o it_o be_v god_n will_v it_o shall_v so_o depend_v and_o true_o if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o minister_n shall_v give_v over_o preach_v and_o pray_v and_o people_n give_v over_o hear_v they_o and_o join_v in_o prayer_n with_o they_o in_o order_n to_o conversion_n for_o it_o will_v all_o serve_v to_o no_o end_n or_o purpose_n but_o will_v be_v a_o take_n of_o god_n name_n in_o vain_a thus_o it_o may_v appear_v to_o all_o that_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v nor_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v any_o condition_n require_v to_o be_v necessary_o perform_v by_o we_o antecedent_o to_o our_o partake_n of_o the_o first_o grace_n promise_v in_o the_o covenant_n so_o that_o if_o we_o perform_v that_o condition_n we_o shall_v infallible_o have_v that_o first_o grace_n and_o if_o we_o perform_v it_o not_o we_o shall_v infallible_o not_o have_v it_o at_o all_o 2._o from_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o in_o consistence_n with_o our_o foresay_a principle_n we_o can_v hold_v and_o we_o solemn_o declare_v that_o we_o do_v not_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v any_o natural_a condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n for_o we_o know_v assure_o that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o promise_n in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n as_o this_o facienti_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o se_fw-la est_fw-la viribus_fw-la naturae_fw-la dabit_fw-la deus_fw-la primam_fw-la gratiam_fw-la god_n will_v give_v the_o first_o supernatural_a grace_n to_o every_o man_n who_o do_v what_o he_o can_v by_o his_o natural_a power_n it_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o semipelagian_o that_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n by_o our_o own_o natural_a strength_n without_o supernatural_a grace_n and_o upon_o condition_n that_o we_o do_v so_o god_n promise_v to_o give_v and_o according_o he_o give_v we_o the_o first_o internal_a supernatural_a grace_n augustin_n himself_o be_v once_o of_o this_o opinion_n as_o he_o confess_v lib._n the_o praedestin_a sanctorum_fw-la cap._n 3._o where_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v convince_v of_o his_o error_n by_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 4.7_o what_o have_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v and_o if_o thou_o have_v receive_v it_o why_o do_v thou_o glory_n as_o if_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v it_o we_o bless_v god_n for_o that_o by_o his_o grace_n he_o have_v preserve_v we_o from_o that_o semipelagian_a error_n and_o we_o declare_v our_o abhorrence_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o great_a wickedness_n in_o the_o author_n of_o the_o letter_n to_o bely_v we_o as_o he_o have_v do_v in_o charge_v we_o not_o only_o with_o semipelagianism_n but_o even_o with_o pelagianism_n itself_o which_o be_v error_n that_o our_o soul_n abhor_v as_o god_n who_o search_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n know_v and_o to_o who_o we_o appeal_v yet_o pray_v he_o again_o not_o to_o enter_v into_o judgement_n with_o that_o brother_n for_o the_o wrong_n he_o have_v do_v we_o but_o rather_o to_o give_v he_o repentance_n and_o then_o to_o pardon_v he_o 3._o from_o hence_o also_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o neither_o do_v hold_v nor_o can_v hold_v that_o there_o be_v any_o meritorious_a condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n for_o we_o do_v firm_o and_o unanimous_o believe_v that_o christ_n by_o his_o elood_n have_v purchase_v for_o we_o and_o by_o his_o spirit_n free_o give_v unto_o we_o the_o grace_n whereby_o we_o perform_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n the_o grace_n whereby_o we_o sincere_o believe_v repent_v and_o obey_v the_o gospel_n now_o we_o be_v persuade_v that_o it_o be_v utter_o impossible_a for_o any_o man_n to_o merit_v of_o god_n the_o benefit_n of_o justification_n and_o glorification_n by_o perform_v the_o condition_n of_o faith_n repentance_n and_o evangelical_n obedience_n because_o we_o be_v infinite_o behold_v to_o god_n in_o christ_n for_o give_v we_o free_o the_o grace_n whereby_o we_o perform_v the_o condition_n and_o without_o which_o we_o can_v never_o perform_v it_o we_o know_v very_o well_o that_o the_o papist_n argue_v the_o quite_o contrary_a way_n that_o our_o faith_n repentance_n and_o obedience_n be_v proper_o meritorious_a because_o they_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o we_o but_o this_o we_o know_v also_o to_o be_v a_o very_a ridiculous_a way_n of_o argue_v because_o the_o argument_n real_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v not_o and_o that_o they_o can_v be_v proper_o meritorious_a because_o they_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o god_n free_a grace_n god_n by_o give_v we_o the_o grace_n whereby_o we_o believe_v repent_v and_o obey_v the_o gospel_n proper_o merit_v of_o we_o our_o most_o humble_a and_o hearty_a thanks_o for_o thereby_o cause_v we_o to_o believe_v repent_v and_o obey_v and_o therefore_o our_o so_o believe_v repent_v and_o obey_v can_v proper_o merit_v any_o thing_n of_o god_n but_o we_o need_v not_o insist_v on_o this_o it_o be_v so_o evident_a in_o itself_o and_o confess_v by_o all_o protestant_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o a_o mere_a creature_n and_o that_o a_o sinful_a creature_n too_o proper_o to_o merit_v and_o deserve_v any_o thing_n from_o god_n but_o death_n and_o damnation_n and_o this_o be_v so_o we_o do_v assert_v as_o much_o as_o our_o author_n do_v page_n 24._o or_o can_v possible_o do_v such_o a_o absolute_a freedom_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o exclude_v all_o merit_n but_o what_o our_o author_n mean_v by_o exclude_v not_o only_o merit_v itself_o but_o every_o thing_n like_o merit_n we_o do_v not_o well_o understand_v as_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o a_o sinful_a creature_n we_o know_v it_o to_o be_v a_o chimaera_n that_o it_o neither_o have_v nor_o can_v have_v a_o real_a be_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a and_o imply_v a_o contradiction_n now_o what_o it_o be_v that_o be_v like_o a_o chimaera_n we_o leave_v to_o our_o profound_a author_n to_o determine_v but_o if_o by_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v like_o merit_n he_o mean_v every_o false_a conceit_n of_o merit_n that_o be_v or_o may_v be_v in_o the_o foolish_a imagination_n of_o erroneous_a man_n we_o understand_v he_o and_o agree_v with_o he_o for_o we_o do_v as_o much_o as_o he_o exclude_v out_o of_o our_o own_o imagination_n all_o false_a conceit_n of_o merit_n and_o if_o we_o can_v we_o will_v exclude_v they_o out_o of_o the_o imagination_n of_o all_o other_o man_n that_o so_o we_o and_o all_o other_o man_n may_v ascribe_v unto_o god_n through_o christ_n the_o glory_n of_o all_o the_o good_a we_o do_v and_o of_o all_o the_o good_a we_o receive_v or_o hope_v to_o receive_v if_o our_o author_n by_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v like_o merit_n mean_v any_o other_o thing_n we_o be_v to_o seek_v what_o it_o may_v be_v and_o true_o we_o can_v well_o imagine_v what_o it_o be_v he_o exclude_v under_o the_o notion_n of_o its_o be_v like_o merit_n unless_o it_o be_v repentance_n in_o order_n to_o pardon_v of_o sin_n and_o prayer_n for_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o if_o that_o
be_v real_o his_o meaning_n and_o he_o be_v of_o that_o mind_n that_o he_o will_v neither_o repent_v of_o his_o sin_n in_o order_n to_o obtain_v the_o pardon_n of_o they_o nor_o pray_v for_o the_o pardon_n of_o they_o for_o fear_v lest_o he_o shall_v seem_v to_o merit_v the_o pardon_n of_o they_o we_o can_v but_o think_v he_o to_o be_v a_o very_a weak_a man_n and_o that_o he_o fear_v where_o no_o ground_n of_o fear_n be_v for_o assure_o if_o he_o do_v but_o exclude_v out_o of_o his_o own_o mind_n the_o proud_a conceit_n and_o opinion_n of_o merit_v by_o his_o repentance_n and_o prayer_n he_o need_v not_o forbear_v repent_v and_o pray_v for_o the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n for_o fear_v of_o thereby_o merit_v pardon_n or_o for_o fear_n of_o do_v that_o which_o look_v like_o merit_a pardon_n his_o own_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n may_v teach_v he_o that_o by_o the_o very_a act_n of_o repent_v and_o pray_v for_o pardon_n he_o do_v renounce_v all_o pretence_n to_o merit_v as_o well_o as_o by_o the_o act_n of_o believe_v in_o christ_n for_o pardon_n he_o do_v renounce_v all_o pretence_n to_o the_o merit_v of_o his_o pardon_n 4._o we_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o faith_n repentance_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v the_o legal_a but_o evangelical_a condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o that_o our_o meaning_n may_v be_v understand_v by_o all_o we_o explain_v thus_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o our_o faith_n repentance_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n which_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o justification_n and_o glorification_n according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n have_v the_o same_o place_n and_o office_n in_o this_o new_a covenant_n and_o law_n of_o grace_n which_o most_o perfect_a sinless_a obedience_n have_v and_o be_v to_o have_v have_v in_o the_o first_o old_a covenant_n and_o law_n of_o work_n for_o in_o that_o first_o old_a covenant_n personal_a perfect_a sinless_a obedience_n be_v to_o have_v be_v man_n righteousness_n by_o which_o alone_o he_o be_v to_o have_v be_v secure_v from_o death_n and_o to_o have_v have_v still_o a_o title_n and_o right_n to_o life_n but_o in_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o law_n of_o grace_n neither_o our_o faith_n repentance_n nor_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v or_o can_v be_v that_o righteousness_n which_o secure_v we_o from_o eternal_a death_n and_o purchase_n for_o we_o a_o right_n and_o title_n to_o eternal_a life_n when_o god_n first_o make_v the_o new_a covenant_n with_o we_o in_o christ_n we_o have_v all_o lose_v our_o right_n and_o title_n to_o life_n and_o be_v become_v guilty_a of_o death_n in_o which_o state_n we_o can_v never_o by_o any_o act_n or_o act_n of_o we_o by_o any_o righteousness_n in_o we_o or_o do_v by_o we_o secure_v ourselves_o from_o death_n and_o recover_v our_o right_n and_o title_n to_o life_n it_o be_v the_o satisfactory_a meritorious_a righteousness_n of_o our_o lord_n redeemer_n christ_n jesus_n that_o can_v do_v and_o do_v do_v this_o for_o we_o it_o be_v christ_n righteousness_n alone_o that_o satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n and_o redeem_v we_o from_o death_n and_o that_o merit_a and_o purchase_v for_o we_o a_o right_n and_o title_n to_o life_n christ_n righteousness_n alone_o procure_v we_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o a_o right_n and_o title_n to_o life_n so_o that_o it_o be_v christ_n satisfactory_a meritorious_a righteousness_n alone_o that_o come_v in_o the_o place_n of_o that_o perfect_a sinless_a righteousness_n which_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o first_o covenant_n and_o law_n of_o work_n it_o be_v christ_n righteousness_n that_o stand_v we_o in_o stead_n of_o that_o perfect_a sinless_a righteousness_n which_o we_o shall_v have_v have_v but_o have_v not_o it_o be_v christ_n righteousness_n alone_o that_o procure_v to_o we_o the_o restauration_n of_o all_o the_o good_a we_o have_v lose_v and_o more_o and_o better_a our_o faith_n repentance_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v at_o all_o in_o this_o matter_n this_o be_v christ_n work_n alone_o and_o we_o give_v he_o all_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o with_o all_o our_o heart_n and_o soul_n and_o as_o it_o be_v christ_n righteousness_n alone_o that_o merit_v our_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o deliverance_n from_o death_n and_o that_o purchase_v our_o acceptance_n with_o god_n as_o righteous_a in_o his_o sight_n and_o our_o right_n and_o title_n to_o life_n so_o it_o be_v by_o his_o promise_n and_o law_n of_o grace_n that_o the_o lord_n give_v we_o that_o which_o he_o have_v merit_v and_o purchase_v for_o we_o that_o he_o give_v we_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o right_a or_o title_n to_o life_n upon_o our_o repent_v and_o believe_v so_o that_o our_o repent_v of_o our_o sin_n and_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v but_o the_o immediate_a near_a mean_n which_o god_n have_v ordain_v to_o be_v use_v on_o our_o part_n that_o we_o may_v be_v fit_a to_o receive_v and_o according_o may_v receive_v those_o blessing_n and_o benefit_n which_o christ_n have_v purchase_v and_o which_o by_o the_o promise_n be_v give_v unto_o we_o the_o use_n of_o this_o mean_n the_o performance_n of_o those_o duty_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v that_o which_o our_o orthodox_n divine_v call_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n for_o upon_o condition_n that_o through_o grace_n we_o do_v those_o duty_n we_o shall_v have_v those_o blessing_n and_o benefit_n the_o lord_n will_v gracious_o give_v we_o they_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n on_o condition_n that_o we_o by_o grace_n do_v such_o and_o such_o duty_n according_a to_o his_o command_n our_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v not_o our_o legal_a righteousness_n nor_o instead_o of_o it_o that_o be_v the_o place_n and_o office_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n only_o but_o they_o be_v the_o condition_n which_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n have_v require_v of_o we_o that_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n we_o may_v be_v bless_v with_o the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n be_v accept_v at_o righteous_a in_o his_o sight_n and_o have_v a_o right_n and_o title_n to_o eternal_a life_n from_o the_o premise_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o according_a to_o our_o principle_n faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v not_o a_o legal_a but_o a_o evangelical_n condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o that_o they_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o detract_v from_o the_o grace_n of_o it_o and_o we_o desire_v it_o may_v be_v remember_v that_o though_o speak_v of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n joint_o we_o call_v they_o sometime_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n or_o the_o condition_n of_o justification_n yet_o we_o make_v a_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o because_o repentance_n include_v a_o hearty_a sorrow_n for_o sin_n and_o purpose_n to_o for_o sake_n it_o and_o to_o return_v unto_o the_o lord_n we_o call_v it_o the_o dispose_n condition_n but_o find_v by_o holy_a soripture_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o faith_n above_o other_o grace_n have_v a_o peculiar_a respect_n unto_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n we_o call_v it_o the_o receive_a condition_n so_o do_v our_o reverend_a brother_n mr._n williams_n call_v it_o in_o gospel_n truth_n state_v etc._n etc._n page_n 114._o and_o we_o approve_v the_o distinction_n he_o be_v not_o the_o first_o inventor_n of_o it_o for_o it_o be_v use_v by_o other_o before_o either_o he_o or_o we_o be_v bear_v now_o if_o this_o be_v true_a as_o the_o lord_n who_o search_v all_o heart_n know_v it_o to_o be_v then_o let_v the_o world_n judge_v how_o false_a and_o injurious_a that_o author_n be_v unto_o we_o when_o in_o page_n 6._o he_o give_v the_o people_n a_o account_n of_o our_o principle_n as_o to_o this_o matter_n in_o these_o follow_a word_n they_o will_v not_o allow_v this_o personal_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v impute_v to_o we_o any_o otherwise_o than_o in_o the_o merit_n of_o it_o as_o purchase_v for_o we_o a_o far_o more_o easy_a law_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o observation_n whereof_o they_o place_v all_o our_o justify_v righteousness_n understanding_n hereby_o our_o own_o personal_a inherent_a holiness_n and_o nothing_o else_o they_o hold_v that_o christ_n die_v to_o merit_v this_o of_o the_o father_n viz._n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v upon_o easy_a term_n under_o the_o gospel_n than_o those_o of_o the_o law_n of_o innocency_n in_o stead_n of_o justification_n by_o perfect_a obedience_n we_o be_v now_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o our_o own_o evangelical_n righteousness_n make_v up_o of_o faith_n repentance_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n and_o page_n 28._o many_o manage_n the_o ministry_n as_o if_o they_o have_v take_v up_o a_o contrary_a determination_n even_o to_o know_v any_o thing_n save_v jesus_n christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v we_o be_v amaze_v to_o see_v so_o many_o
it_o be_v the_o cause_n though_o calvin_n twiss_n ames_n rutherford_n etc._n etc._n have_v not_o spare_v to_o say_v and_o write_v that_o it_o be_v in_o some_o sense_n a_o cause_n a_o inferior_a dispose_n cause_n etc._n etc._n but_o a_o duty_n and_o condition_n until_o the_o perform_v whereof_o god_n have_v suspend_v the_o gift_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n and_o to_o the_o performer_n of_o which_o duty_n and_o condition_n he_o have_v free_o promise_v and_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n he_o gracious_o give_v eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n meritorious_a righteousness_n only_o and_o we_o desire_v it_o may_v be_v always_o remember_v that_o from_o this_o condition_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n we_o do_v by_o no_o mean_n exclude_v but_o include_v the_o continue_a exercise_n of_o faith_n in_o christ_n as_o that_o which_o be_v the_o spring_n of_o it_o and_o which_o run_v through_o all_o the_o part_n of_o it_o as_o also_o we_o hold_v that_o it_o comprehend_v the_o continue_a practice_n of_o repentance_n and_o love_n to_o god_n and_o man._n such_o sincere_a obedience_n we_o hold_v to_o be_v a_o condition_n to_o be_v perform_v on_o our_o part_n 10.38_o ezek._n 18.24_o 25._o heb._n 10.38_o for_o the_o obtain_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n for_o we_o learn_v from_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n that_o if_o any_o of_o god_n people_n shall_v apostatise_v from_o faith_n in_o christ_n fall_v from_o the_o profession_n and_o practice_n of_o christ_n true_a religion_n and_o give_v themselves_o up_o to_o the_o wilful_a commission_n of_o all_o manner_n of_o abomination_n and_o die_v in_o that_o state_n without_o repentance_n they_o will_v lose_v their_o right_n to_o eternal_a life_n be_v shut_v out_o of_o heaven_n and_o cast_v down_o to_o hell_n there_o to_o suffer_v the_o vengeance_n of_o eternal_a fire_n whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a all_o that_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o repentance_n and_o evangelical_n obedience_n they_o have_v their_o right_n to_o life_n and_o glory_n still_o continue_v to_o they_o and_o shall_v through_o god_n grace_n and_o mercy_n and_o christ_n righteousness_n and_o merit_n be_v put_v into_o the_o full_a and_o eternal_a possession_n of_o it_o if_o our_o author_n shall_v object_v and_o say_v that_o we_o suppose_v a_o impossibility_n from_o whence_o there_o be_v no_o right_a argue_v for_o or_o against_o any_o thing_n we_o desire_v he_o to_o consider_v what_o dr._n twiss_n say_v in_o the_o 29_o page_n of_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o book_n call_v the_o synod_n of_o dort_n and_o arles_n reduce_v to_o practice_n his_o word_n be_v when_o we_o say_v the_o elect_a saint_n can_v fall_v from_o grace_n this_o be_v speak_v not_o in_o respect_n of_o any_o absolute_a impossibility_n but_o mere_o upon_o supposition_n of_o god_n uphold_v they_o and_o according_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n 1_o pet._n 1.5_o now_o this_o impossibility_n of_o fall_v away_o from_o grace_n in_o scholastical_a account_n be_v but_o a_o impossibility_n secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la like_a as_o we_o say_v it_o be_v impossible_a that_o antichrist_n shall_v fall_v or_o the_o jew_n be_v call_v till_o the_o time_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v be_v come_v for_o bring_v forth_o these_o great_a and_o wonderful_a work_n of_o he_o but_o the_o contrary_n be_v simple_o possible_a on_o either_o part_n thus_o twiss_n our_o answer_n then_o be_v that_o the_o apostasy_n of_o a_o saint_n be_v not_o simple_o and_o absolute_o impossible_a alas_o it_o be_v but_o too_o possible_a with_o respect_n to_o we_o consider_v in_o ourselves_o but_o it_o be_v only_o impossible_a in_o some_o respect_n to_o wit_n in_o respect_n of_o god_n purpose_n and_o promise_v and_o christ_n intercession_n etc._n etc._n and_o notwithstanding_o its_o be_v impossible_a in_o this_o sense_n yet_o we_o find_v it_o suppose_v and_o grant_v also_o to_o be_v possible_a in_o another_o sense_n and_o further_o we_o find_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o holy_a scripture_n suppose_v great_a impossibility_n than_o that_o seem_v to_o be_v and_o rational_o argue_v from_o they_o too_o witness_v john_n 8.55_o gal._n 1.8_o if_o any_o shall_v further_o object_v and_o say_v that_o hereby_o we_o destroy_v the_o saint_n assurance_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n by_o hold_v that_o their_o obtain_n of_o it_o be_v suspend_v on_o a_o condition_n we_o answer_v the_o consequence_n be_v false_a because_o those_o who_o be_v assure_v upon_o good_a ground_n that_o they_o be_v true_o convert_v and_o justify_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n blood_n 2.19_o see_v 1_o joh._n 2.19_o may_v from_o holy_a scripture_n be_v assure_v of_o the_o condition_n of_o perseverance_n through_o grace_n in_o faith_n repentance_n and_o whatever_o god_n have_v make_v necessary_a to_o their_o obtain_n eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n indeed_o if_o our_o glorification_n depend_v upon_o a_o condition_n of_o which_o we_o can_v not_o be_v sure_a then_o neither_o can_v we_o be_v sure_a of_o glorification_n itself_o but_o we_o believe_v and_o maintain_v that_o through_o grace_n we_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v sure_a of_o the_o condition_n to_o wit_n of_o perseverance_n and_o consequent_o that_o we_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v sure_a of_o our_o future_a glorification_n which_o be_v infallible_o promise_v to_o perseverance_n in_o faith_n and_o holiness_n we_o know_v the_o follower_n of_o luther_n who_o our_o author_n so_o much_o magnify_v as_o if_o he_o be_v for_o he_o and_o his_o party_n deny_v that_o a_o saint_n can_v be_v absolute_o sure_a ordinary_o in_o this_o world_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v it_o be_v true_a they_o maintain_v that_o a_o saint_n may_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v absolute_o sure_a that_o he_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n for_o the_o present_a but_o they_o deny_v and_o on_o their_o principle_n must_v deny_v that_o he_o can_v have_v a_o absolute_a but_o only_o a_o conditional_a assurance_n of_o his_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o glorification_n because_o they_o say_v he_o can_v be_v absolute_o sure_a that_o he_o shall_v not_o fall_v total_o and_o final_o from_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n that_o he_o be_v now_o in_o if_o we_o shall_v follow_v luther_n or_o the_o lutheran_n in_o this_o what_o a_o clamour_n will_v our_o author_n raise_v against_o we_o how_o will_v he_o proclaim_v we_o to_o the_o world_n to_o be_v arminian_o or_o papist_n yet_o luther_n be_v a_o bless_a man_n and_o most_o orthodox_n divine_a because_o in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o galathian_o he_o seem_v to_o hold_v with_o our_o author_n in_o some_o thing_n though_o in_o other_o thing_n of_o great_a importance_n he_o be_v against_o he_o and_o we_o too_o but_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n and_o measure_v of_o our_o faith_n in_o these_o and_o all_o other_o religious_a matter_n and_o according_a to_o the_o prescript_n thereof_o we_o believe_v profess_v and_o preach_v to_o the_o people_n that_o as_o christ_n purchase_v all_o grace_n for_o we_o by_o his_o blood_n so_o he_o give_v it_o unto_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o use_n of_o his_o appoint_a mean_n and_o what_o save_v grace_n he_o once_o give_v unto_o his_o people_n he_o never_o whole_o take_v away_o from_o they_o again_o and_o that_o if_o at_o any_o time_n they_o fall_v into_o sin_n against_o knowledge_n and_o conscience_n he_o raise_v they_o up_o again_o by_o cause_v they_o to_o renew_v their_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o never_o whole_o leave_v they_o nor_o forsake_v they_o but_o give_v they_o still_o more_o grace_n according_a to_o their_o need_n and_o by_o grace_n prepare_v they_o for_o and_o at_o last_o bring_v they_o unto_o glory_n thus_o we_o desire_v and_o endeavour_v to_o preach_v christ_n and_o now_o we_o appeal_v to_o all_o who_o have_v any_o conscience_n of_o truth_n and_o honesty_n whether_o we_o neglect_v to_o preach_v christ_n or_o whether_o in_o the_o preach_n of_o christ_n we_o set_v up_o any_o thing_n in_o co-ordination_a with_o he_o yea_o whether_o we_o be_v not_o so_o far_o from_o it_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_n we_o make_v all_o subordinate_a to_o he_o and_o derive_v all_o grace_n from_o he_o not_o only_o the_o grace_n of_o justification_n and_o glorification_n which_o be_v promise_v on_o condition_n of_o faith_n repentance_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n but_o also_o the_o grace_n of_o effectual_a vocation_n faith_n and_o repentance_n in_o a_o word_n all_o the_o grace_n whereby_o we_o perform_v the_o whole_a condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n from_o first_o to_o last_o from_o the_o premise_n it_o may_v manifest_o appear_v to_o any_o that_o be_v not_o stark_o blind_a that_o we_o do_v not_o hold_v faith_n repentance_n and_o
we_o by_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o world_n or_o by_o our_o own_o mistake_a conscience_n and_o who_o dare_v deny_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o may_v not_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o world_n false_o accuse_v do_v not_o they_o too_o often_o false_o accuse_v we_o and_o say_v that_o we_o be_v hypocrite_n and_o have_v neither_o true_a faith_n nor_o repentance_n when_o this_o brother_n accuse_v we_o so_o false_o as_o he_o do_v in_o his_o letter_n we_o need_v not_o think_v it_o strange_a that_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o world_n do_v false_o accuse_v we_o yea_o we_o have_v that_o within_o our_o own_o breast_n that_o may_v sometime_o through_o the_o temptation_n of_o satan_n or_o the_o remainder_n of_o sinful_a darkness_n and_o unbelief_n false_o accuse_v we_o of_o predominant_a hypocrisy_n unbelief_n and_o impenitency_n now_o if_o at_o the_o same_o time_n we_o be_v real_o true_a convert_v and_o through_o grace_n sincere_o believe_v and_o repent_v what_o man_n that_o be_v endue_v with_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n can_v reasonable_o deny_v that_o our_o sincere_a faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v a_o sufficient_a defence_n and_o justification_n of_o we_o against_o all_o such_o false_a accusation_n sure_o we_o be_v that_o our_o infinite_o gracious_a god_n and_o saviour_n allow_v our_o plea_n and_o we_o most_o hearty_o bless_v his_o name_n for_o it_o have_v sometime_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o grace_n sensible_o help_v we_o to_o make_v our_o defence_n by_o clear_v up_o to_o we_o the_o sincerity_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o by_o enable_v we_o to_o take_v unto_o ourselves_o the_o comfort_n and_o to_o give_v he_o all_o the_o glory_n of_o our_o be_v sincere_a penitent_a believer_n notwithstanding_o all_o that_o the_o devil_n world_n or_o flesh_n say_v false_o to_o the_o contrary_n but_o as_o for_o those_o who_o be_v impenitent_a unbeliever_n indeed_o all_o the_o world_n know_v that_o the_o faith_n and_o repentance_n which_o they_o have_v not_o can_v never_o justify_v they_o from_o the_o unbelief_n and_o impenitency_n which_o they_o real_o have_v deep_o root_v in_o their_o heart_n in_o short_a we_o maintain_v that_o christ_n meritorious_a and_o satisfactory_a righteousness_n only_o justify_v we_o at_o god_n bar_n from_o all_o our_o sin_n against_o any_o law_n of_o god_n whatsoever_o as_o soon_o as_o we_o through_o grace_n perform_v the_o gospel-condition_n of_o sincere_a faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o then_o that_o sincere_a faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v our_o defence_n and_o justification_n before_o our_o most_o gracious_a god_n and_o before_o all_o honest_a man_n against_o all_o false_a accusation_n of_o our_o not_o have_v perform_v the_o gospel-condition_n of_o sincere_a faith_n and_o repentance_n but_o as_o for_o those_o who_o continue_v still_o in_o unbelief_n and_o impenitence_n they_o have_v nothing_o to_o defend_v and_o justify_v they_o but_o if_o they_o live_v and_o die_v in_o that_o stare_n their_o unbelief_n and_o impenitence_n will_v bind_v upon_o they_o to_o eternity_n the_o curse_n and_o condemnation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o moreover_o will_v bring_v upon_o they_o the_o sore_a vengeance_n of_o the_o despise_a gospel_n john_n 3.18_o 19_o 20._o and_o heb._n 2.2_o 3._o and_o 12.25_o thus_o achilles_n be_v on_o his_o leg_n again_o without_o receive_v the_o least_o hurt_n from_o the_o weak_a effort_n of_o that_o assailant_n who_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v to_o he_o without_o misrepresent_v he_o but_o that_o he_o do_v not_o like_o his_o language_n pretend_v that_o it_o be_v unscriptural_a 42._o let_v p._n 41_o 42._o dangerous_a and_o tend_v to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n etc._n etc._n but_o that_o pretence_n be_v utter_o false_a for_o 1._o that_o our_o sincere_a faith_n repentance_n and_o gospel-obedience_n be_v a_o righteousness_n be_v evident_a from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n for_o 1._o they_o be_v duty_n which_o we_o owe_v unto_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n and_o it_o be_v self-evident_a that_o it_o be_v a_o righteous_a thing_n to_o give_v unto_o god_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v go_n 2._o it_o be_v confess_v by_o our_o divine_n in_o their_o dispute_n against_o the_o papist_n that_o our_o faith_n repentance_n sincere_a obedience_n and_o holiness_n be_v a_o righteousness_n for_o they_o general_o grant_v that_o we_o have_v a_o twofold_a righteousness_n 1._o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n impute_v to_o we_o 2._o a_o righteousness_n inherent_a in_o we_o and_o adherent_a to_o we_o which_o we_o receive_v from_o christ_n by_o his_o spirit_n and_o grace_n this_o be_v express_o confess_v by_o that_o same_o bishop_n downham_n in_o his_o book_n of_o justification_n which_o our_o author_n page_n 12._o of_o his_o letter_n commend_v as_o a_o orthodox_n book_n there_o that_o reverend_n and_o learned_a divine_a affirm_v that_o we_o be_v righteous_a both_o by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n impute_v to_o we_o which_o be_v our_o principal_a righteousness_n and_o likewise_o by_o another_o righteousness_n wrought_v in_o we_o and_o perform_v by_o we_o which_o be_v our_o secondary_a subordinate_a righteousness_n if_o our_o author_n shall_v have_v the_o confidence_n to_o deny_v this_o it_o will_v be_v prove_v against_o he_o by_o authority_n both_o divine_a and_o humane_a 2._o this_o our_o subordinate_a righteousness_n be_v right_o term_v evangelical_n because_o it_o be_v require_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o be_v a_o comply_v with_o the_o term_n and_o a_o perform_n of_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o gospel_n 3._o that_o our_o sincere_a faith_n repentance_n and_o obedience_n be_v a_o subordinate_a righteousness_n by_o which_o we_o be_v defend_v and_o justify_v against_o the_o false_a charge_n of_o hypocrisy_n unbelief_n and_o impenitence_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v unscriptural_a that_o it_o agree_v exact_o with_o the_o very_a letter_n scope_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o james_n if_o that_o epistle_n be_v scripture_n as_o i_o hope_v we_o all_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v for_o there_o a_o man_n be_v express_o in_o formal_a term_n say_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n james_n 2.21_o 24_o 25._o which_o word_n can_v signify_v no_o less_o than_o this_o that_o the_o good_a work_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n of_o a_o good_a man_n do_v justify_v he_o against_o the_o false_a accusation_n of_o be_v a_o hypocrite_n or_o profane_a libertine_n as_o to_o what_o our_o author_n say_v in_o page_n 41._o that_o work_v of_o righteousness_n be_v only_o a_o justification_n of_o faith_n and_o not_o of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o believer_n it_o be_v a_o notorious_a falsehood_n and_o express_o contradict_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o faith_n that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n and_o particular_o that_o abraham_n and_o rahab_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o that_o their_o faith_n only_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o good_a work_n do_v justify_v faith_n but_o we_o also_o affirm_v with_o james_n that_o they_o do_v likewise_o justify_v the_o person_n of_o the_o believer_n but_o how_o be_v that_o why_o they_o justify_v his_o person_n in_o tantum_fw-la in_o so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v his_o defence_n and_o justification_n against_o the_o false_a charge_n of_o his_o be_v a_o hypocrite_n or_o libertine_n and_o not_o a_o true_a penitent_a obedient_a believer_n in_o all_o this_o neither_o do_v james_n nor_o we_o after_o he_o dishonour_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o least_o for_o our_o inherent_a and_o adherent_a righteousness_n be_v entire_o subordinate_a to_o christ_n impute_a righteousness_n it_o have_v also_o quite_o another_o use_n and_o office_n than_o christ_n impute_a righteousness_n and_o it_o proceed_v from_o it_o as_o the_o only_a meritorious_a cause_n thereof_o we_o abhor_v all_o opinion_n and_o practice_n that_o have_v the_o least_o real_a tendency_n to_o dishonour_n christ_n or_o his_o righteousness_n we_o ascribe_v this_o to_o christ_n as_o his_o peculiar_a incommunicable_a glory_n that_o as_o be_v say_v before_o his_o righteousness_n alone_o come_v in_o the_o place_n of_o that_o personal_a perfect_a sinless_a righteousness_n which_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o first_o covenant_n of_o innocency_n and_o law_n of_o work_n and_o as_o for_o that_o personal_a imperfect_a yet_o sincere_a righteousness_n which_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n we_o attain_v unto_o by_o believe_v repent_v and_o obey_v the_o gospel_n it_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n by_o perform_v whereof_o we_o get_v and_o keep_v a_o interest_n in_o christ_n impute_a righteousness_n by_o and_o for_o which_o alone_o we_o be_v justify_v from_o all_o our_o sin_n of_o what_o kind_n soever_o and_o have_v a_o right_n unto_o and_o at_o last_o get_v possession_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n in_o god_n heavenly_a kingdom_n we_o have_v
to_o he_o and_o upon_o the_o best_a reason_n and_o motive_n that_o appear_v to_o he_o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o thing_n willing_o to_o choose_v or_o refuse_v they_o and_o to_o act_v or_o not_o to_o act_v to_o act_v thus_o or_o otherwise_o as_o he_o see_v cause_n whence_o we_o may_v confident_o conclude_v that_o the_o formal_a essential_a nature_n of_o man_n freewill_n consist_v in_o this_o power_n of_o act_v willing_o according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o right_a reason_n and_o not_o in_o the_o former_a undeterminedness_n or_o indifferency_n of_o the_o will_v to_o do_v or_o not_o to_o do_v to_o do_v good_a or_o evil_a even_o when_o all_o thing_n pre-requisite_a to_o its_o do_v and_o act_v do_v meet_v together_o and_o concur_v to_o cause_v it_o to_o do_v and_o act_v upon_o this_o occasion_n we_o can_v but_o mention_v with_o approbation_n a_o passage_n of_o a_o very_a reverend_n and_o dignify_v divine_a of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o a_o discourse_n of_o christian_a liberty_n chap._n 11._o sect._n 3._o pag._n 139_o 140_o 141._o as_o for_o those_o that_o contend_v that_o it_o be_v more_o praiseworthy_a to_o do_v good_a and_o forbear_v evil_a have_v a_o power_n to_o do_v otherwise_o than_o to_o be_v under_o a_o necessity_n of_o so_o do_v suppose_v they_o mean_v by_o necessity_n such_o as_o be_v not_o from_o without_o or_o from_o a_o inward_a blind_a instinct_n but_o from_o a_o understand_a principle_n and_o perfection_n of_o nature_n i_o must_v needs_o tell_v they_o there_o be_v no_o proposition_n in_o the_o world_n more_o false_a or_o absurd_a i_o will_v not_o therefore_o stick_v to_o say_v that_o to_o have_v the_o will_v necessary_o determine_v to_o all_o good_a and_o from_o all_o evil_a from_o a_o overpower_v sense_n of_o the_o becomingness_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o vileness_n and_o odiousness_n of_o the_o other_o be_v the_o very_a perfection_n of_o liberty_n and_o this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v obtain_v by_o creature_n or_o by_o ourselves_o that_o by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n grace_n it_o be_v in_o a_o large_a measure_n even_o in_o this_o life_n attainable_a i_o mean_v such_o a_o sense_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a as_o shall_v certain_o determine_v we_o to_o good_a and_o against_o evil_n in_o most_o of_o the_o instance_n of_o each_o there_o be_v some_o immorality_n and_o wicked_a action_n that_o they_o who_o have_v attain_v to_o but_o very_o mean_a and_o ordinary_a degree_n of_o goodness_n can_v persuade_v themselves_o so_o much_o as_o to_o endeavour_v to_o reconcile_v their_o mind_n to_o nay_o there_o be_v some_o that_o no_o man_n can_v easy_o be_v suppose_v able_a to_o consent_v to_o but_o a_o extraordinary_o deprave_v and_o wicked_a wretch_n let_v the_o motive_n that_o be_v use_v to_o persuade_v he_o be_v what_o they_o will_n such_o as_o blaspheme_v of_o god_n contrive_v the_o murder_n of_o our_o parent_n of_o a_o most_o oblige_a friend_n torture_v of_o innocent_a babe_n and_o the_o like_a horrid_a villainy_n sure_o then_o a_o man_n be_v capable_a of_o such_o a_o vivid_n sense_n of_o the_o hatefulness_n of_o sin_n in_o gneral_n as_o will_v whilst_o it_o last_v render_v it_o impossible_a for_o he_o to_o will_v deliberate_o to_o commit_v any_o know_a sin_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v confess_v that_o we_o can_v hope_v to_o get_v past_o all_o danger_n of_o sudden_a surprisal_n so_o long_o as_o we_o inhabit_v these_o body_n and_o remain_v in_o our_o present_a unhappy_a circumstance_n but_o i_o say_v so_o powerful_a a_o sense_n of_o the_o infinite_a unrighteousness_n disingenuity_n unreasonableness_n folly_n and_o madness_n of_o oppose_v the_o holy_a will_n of_o our_o great_a creator_n and_o bless_a redeemer_n may_v by_o the_o divine_a assistance_n be_v acquire_v even_o on_o this_o side_n heaven_n as_o shall_v determine_v we_o effectual_o against_o all_o deliberate_a and_o wilful_a violation_n of_o the_o divine_a law_n for_o this_o we_o have_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o great_a apostle_n st._n john_n say_v in_o his_o 1_o epist_n 3.9_o whosoever_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n do_v not_o commit_v sin_n for_o his_o seed_n remain_v in_o he_o neither_o can_v he_o sin_v because_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n etc._n etc._n this_o excellent_a passage_n of_o bishop_n fowler_n be_v may_v help_v to_o clear_v up_o the_o foresay_a difficulty_n and_o to_o show_v we_o how_o the_o act_n of_o believe_v may_v be_v a_o duty_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o be_v produce_v by_o the_o effectual_a grace_n of_o god_n assist_v our_o faculty_n in_o that_o production_n for_o the_o efficacy_n of_o grace_n do_v not_o hinder_v but_o rather_o further_o the_o free_a exercise_n of_o our_o liberty_n of_o will_n in_o produce_v the_o act_n of_o faith_n so_o that_o our_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v a_o act_n of_o free_a obedience_n notwithstanding_o that_o the_o regenerate_a principle_n of_o spiritual_a life_n and_o seed_n of_o faith_n incline_v and_o byass_n we_o to_o act_v and_o the_o actual_a influence_n of_o the_o spirit_n cause_v we_o to_o reduce_v the_o principle_n into_o act_n we_o can_v see_v no_o reason_n at_o all_o why_o the_o actual_a believe_v in_o christ_n may_v not_o be_v both_o our_o duty_n and_o likewise_o the_o condition_n upon_o the_o free_a performance_n of_o which_o god_n promise_v to_o justify_v we_o to_o pardon_v our_o sin_n and_o give_v we_o a_o right_n and_o title_n to_o eternal_a life_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n our_o author_n confess_v that_o the_o covenant_n of_o redemption_n be_v strict_o conditional_a 10.18_o lett._n p._n 24._o mat._n 26.39_o joh._n 10.18_o and_o that_o christ_n offer_v up_o the_o humane_a nature_n in_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n be_v in_o part_n at_o least_o the_o strict_a condition_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o christ_n perform_v that_o condition_n as_o necessary_o and_o unavoidable_o as_o we_o perform_v the_o condition_n of_o actual_a believe_v when_o we_o be_v influence_v thereunto_o by_o the_o special_a and_o effectual_a grace_n of_o god_n this_o we_o take_v to_o be_v a_o demonstration_n that_o the_o mere_a infallible_a certainty_n and_o necessity_n of_o the_o elect_n believe_v in_o christ_n can_v hinder_v their_o faith_n from_o be_v a_o proper_a evangelical_n condition_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o have_v thus_o at_o large_a declare_v in_o what_o sense_n we_o hold_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n not_o to_o be_v conditional_a and_o in_o what_o sense_n to_o be_v conditional_a we_o shall_v next_o prove_v against_o our_o author_n that_o it_o real_o be_v conditional_a and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o without_o ground_n that_o we_o believe_v it_o so_o to_o be_v in_o order_n hereunto_o we_o premise_v these_o two_o thing_n 1._o that_o it_o be_v with_o respect_n to_o the_o subsequent_a blessing_n and_o benefit_n of_o the_o covenant_n that_o we_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v conditional_a that_o be_v it_o be_v with_o respect_n to_o justification_n and_o glorification_n for_o as_o the_o professor_n of_o leyden_n say_v in_o their_o synopsis_n of_o pure_a divinity_n disp_n 22._o pag._n 259._o promissiones_fw-la evangelii_n sunt_fw-la potissimum_fw-la dvae_fw-la 1._o de_fw-fr justificatione_n coram_fw-la deo_fw-la per_fw-la fidem_fw-la 2._o de_fw-fr haereditate_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la eternae_fw-la rom._n 1.17_o 1_o johan_n 2.25_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v principal_o two_o the_o first_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o justification_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n and_o the_o second_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o inherit_v eternal_a life_n it_o be_v these_o promise_n and_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n in_o respect_n of_o these_o promise_n which_o we_o hold_v to_o be_v conditional_a ii_o that_o by_o a_o condition_n we_o understand_v a_o duty_n which_o god_n require_v of_o we_o for_o obtain_v the_o promise_a benefit_n so_o as_o to_o suspend_v his_o give_v we_o the_o promise_a benefit_n upon_o our_o perform_v the_o duty_n require_v assure_v we_o that_o if_o we_o perform_v the_o duty_n require_v we_o shall_v have_v the_o promise_a benefit_n but_o if_o we_o do_v not_o perform_v the_o duty_n require_v we_o shall_v not_o have_v the_o benefit_n promise_v these_o two_o thing_n premise_v we_o come_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v real_o conditional_a as_o aforesaid_a with_o respect_n to_o its_o subsequent_a blessing_n and_o benefit_n and_o this_o we_o shall_v do_v 1._o by_o scripture_n 2._o by_o reason_n consonant_n to_o scripture_n 3._o by_o testimony_n of_o orthodox_n divine_v even_o of_o those_o very_a divine_n who_o our_o author_n affirm_v to_o be_v against_o we_o and_o 1._o we_o prove_v by_o scripture_n that_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v conditional_a in_o the_o sense_n before_o explain_v and_o we_o begin_v with_o rom._n 10._o v._n 9_o where_o though_o the_o word_n condition_n be_v not_o express_v yet_o we_o have_v the_o
life_n and_o therefore_o as_o he_o say_v again_o 6.23_o john_n 13.17_o rom._n 6.23_o if_o you_o know_v these_o thing_n happy_a be_v you_o if_o you_o do_v they_o and_o his_o apostle_n paul_n say_v that_o god_n give_v eternal_a life_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n but_o to_o who_o do_v he_o give_v it_o why_o that_o be_v visible_a from_o the_o 22._o verse_n immediate_o before_o it_o be_v to_o they_o who_o be_v make_v free_a from_o sin_n and_o become_v servant_n to_o god_n have_v their_o fruit_n unto_o holiness_n it_o be_v we_o say_v to_o they_o that_o god_n through_o christ_n give_v eternal_a life_n as_o a_o reward_n of_o their_o holy_a obedience_n and_o well-doing_n god_n in_o christ_n be_v most_o certain_o a_o rector_n or_o ruler_n who_o according_a to_o his_o law_n of_o grace_n will_v distribute_v at_o last_o glorious_a reward_n to_o all_o that_o fear_v his_o name_n 7._o revel_v 11.18_o 2_o cor._n 5.10_o james_n 1.25_o rom._n 2.6_o 7._o small_a and_o great_a and_o as_o st._n james_n say_v then_o shall_v the_o obedient_a believer_n the_o doer_n of_o the_o lord_n work_n be_v bless_v in_o his_o deed_n then_o as_o holy_a paul_n say_v to_o they_o who_o by_o patient_a continuance_n in_o well-doing_n have_v seek_v for_o glory_n and_o honour_n and_o immortality_n god_n will_v render_v eternal_a life_n this_o god_n will_v do_v at_o the_o last_o day_n to_o all_o that_o have_v so_o continue_v in_o well-doing_n to_o the_o end_n for_o so_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n have_v plain_o say_v by_o paul_n and_o it_o be_v infallible_o true_a and_o will_v continue_v to_o be_v for_o ever_o true_a 5.6_o 1_o cor._n 7.19_o with_o gal._n 5.6_o let_v who_o will_v contradict_v it_o and_o say_v it_o be_v false_a bless_a paul_n assure_v again_o that_o circumcision_n be_v nothing_o and_o vncircumeision_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n 5.9_o heb._n 5.9_o and_o that_o christ_n be_v become_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n to_o all_o they_o that_o obey_v he_o yea_o our_o lord_n christ_n himself_o say_v be_v thou_o faithful_a unto_o death_n 22.14_o rev._n 2.10_o and_o 3.21_o rev._n 22.14_o and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o a_o crown_n of_o life_n and_o that_o he_o who_o overcome_v shall_v sit_v with_o he_o on_o his_o throne_n to_o all_o which_o agree_v that_o we_o read_v in_o the_o last_o of_o the_o revelation_n bless_a be_v they_o that_o do_v his_o christ_n commandment_n that_o they_o may_v have_v right_a to_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n and_o may_v enter_v in_o through_o the_o gate_n into_o the_o city_n here_o we_o see_v the_o lord_n himself_o have_v declare_v they_o bless_v that_o sincere_o keep_v his_o commandment_n because_o thereby_o 1._o they_o have_v a_o right_n to_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n whilst_o they_o live_v and_o 2._o when_o they_o die_v they_o enter_v upon_o the_o full_a possession_n of_o that_o which_o before_o they_o have_v a_o right_n unto_o they_o enter_v in_o through_o the_o gate_n into_o the_o city_n but_o you_o will_v say_v how_o have_v we_o right_a unto_o and_o entrance_n upon_o full_a possession_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n by_o keep_v christ_n commandment_n we_o answer_v the_o keep_n christ_n commandment_n do_v not_o merit_n or_o give_v we_o either_o one_o or_o the_o other_o of_o they_o but_o it_o be_v the_o way_n and_o mean_n which_o we_o use_v and_o the_o condition_n which_o through_o grace_n we_o perform_v for_o the_o have_v our_o right_n to_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n continue_v to_o we_o or_o not_o take_v from_o we_o whilst_o we_o live_v and_o for_o our_o have_v full_a possession_n of_o life_n and_o happiness_n give_v we_o when_o we_o die_v so_o that_o it_o be_v god_n who_o first_o for_o christ_n sake_n give_v that_o still_o continue_v our_o right_n to_o we_o and_o at_o last_o will_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n that_o be_v for_o christ_n sake_n give_v we_o full_a possession_n but_o he_o will_v do_v all_o this_o for_o we_o in_o the_o way_n of_o continue_a faith_n and_o obedience_n and_o on_o condition_n that_o we_o sincere_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n unto_o the_o end_n thus_o we_o have_v prove_v from_o scripture_n that_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o condition_n of_o glorification_n as_o our_o first_o believe_v and_o repent_v be_v the_o condition_n on_o our_o part_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n for_o as_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o gospel-condition_n agree_v to_o faith_n and_o repentance_n with_o respect_n to_o our_o justification_n and_o pardon_n of_o sin_n so_o it_o agree_v to_o sincere_a obedience_n with_o respect_n to_o our_o glorification_n and_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o to_o whatsoever_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o gospel-condition_n agree_v to_o that_o the_o nature_n and_o essence_n of_o a_o gospel-condition_n must_v agree_v also_o from_o all_o which_o we_o conclude_v that_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v conditional_a with_o respect_n to_o the_o subsequent_a blessing_n and_o benefit_n of_o it_o the_o two_o principal_a promise_n to_o wit_n of_o justification_n and_o glorification_n be_v certain_o conditional_a which_o be_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v prove_v and_o have_v first_o demonstrate_v it_o by_o scripture_n second_o head_n of_o argument_n we_o second_o prove_v it_o by_o reason_n agreeable_a to_o scripture_n and_o reason_n 1_o first_o if_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v not_o conditional_a with_o respect_n to_o its_o subsequent_a blessing_n and_o benefit_n particular_o if_o the_o promise_n of_o justification_n and_o pardon_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o conditional_a we_o do_v not_o see_v how_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o a_o minister_n to_o be_v faithful_a to_o god_n to_o his_o own_o conscience_n and_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o people_n in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o they_o it_o be_v true_a it_o be_v easy_o conceivable_a how_o a_o minister_n may_v be_v faithful_a in_o lay_v before_o people_n the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o tell_v they_o that_o those_o commandment_n oblige_v they_o to_o believe_v and_o repent_v and_o that_o if_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v and_o repent_v they_o will_v grievous_o sin_v against_o the_o lord_n and_o draw_v down_o his_o wrath_n upon_o their_o own_o soul_n but_o now_o wh●n_v he_o proceed_v to_o encourage_v they_o to_o believe_v and_o repent_v by_o set_v forth_o to_o they_o god_n promise_n of_o justification_n and_o pardon_n of_o sin_n we_o do_v not_o conceive_v how_o he_o can_v do_v it_o honest_o and_o faithful_o if_o the_o promise_n of_o justification_n and_o pardon_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o conditional_a for_o when_o a_o minister_n be_v preach_v to_o a_o promiscuous_a mix_a multitude_n of_o people_n and_o for_o their_o encouragement_n to_o believe_v and_o repent_v be_v declare_v to_o they_o god_n gospel-promise_n of_o justification_n and_o pardon_n of_o sin_n either_o he_o must_v declare_v and_o preach_v this_o promise_n to_o they_o conditional_o or_o absolute_o if_o conditional_o assure_v they_o from_o the_o lord_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v justify_v and_o pardon_v through_o christ_n righteousness_n impute_v to_o they_o if_o they_o sincere_o believe_v and_o repent_v than_o the_o promise_v itself_o be_v conditional_a and_o the_o covenant_n also_o be_v in_o that_o respect_n conditional_a for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o condition_n in_o the_o gospel-promise_n and_o covenant_n how_o can_v the_o minister_n preach_v it_o conditional_o to_o the_o people_n do_v he_o not_o take_v god_n name_n in_o vain_a and_o abuse_v the_o people_n also_o by_o tell_v they_o from_o the_o lord_n that_o all_o they_o who_o perform_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o gospel-promise_n by_o believe_v and_o repent_v shall_v have_v the_o promise_a benefit_n to_o wit_n justification_n and_o pardon_n of_o sin_n if_o there_o be_v no_o condition_n in_o the_o promise_n necessary_a to_o be_v perform_v by_o they_o for_o obtain_v the_o promise_a benefit_n either_o then_o a_o minister_n must_v not_o preach_v the_o promise_n conditional_o to_o the_o people_n or_o there_o be_v and_o must_v be_v a_o condition_n in_o the_o promise_n and_o if_o there_o be_v a_o condition_n in_o the_o promise_n than_o we_o have_v what_o we_o aim_v at_o for_o we_o desire_v no_o more_o to_o prove_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n to_o be_v conditional_a but_o 2._o if_o our_o author_n will_v say_v that_o the_o minister_n must_v preach_v the_o promise_n of_o justification_n and_o pardon_n absolute_o to_o all_o the_o people_n assure_v they_o from_o the_o lord_n that_o they_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v justify_v and_o pardon_v through_o christ_n absolute_o whether_o they_o perform_v any_o condition_n or_o not_o whether_o they_o do_v any_o duty_n or_o not_o whether_o they_o believe_v and_o repent_v or_o not_o then_o we_o answer_v that_o the_o minister_n who_o shall_v preach_v
apprehensive_a nature_n and_o its_o apprehend_v christ_n righteousness_n the_o will_n of_o god_n still_o presuppose_v do_v make_v this_o righteousness_n we_o even_o as_o a_o gift_n become_v we_o by_o our_o receive_n of_o it_o these_o worthy_a divine_n we_o see_v be_v of_o our_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o nature_n of_o faith_n itself_o nor_o its_o relation_n unto_o christ_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o it_o that_o do_v formal_o make_v it_o to_o be_v the_o instrumental_a mean_n or_o condition_n of_o our_o justification_n but_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n ordain_v it_o to_o that_o office_n it_o be_v true_a they_o hold_v and_o we_o with_o they_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v a_o congruity_n and_o fitness_n in_o faith_n to_o be_v the_o receptive_a and_o applicative_a condition_n of_o the_o promise_n and_o of_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n therein_o because_o it_o be_v of_o a_o receptive_a applicative_a nature_n yet_o that_o do_v not_o formal_o make_v it_o the_o condition_n for_o notwithstanding_o its_o fitness_n to_o be_v the_o condition_n yet_o it_o will_v never_o have_v actual_o and_o formal_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o justification_n nor_o will_v it_o ever_o have_v avail_v we_o to_o justification_n if_o god_n by_o a_o act_n of_o his_o freewill_n have_v not_o make_v it_o the_o condition_n of_o justification_n be_v not_o justification_n a_o great_a blessing_n and_o benefit_n which_o be_v in_o the_o power_n and_o at_o the_o disposal_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o may_v not_o god_n do_v what_o he_o will_v with_o his_o own_o may_v not_o he_o give_v his_o blessing_n and_o benefit_n upon_o what_o term_n and_o condition_n he_o and_o his_o son_n shall_v think_v fit_a to_o agree_v upon_o this_o sure_o be_v so_o evident_a that_o no_o reasonable_a man_n can_v have_v reason_n to_o deny_v it_o and_o then_o the_o consequence_n be_v as_o evident_a that_o it_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n intrinsical_a to_o faith_n and_o so_o not_o its_o relation_n to_o christ_n which_o be_v intrinsical_v to_o it_o that_o can_v next_o and_o formal_o make_v it_o the_o instrumental_a mean_n or_o condition_n of_o justification_n but_o it_o be_v and_o must_v be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o his_o son_n christ_n jesus_n agree_v that_o faith_n shall_v be_v and_o ordain_v faith_n to_o be_v the_o instrumental_a mean_n term_n and_o condition_n of_o our_o justification_n for_o these_o reason_n we_o dissent_v and_o all_o man_n that_o love_v the_o truth_n shall_v dissent_v from_o our_o author_n if_o by_o say_v that_o a_o accept_v faith_n be_v the_o native_a condition_n of_o the_o offer_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o all_o his_o fullness_n he_o mean_v that_o faith_n of_o its_o own_o nature_n necessary_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o promise_n and_o can_v not_o possible_o 〈◊〉_d otherwise_o so_o that_o 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o condition_n do_v necessary_o and_o whole_o arise_v from_o its_o own_o intrinsical_a nature_n and_o not_o at_o all_o from_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n constitute_v and_o ordain_v it_o do_v that_o office_n of_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o promise_n we_o dare_v not_o uscribe_v so_o much_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n to_o the_o intrinsical_a nature_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o justification_n but_o if_o by_o say_v that_o a_o accept_n faith_n be_v the_o native_a condition_n of_o the_o offer_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o fullness_n our_o author_n mean_v no_o more_o but_o this_o that_o faith_n be_v of_o a_o receptive_a nature_n it_o have_v a_o natural_a aptitude_n and_o fitness_n to_o be_v make_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o justification_n and_o that_o that_o be_v a_o reason_n why_o it_o please_v god_n and_o christ_n to_o make_v and_o constitute_v faith_n to_o be_v the_o receptive_a condition_n of_o justification_n we_o shall_v not_o oppose_v but_o join_v with_o he_o in_o this_o sense_n of_o his_o word_n but_o though_o we_o grant_v he_o for_o the_o reason_n aforesaid_a that_o faith_n be_v the_o one_o native_a receptive_a condition_n of_o justification_n yet_o we_o can_v never_o grant_v that_o faith_n take_v in_o his_o sense_n for_o the_o one_o single_a grace_n or_o it_o may_v be_v for_o one_o single_a act_n of_o the_o one_o single_a grace_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o only_a condition_n of_o justification_n and_o much_o less_o that_o it_o be_v the_o only_a condition_n of_o glorification_n for_o as_o faith_n be_v the_o one_o yea_o and_o only_o receptive_a condition_n so_o true_a repentance_n it_o the_o dispositive_a condition_n of_o justification_n or_o of_o the_o person_n to_o be_v justify_v in_o order_n to_o his_o justification_n and_o moreover_o repontance_n be_v as_o native_a a_o condition_n in_o its_o kind_n as_o faith_n in_o its_o kind_n it_o be_v we_o native_a a_o dispositive_a condition_n as_o faith_n be_v a_o native_a receptive_a condition_n for_o sincere_a repentance_n be_v a_o godly_a sorrow_n for_o have_v displease_v and_o dishonour_v god_n and_o a_o firm_a resolution_n through_o grace_n to_o do_v so_o no_o more_o it_o do_v from_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o thing_n dispose_v and_o prepare_v the_o soul_n for_o pardon_n and_o then_o god_n have_v likewise_o for_o that_o reason_n will_v ordain_v and_o constitute_v repentance_n to_o be_v the_o dispositive_a condition_n of_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o justification_n as_o we_o prove_v before_o by_o plain_a testimony_n of_o god_n holy_a word_n and_o though_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v equal_o necessary_a from_o the_o will_n ordination_n and_o constitution_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n yet_o of_o the_o two_o repentance_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o most_o necessary_a with_o that_o kind_n of_o necessity_n which_o arise_v precise_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n for_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v absolute_o impossible_a because_o repugnant_a to_o the_o perfection_n of_o god_n holy_a nature_n to_o justify_v pardon_v and_o love_n with_o a_o love_n of_o complacency_n a_o rebellious_a sinner_n whilst_o he_o be_v impenitent_a and_o continue_v his_o full_a resolution_n to_o go_v on_o in_o his_o rebellion_n and_o enmity_n against_o heaven_n the_o sense_n of_o this_o truth_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v much_o upon_o the_o very_a reverend_n and_o learned_a mr._n clarkson_n spirit_n and_o therefore_o it_o make_v he_o say_v in_o his_o discourse_n of_o free_a grace_n page_n 129_o 130_o 131._o if_o the_o term_n or_o condition_n be_v such_o as_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o the_o mercy_n offer_v shall_v be_v effect_v without_o they_o then_o the_o offer_v of_o save_a mercy_n be_v as_o free_v and_o gracious_a as_o can_v be_v as_o there_o be_v any_o possibility_n they_o shall_v be_v and_o no_o more_o can_v be_v desire_v then_o he_o take_v repentance_n for_o his_o instance_n we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o he_o altogether_o exclude_v the_o other_o term_n but_o that_o repentance_n be_v that_o which_o he_o jingle_v out_o to_o instance_n in_o and_o which_o he_o much_o insist_o upon_o as_o take_v in_o its_o latitude_n and_o thus_o he_o go_v on_o let_v i_o clear_v this_o in_o one_o of_o those_o term_n which_o be_v comprehensive_a of_o all_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v require_v of_o those_o who_o will_v partake_v of_o save_v mercy_n that_o they_o leave_v sin_n forsake_v their_o evil_a way_n prov._n 28.13_o isa_n 55.7_o 2_o tim._n 2.19_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o condition_n and_o whatever_o be_v require_v in_o other_o term_n be_v include_v in_o this_o or_o may_v be_v resolve_v into_o it_o now_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o save_a mercy_n shall_v otherwise_o be_v have_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v receive_v or_o enjoy_v but_o upon_o these_o term_n not_o only_o because_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v it_o so_o but_o because_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n do_v so_o require_v it_o that_o it_o be_v not_o otherwise_o feasible_a for_o sin_n be_v our_o impotency_n now_o can_v we_o possible_o have_v strength_n in_o the_o inner_a man_n if_o we_o will_v not_o part_v with_o our_o weakness_n sin_n be_v our_o deformity_n that_o which_o render_v our_o soul_n loathsome_a and_o ugly_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n now_o can_v our_o soul_n be_v make_v lovely_a if_o we_o will_v not_o part_v with_o that_o which_o be_v our_o defilement_n and_o ugliness_n can_v we_o be_v make_v clean_o if_o we_o will_v not_o part_v with_o our_o leprosy_n sin_n be_v our_o enmity_n against_o god_n therein_o it_o consist_v now_o can_v we_o possible_o be_v reconcile_v if_o we_o will_v not_o lay_v aside_o our_o enmity_n sin_n be_v the_o wound_n the_o mortal_a disease_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o can_v you_o be_v heal_v if_o you_o will_v not_o part_v with_o your_o disease_n sin_n be_v your_o misery_n and_o can_v you_o be_v happy_a if_o not_o part_v with_o your_o misery_n happiness_n consist_v in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o god_n
sorrow_n and_o pain_n than_o to_o hear_v that_o this_o be_v the_o command_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n the_o bridegroom_n that_o they_o be_v sure_o persuade_v that_o remission_n of_o sin_n or_o reconciliation_n be_v give_v not_o for_o our_o worthiness_n but_o free_o through_o mercy_n for_o christ_n sake_n that_o the_o benefit_n may_v be_v certain_a as_o for_o the_o word_n justification_n in_o those_o passage_n of_o paul_n it_o signify_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n or_o reconciliation_n or_o imputation_n of_o righteousness_n that_o be_v the_o acceptation_n of_o the_o person_n and_o in_o the_o same_o article_n the_o paragraph_n concern_v good_a work_n this_o new_a life_n then_o shall_v be_v obedience_n towards_o god_n and_o the_o gospel_n preach_v repentance_n nor_o can_v there_o be_v faith_n but_o in_o those_o who_o repent_v because_o faith_n comfort_v man_n heart_n in_o contrition_n and_o fear_n of_o sin_n etc._n etc._n moreover_o we_o also_o teach_v concern_v this_o obedience_n that_o they_o who_o commit_v mortal_a sin_n that_o be_v wilful_a presumptuous_a sin_n against_o knowledge_n and_o conscience_n be_v not_o just_a because_o god_n require_v this_o obedience_n that_o we_o resist_v our_o corrupt_a lust_n and_o affection_n but_o those_o who_o do_v not_o resist_v but_o obey_v they_o against_o the_o command_n of_o god_n and_o do_v action_n against_o their_o conscience_n they_o be_v unjust_a and_o they_o neither_o retain_v the_o holy_a spirit_n nor_o faith_n that_o be_v confidence_n of_o mercy_n for_o in_o those_o who_o delight_n in_o sin_n and_o do_v not_o repent_v there_o can_v indeed_o be_v that_o trust_n or_o confidence_n which_o may_v seek_v for_o remission_n of_o sin_n this_o passage_n of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n we_o thus_o understand_v that_o habitual_a reign_v wilful_a sin_n against_o conscience_n and_o without_o repentance_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o reconciliation_n and_o we_o think_v that_o all_o protestant_n except_o antinomian_o be_v agree_v in_o this_o one_o passage_n more_o and_o we_o have_v do_v with_o this_o confession_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v in_o the_o same_o 20_o article_n of_o faith_n a_o little_a before_o the_o passage_n last_o quote_v there_o be_v no_o need_n here_o of_o disstation_n about_o predestination_n and_o the_o like_a for_o the_o promise_n be_v universal_a and_o it_o take_v nothing_o from_o work_n yea_o it_o stir_v up_o to_o faith_n and_o to_o work_n that_o be_v true_o good_a for_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v transfer_v or_o remove_v from_o our_o work_n unto_o god_n mercy_n not_o that_o we_o may_v do_v nothing_o but_o much_o rather_o that_o we_o may_v know_v how_o our_o obedience_n please_v god_n in_o our_o so_o great_a infirmity_n this_o be_v the_o first_o protestant_a confession_n of_o faith_n write_v by_o melancthon_n receive_v by_o the_o protestant_a church_n subscribe_v by_o their_o minister_n and_o that_o not_o only_o by_o luther_n and_o those_o of_o his_o party_n but_o even_o by_o calvin_n also_o it_o be_v likewise_o subscribe_v by_o seven_o prince_n and_o duke_n in_o germany_n and_o by_o the_o magistrate_n of_o city_n and_o present_v unto_o the_o emperor_n charles_n v._o in_o the_o year_n 1530._o we_o hope_v then_o it_o will_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o this_o augustan_n confession_n contain_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o point_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o repentance_n unto_o the_o obtain_n pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o sincere_a obedience_n unto_o the_o obtain_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o if_o so_o than_o our_o doctrine_n in_o those_o point_n be_v likewise_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o it_o be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n as_o to_o those_o matter_n of_o which_o we_o treat_v from_o the_o augustan_n confession_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o many_o prince_n pastor_n city_n and_o church_n who_o subscribe_v and_o receive_v it_o we_o come_v to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o we_o have_v all_o subscribe_v the_o 11_o article_n concern_v justification_n we_o most_o hearty_o embrace_v and_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o wholesome_a doctrine_n and_o full_a of_o comfort_n that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n only_o in_o that_o sense_n which_o be_v more_o large_o explain_v in_o the_o homily_n of_o justification_n to_o which_o the_o article_n express_o refer_v we_o and_o which_o by_o consequence_n we_o have_v subscribe_v by_o subscribe_v the_o article_n it_o be_v call_v a_o sermon_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n by_o christ_n only_o and_o a_o very_a good_a sermon_n it_o be_v worth_a a_o thousand_o of_o our_o author_n letter_n which_o deserve_v not_o to_o be_v mention_v the_o same_o day_n with_o it_o for_o understand_v then_o the_o true_a and_o full_a meaning_n of_o the_o article_n of_o justification_n we_o must_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o homily_n or_o sermon_n of_o salvation_n in_o which_o excellent_a sermon_n pag._n 13._o we_o read_v as_o follow_v 1673._o london_n edit_n 1673._o that_o though_o according_a to_o the_o apostle_n we_o be_v justify_v by_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n only_o and_o that_o that_o faith_n be_v the_o gist_n of_o god_n yet_o that_o faith_n do_v not_o shut_v out_o repentance_n hope_n love_n dread_a and_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n to_o be_v join_v with_o faith_n in_o every_o man_n that_o be_v justify_v but_o it_o shut_v they_o out_o from_o the_o office_n of_o justify_v so_o that_o although_o they_o be_v all_o present_a together_o mark_n that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o necessary_o follow_v and_o flow_v from_o faith_n in_o time_n but_o when_o we_o be_v first_o justify_v they_o be_v present_a together_o with_o it_o in_o he_o that_o be_v justify_v yet_o they_o justify_v not_o altogether_o nor_o the_o faith_n also_o do_v not_o shut_v out_o the_o justice_n of_o our_o good_a work_n as_o necessary_a to_o be_v do_v afterward_o of_o duty_n towards_o god_n for_o we_o be_v most_o bind_v to_o serve_v god_n in_o do_v good_a deed_n command_v by_o he_o in_o his_o holy_a scripture_n all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n but_o it_o exclude_v they_o so_o that_o we_o may_v not_o do_v they_o to_o this_o intent_n to_o be_v make_v good_a by_o do_v they_o for_o all_o the_o good_a work_n that_o we_o can_v do_v be_v imperfect_a and_o therefore_o not_o able_a to_o deserve_v our_o justification_n etc._n etc._n again_o in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o that_o sermon_n pag._n 15._o nevertheless_o this_o sentence_n that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n only_o be_v not_o so_o mean_v of_o they_o that_o the_o say_v justify_v faith_n be_v alone_o in_o man_n without_o true_a repentance_n hope_n charity_n dread_a and_o fear_v of_o god_n at_o any_o time_n and_o season_n nor_o when_o they_o say_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v free_o they_o mean_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v or_o may_v afterward_o be_v idle_a and_o that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v require_v on_o our_o part_n afterward_o neither_o they_o mean_v not_o so_o to_o be_v justify_v without_o good_a work_n that_o we_o shall_v do_v no_o good_a work_n at_o all_o but_o this_o say_n that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n only_o free_o and_o without_o work_n be_v speak_v for_o to_o take_v away_o clear_o all_o merit_n of_o our_o work_n as_o be_v unable_a to_o deserve_v our_o justification_n at_o god_n hand_n and_o thereby_o most_o plain_o to_o express_v the_o weakness_n of_o man_n and_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n the_o great_a infirmity_n of_o ourselves_o and_o the_o may_v and_o power_n of_o god_n the_o imperfectness_n of_o our_o own_o work_n and_o the_o most_o abundant_a grace_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o therefore_o whole_o to_o ascribe_v the_o merit_n and_o deserve_a of_o our_o justification_n unto_o christ_n only_o and_o his_o most_o precious_a bloodshedding_a this_o faith_n the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v we_o this_o be_v the_o strong_a rock_n and_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n this_o doctrine_n all_o old_a and_o ancient_a author_n of_o christ_n church_n do_v approve_v this_o doctrine_n advance_v and_o set_v forth_o the_o true_a glory_n of_o christ_n and_o beat_v down_o the_o vainglory_n of_o man_n this_o whosoever_o deni_v be_v not_o be_v account_v for_o a_o christian_a man_n nor_o for_o a_o setter_n forth_o of_o christ_n glory_n but_o for_o a_o adversary_n to_o christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n and_o for_o a_o setter_n forth_o of_o man_n vainglory_n again_o pag._n 16._o the_o true_a meaning_n and_o understanding_n of_o this_o doctrine_n we_o be_v justify_v free_o by_o faith_n without_o work_n or_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n only_o be_v not_o that_o this_o our_o own_o act_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n or_o this_o our_o faith_n in_o christ_n which_o be_v within_o we_o
have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o art_n 6._o he_o say_v that_o faith_n embrace_n and_o appropriate_n to_o one_o self_n christ_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o he_o for_o since_o be_v be_v offer_v we_o to_o be_v possess_v by_o we_o with_o this_o condition_n if_o we_o believe_v in_o he_o one_o of_o the_o two_o th●n_n must_v necessary_o be_v to_o wit_n either_o that_o all_o be_v not_o in_o christ_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o our_o salvation_n or_o if_o all_o be_v in_o he_o than_o he_o possess_v all_o thing_n who_o possess_v christ_n by_o faith_n and_o in_o his_o short_a confession_n art_n 10._o itaque_fw-la meritò_fw-la concludere_fw-la possumus_fw-la in_fw-la uno_fw-la jesus_n christo_fw-la contra_fw-la omne_fw-la mala_fw-la quae_fw-la conscièntias_fw-la nostras_fw-la terrere_fw-la possunt_fw-la praesentissima_fw-la remedia_fw-la reperiri_fw-la sed_fw-la addenda_fw-la est_fw-la conditio_fw-la si_fw-la ista_fw-la remedia_fw-la nobis_fw-la applicemus_fw-la therefore_o we_o may_v just_o conclude_v that_o in_o one_o jesus_n christ_n there_o be_v find_v sovereign_a infallible_a remedy_n against_o all_o the_o evil_n that_o can_v terrify_v our_o conscience_n but_o this_o condition_n must_v be_v add_v if_o we_o apply_v those_o remedy_n to_o ourselves_o we_o see_v beza_n put_v it_o into_o his_o confession_n of_o faith_n as_o a_o article_n of_o his_o belief_n that_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n have_v a_o condition_n and_o be_v conditional_a the_o same_o author_n in_o his_o little_a book_n of_o question_n and_o answer_n the_o first_o part_n to_o the_o question_n you_o say_v then_o that_o good_a work_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n he_o answer_n that_o if_o faith_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n then_o good_a work_n be_v likewise_o necessary_a to_o it_o non_fw-la tamen_fw-la ut_fw-la salatis_fw-la causam_fw-la yet_o not_o as_o the_o cause_n of_o salvation_n for_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o therefore_o live_v only_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n but_o as_o something_o that_o be_v necessary_o join_v with_o faith_n as_o paul_n say_v they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n who_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n rom._n 8.14_o and_o john_n that_o he_o be_v righteous_a who_o do_v righteousness_n 1_o john_n 4.7_o so_o that_o it_o plain_o appear_v they_o be_v contentious_a man_n who_o condemn_v the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n as_o a_o false_a doctrine_n thus_o beza_n and_o we_o do_v no_o more_o say_v that_o good_a work_n be_v necessary_a as_o the_o cause_n of_o salvation_n than_o he_o do_v nor_o do_v we_o any_o more_o than_o he_o say_v that_o good_a work_n without_o faith_n be_v the_o necessary_a condition_n of_o obtain_v salvation_n on_o the_o contrary_n we_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v the_o spring_n of_o all_o our_o good_a motion_n and_o run_v through_o they_o all_o and_o that_o it_o be_v good_a work_v do_v from_o a_o principle_n of_o faith_n and_o love_n which_o be_v the_o necessary_a condition_n of_o obtain_v salvation_n last_o to_o the_o question_n what_o then_o if_o faith_n be_v first_o give_v to_o a_o man_n at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n for_o this_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o penitent_a thief_n who_o be_v crucify_v with_o christ_n what_o good_a work_n can_v such_o a_o man_n do_v beza_n answer_v yea_o the_o faith_n of_o that_o thief_n in_o a_o most_o short_a time_n be_v unspeakable_o energetical_a or_o effectual_a and_o operative_a for_o he_o reprove_v the_o other_o thief_n for_o his_o blasphemy_n and_o wickedness_n he_o abhor_v his_o own_o crime_n with_o a_o firm_a and_o most_o wonderful_a faith_n he_o acknowledge_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o eternal_a king_n and_o pray_v unto_o he_o as_o a_o saviour_n under_o the_o very_a ignominy_n and_o shame_n of_o the_o cross_n when_o all_o his_o own_o disciple_n be_v silent_a and_o speak_v not_o one_o word_n for_o he_o he_o do_v also_o open_o rebuke_v the_o jew_n for_o their_o cruelty_n and_o impious_a expression_n but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o confession_n of_o sin_n prayer_n to_o god_n the_o father_n through_o christ_n and_o thanksgiving_n be_v the_o most_o excellent_a work_n of_o the_o first_o table_n which_o in_o no_o man_n can_v be_v whole_o separate_v from_o faith_n and_o although_o some_o may_v be_v so_o prevent_v by_o death_n as_o not_o to_o have_v power_n to_o show_v forth_o any_o work_n of_o the_o second_o table_n yet_o in_o such_o a_o man_n faith_n be_v not_o therefore_o to_o be_v esteem_v idle_a and_o unfruitful_a because_o it_o have_v love_n conjoin_v though_o not_o in_o energy_n and_o act_n yet_o in_o power_n and_o principle_n thus_o far_o beza_n to_o which_o we_o agree_v as_o we_o say_v before_o in_o such_o extraordinary_a case_n god_n require_v no_o more_o of_o man_n as_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o their_o salvation_n than_o they_o have_v time_n and_o strength_n to_o perform_v but_o accept_v the_o will_n for_o the_o deed_n through_o jesus_n christ_n 2_o cor._n 8.12_o our_o next_o witness_n be_v mr._n fox_n the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n of_o martyr_n the_o world_n have_v be_v tell_v already_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o gospel-truth_n pag._n 35._o that_o holy_a mr._n fox_n in_o his_o latin_a book_n of_o christ_n free_o justify_v maintain_v that_o faith_n be_v the_o proper_a receptive_a applicative_a condition_n of_o justification_n and_o that_o repentance_n be_v the_o dispositive_a condition_n it_o be_v that_o which_o prepare_v we_o for_o receive_v justification_n but_o some_o who_o read_v that_o discourse_n of_o he_o in_o the_o book_n of_o martyr_n which_o our_o author_n direct_v they_o unto_o may_v possible_o object_n that_o in_o the_o second_o volume_n of_o the_o book_n of_o martyr_n pag._n 192._o he_o say_v the_o promise_n of_o life_n and_o salvation_n be_v offer_v unto_o we_o free_o without_o any_o condition_n we_o answer_v it_o be_v true_a he_o do_v say_v so_o but_o he_o mean_v that_o it_o be_v without_o any_o meritorious_a legal_a condition_n and_o all_o such_o condition_n we_o reject_v as_o much_o as_o he_o do_v or_o any_o man_n can_v do_v as_o appear_v by_o what_o we_o have_v say_v at_o large_a in_o give_v account_n of_o our_o judgement_n concern_v the_o conditionality_n of_o the_o covenant_n that_o this_o be_v mr._n fox_n true_a meaning_n appear_v from_o his_o own_o word_n in_o the_o same_o page_n a_o few_o line_n after_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o gospel_n say_v he_o differ_v from_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o law_n in_o this_o that_o it_o have_v no_o condition_n adjoin_v of_o our_o merit_v but_o only_o respect_v the_o merit_n of_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n if_o our_o author_n will_v not_o admit_v of_o this_o explication_n of_o fox_n word_n that_o he_o only_o reject_v all_o meritorious_a and_o legal_a condition_n but_o will_v needs_o have_v it_o that_o he_o absolute_o reject_v all_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n both_o legal_a and_o evangelical_n then_o we_o must_v say_v that_o he_o have_v little_a respect_n to_o the_o memory_n and_o credit_n of_o mr._n fox_n since_o he_o make_v he_o most_o shameful_o to_o contradict_v himself_o and_o be_v he_o fit_v then_o to_o write_v a_o book_n of_o martyr_n or_o to_o be_v himself_o a_o witness_n for_o the_o truth_n against_o the_o papist_n can_v he_o be_v just_o admit_v to_o bear_v witness_n against_o other_o who_o by_o self-contradiction_n be_v a_o false_a witness_n against_o himself_o true_o we_o shall_v be_v loath_a so_o to_o expose_v that_o good_a man_n to_o the_o scorn_n of_o the_o papist_n and_o therefore_o we_o positive_o affirm_v that_o he_o do_v not_o contradict_v himself_o at_o all_o because_o the_o condition_n be_v of_o different_a kind_n which_o he_o deny_v and_o affirm_v he_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o proper_o meritorious_a legal_a condition_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o so_o do_v we_o he_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v a_o proper_a evangelical_n condition_n to_o wit_n faith_n and_o constant_a confession_n they_o be_v his_o own_o word_n in_o his_o latin_a book_n aforesaid_a and_o we_o join_v with_o he_o in_o affirm_v the_o same_o and_o now_o we_o do_v further_o make_v it_o know_v to_o the_o people_n that_o mr._n fox_n in_o the_o say_a book_n concern_v christ_n free_o justify_v do_v grant_v that_o after_o we_o be_v free_o justify_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n sincere_a obedience_n to_o christ_n commandment_n be_v necessary_a to_o retain_v or_o not_o to_o lose_v our_o justification_n these_o be_v his_o own_o word_n quod_fw-la autem_fw-la dici_fw-la solet_fw-la per_fw-la obedientiam_fw-la retineri_fw-la justificationis_fw-la gratiam_fw-la 370._o page_n 369_o 370._o ut_fw-la hoc_fw-la concedatur_fw-la aliquo_fw-la modo_fw-la non_fw-la tamen_fw-la hinc_fw-la etc._n etc._n as_o for_o that_o which_o use_v to_o be_v say_v that_o the_o grace_n of_o justification_n be_v retain_v by_o obedience_n though_o that_o be_v grant_v in_o some_o sense_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v from_o hence_o that_o justification_n
condition_n be_v free_o give_v by_o god_n neither_o if_o they_o be_v sincere_a do_v they_o by_o their_o imperfection_n hinder_v our_o salvation_n which_o proceed_v from_o another_o cause_n here_o we_o see_v those_o four_o learned_a doctor_n polyander_n rivet_n waleus_n and_o thysius_n hold_v that_o not_o only_a faith_n but_o new_a and_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o obtain_v salvation_n so_o that_o both_o together_o make_v up_o the_o one_o entire_a condition_n of_o the_o gospel_n gomarus_n another_o learned_a professor_n of_o divinity_n in_o the_o netherlands_o a_o member_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n say_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v god_n covenant_n quia_fw-la mutuam_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o hominum_fw-la obligationem_fw-la 52._o oper._n gomari_fw-la par_fw-fr 3._o disp_n 14._o thes_n 29._o page_n 52._o de_fw-la vitâ_fw-la aeternâ_fw-la ipsis_fw-la certâ_fw-la conditione_n dandâ_fw-la promulgat_fw-la because_o it_o promulgate_n the_o mutual_a obligation_n of_o god_n and_o man_n concern_v the_o give_v they_o eternal_a life_n upon_o their_o perform_v a_o certain_a condition_n and_o it_o be_v call_v the_o covenant_n of_o god_n the_o salute_n per_fw-la christum_fw-la gratuitâ_fw-la concern_v free_a salvation_n by_o christ_n because_o god_n in_o the_o gospel_n of_o mere_a grace_n publish_v and_o offer_v unto_o all_o man_n whatsoever_o on_o condition_n of_o true_a faith_n not_o only_a christ_n and_o perfect_a righteousness_n in_o he_o for_o reconciliation_n and_o eternal_a life_n but_o also_o he_o promise_v unto_o his_o elect_n and_o perfect_v in_o they_o the_o prescribe_a condition_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n here_o we_o see_v gomarus_n hold_v repentance_n to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o entire_a condition_n of_o the_o gospel_n covenant_n whereunto_o agree_v the_o testimony_n of_o pemble_n 22._o pemble_n of_o justify_v faith_n sect._n 2._o chap._n 1._o page_n 22._o who_o say_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n require_v in_o they_o that_o shall_v be_v justify_v be_v faith_n believe_v this_o and_o live_v be_v a_o compact_n of_o the_o free_a and_o pure_a mercy_n wherein_o the_o reward_n of_o eternal_a life_n be_v give_v we_o in_o favour_n to_o that_o which_o bear_v not_o the_o least_o proportion_n of_o worth_n with_o it_o so_o that_o he_o that_o perform_v the_o condition_n can_v yet_o demand_v the_o wage_n as_o due_a unto_o he_o in_o severity_n of_o justice_n but_o only_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o a_o free_a promise_n the_o fulfil_n of_o which_o he_o may_v humble_o sue_v for_o 24._o ibid._n page_n 24._o and_o again_o although_o say_v he_o the_o act_n of_o justification_n of_o a_o sinner_n be_v proper_o the_o only_a work_n of_o god_n for_o the_o only_a merit_n of_o christ_n yet_o be_v it_o right_o ascribe_v unto_o faith_n and_o it_o alone_o forasmuch_o as_o faith_n be_v the_o main_a condition_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n which_o as_o we_o must_v perform_v if_o we_o will_v be_v justify_v so_o by_o the_o performance_n whereof_o we_o be_v say_v to_o obtain_v justification_n and_o life_n here_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o pemble_n say_v that_o faith_n be_v the_o main_a condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o imply_v there_o be_v some_o condition_n beside_o but_o subordinate_a to_o faith_n and_o this_o we_o do_v firm_o hold_v that_o faith_n be_v the_o main_a condition_n because_o it_o be_v the_o only_a receptive_a applicative_a condition_n to_o which_o repentance_n the_o dispositive_a condition_n and_o all_o our_o after-obedience_n be_v subordinate_a perkins_n another_o of_o those_o divine_n who_o we_o be_v say_v to_o despise_v give_v he_o vote_n also_o for_o the_o conditionality_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n witness_v what_o he_o write_v in_o his_o reform_a catholic_n in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n two_o thing_n must_v be_v consider_v 1._o reform_a cathole_n point_n 4._o of_o justif_a the_o manner_n differ_v 2._o reason_n 1._o the_o substance_n thereof_o and_o the_o condition_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v that_o righteousness_n and_o life_n everlasting_a be_v give_v to_o god_n church_n and_o people_n by_o christ_n the_o condition_n be_v that_o we_o for_o our_o part_n be_v by_o faith_n to_o receive_v the_o foresay_a benefit_n and_o this_o condition_n be_v by_o grace_n as_o well_o as_o the_o substance_n and_o in_o his_o little_a latin_a tract_n of_o predestination_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o dr._n twiss_n defend_v against_o arminius_n 130._o perkins_n de_fw-fr praedest_fw-la &_o gratiâ_fw-la edit_fw-la cant._n an._n 1598._o pag._n 130._o in_o his_o book_n call_v vindiciae_fw-la gratiae_n he_o say_v gratia_n secunda_fw-la est_fw-la vel_fw-la imputata_fw-la vel_fw-la inhaerens_fw-la imputata_fw-la est_fw-la in_o justificatione_n cujus_fw-la pars_fw-la remissio_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o second_o grace_n be_v either_o impute_v or_o inherent_a impute_v grace_n be_v in_o justification_n whereof_o a_o part_n be_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o this_o justification_n and_o remission_n with_o respect_n to_o sin_n past_a remain_v firm_a and_o will_v so_o remain_v for_o ever_o that_o say_v of_o the_o schoolman_n be_v most_o true_a sin_n once_o remit_v never_o return_v but_o when_o any_o true_a believer_n have_v fall_v into_o some_o grievous_a heinous_a sin_n the_o pardon_n of_o that_o defection_n or_o backslide_n be_v indeed_o purpose_v and_o decree_v by_o god_n yet_o it_o have_v no_o actual_a existence_n at_o all_o on_o god_n part_n nor_o be_v it_o receive_v at_o all_o on_o man_n part_n till_o he_o repent_v yea_o if_o he_o shall_v never_o repent_v which_o yet_o be_v impossible_a for_o that_o one_o sin_n he_o will_v be_v damn_v as_o guilty_a of_o eternal_a death_n for_o there_o be_v no_o new_a pardon_n of_o any_o new_a sin_n without_o a_o new_a act_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n this_o passage_n of_o mr._n perkins_n imply_v to_o the_o full_a all_o that_o we_o have_v say_v concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o repentance_n as_o the_o dispositive_a condition_n of_o obtain_v the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n continue_v from_o a_o principle_n of_o faith_n and_o love_n or_o after_o any_o notable_a backslide_n renew_v by_o new_a act_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n as_o the_o condition_n of_o get_v possession_n of_o the_o heavenly_a inheritance_n of_o the_o same_o judgement_n be_v pareus_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n fidem_fw-la inserit_fw-la ut_fw-la doceat_fw-la fidem_fw-la esse_fw-la conditionem_fw-la sub_fw-la quâ_fw-la christus_fw-la nobis_fw-la datus_fw-la est_fw-la propitiatorium_fw-la 3.25_o pareus_n in_o rom._n 3.25_o the_o apostle_n insert_v faith_n in_o the_o 25_o verse_n to_o teach_v we_o that_o faith_n be_v the_o condition_n under_o which_o christ_n be_v give_v we_o for_o a_o propitiation_n and_o again_o in_o the_o write_n against_o the_o five_o arminian_n article_n which_o he_o send_v to_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n not_o be_v able_a to_o go_v himself_o by_o reason_n of_o age_n and_o which_o be_v read_v in_o high_o approve_v by_o 264._o act._n synod_n dord_n part_n 1._o p._n 264._o and_o record_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o synod_n he_o say_v that_o conditio_fw-la certaminis_fw-la precum_fw-la &_o vigilantiae_fw-la omnino_fw-la est_fw-la necessaria_fw-la ad_fw-la perseverantiam_fw-la the_o condition_n of_o fight_v and_o pray_v and_o watch_v be_v altogether_o necessary_a unto_o perseverance_n but_o then_o he_o add_v in_o opposition_n to_o the_o arminian_o that_o the_o say_a condition_n be_v wrought_v in_o the_o faithful_a by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o he_o prove_v from_o deut._n 30.6_o jer._n 32.40_o ezek._n 36.27_o 1_o pet._n 1.5_o etc._n etc._n and_o to_o what_o the_o arminian_o say_v that_o the_o condition_n be_v command_v and_o not_o promise_v he_o answer_v promissiones_fw-la de_fw-fr ipsa_fw-la conditione_n fidei_fw-la precum_fw-la perseverantiae_fw-la in_fw-la fidelibus_fw-la per_fw-la spiritum_fw-la dei_fw-la efficiendâ_fw-la disertè_fw-la loquuntur_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o promise_n plain_o speak_v of_o the_o condition_n of_o faith_n prayer_n perseverance_n as_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v effect_v in_o believer_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n nor_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o condition_n be_v not_o promise_v because_o it_o be_v command_v and_o require_v of_o the_o faithful_a for_o it_o be_v also_o command_v that_o they_o fear_v god_n and_o walk_v in_o his_o commandment_n and_o yet_o god_n promise_v i_o will_v put_v my_o fear_n in_o their_o heart_n etc._n etc._n i_o will_v cause_v they_o towalk_v in_o my_o statute_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o be_v command_v not_o that_o they_o can_v of_o themselves_o but_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o perform_v it_o that_o so_o be_v sensible_a of_o their_o own_o weakness_n they_o may_v know_v what_o they_o ought_v to_o ask_v of_o god_n neither_o yet_o do_v these_o promise_n whole_o exclude_v the_o great_a or_o small_a lapse_n and_o sin_n of_o the_o
saint_n but_o they_o raise_v up_o the_o fall_v again_o that_o they_o be_v not_o ruin_v for_o the_o promise_n also_o be_v express_o extend_v unto_o the_o righteous_a sometime_o fall_v into_o sin_n psal_n 37.24_o and_o 89.30_o 31_o 32_o 33_o 34._o the_o same_o author_n write_v against_o the_o papist_n upon_o the_o same_o subject_n say_v fides_n tune_n dicitur_fw-la justificare_fw-la cum_fw-la actum_fw-la proprium_fw-la etc._n etc._n faith_n be_v then_o say_v to_o justify_v when_o it_o can_v exercise_v finem_fw-la pareus_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr amissione_n gratiae_fw-la cap._n 7._o prope_fw-la finem_fw-la and_o do_v exercise_v its_o proper_a act_n of_o receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n but_o a_o faith_n that_o be_v sick_a wounded_z oppress_v with_o the_o filth_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o as_o it_o be_v bind_v with_o the_o fetter_n of_o sin_n do_v not_o exercise_n nor_o can_v it_o exercise_v this_o act_n and_o a_o little_a after_o but_o god_n do_v not_o impute_v sin_n to_o the_o just_a that_o be_v fall_v to_o wit_n when_o they_o repent_v but_o before_o they_o repent_v he_o do_v indeed_o impute_v sin_n to_o they_o by_o inflict_v temporal_a punishment_n and_o unless_o they_o repent_v he_o will_v impute_v sin_n to_o they_o by_o inflict_v also_o eternal_a punishment_n an_o he_o thus_o conclude_v tune_v igitur_fw-la fides_fw-la in_o lapsis_fw-la habitualiter_fw-la tantion_n manens_fw-la propriè_fw-la justificans_fw-la dici_fw-la aut_fw-la eos_fw-la justificare_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la therefore_o faith_n then_o remain_v habitual_o only_o in_o the_o lapse_v it_o can_v proper_o be_v say_v to_o be_v justify_v or_o to_o justify_v they_o thus_o far_o pareus_n whereby_o we_o plain_o see_v that_o he_o hold_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n to_o be_v conditional_a as_o we_o do_v that_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v condition_n of_o it_o especial_o faith_n be_v the_o main_a condition_n by_o the_o act_n whereof_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n not_o by_o the_o habit_n because_o it_o be_v the_o act_n and_o not_o the_o habit_n that_o receive_v christ_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n through_o he_o 2._o he_o hold_v that_o after_o justification_n sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o avoid_n of_o wilful_a presumptuous_a sin_n of_o omission_n and_o commission_n be_v a_o condition_n so_o necessary_a to_o the_o obtain_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n that_o without_o such_o obedience_n either_o continue_a without_o intermission_n or_o after_o some_o notable_a intermission_n of_o its_o act_n and_o weaken_v of_o its_o habit_n renew_v again_o by_o new_a act_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n salvation_n can_v be_v obtain_v nor_o damnation_n avoid_v 3._o that_o though_o there_o be_v such_o condition_n require_v of_o the_o elect_a in_o order_n to_o justification_n and_o of_o the_o justify_v in_o order_n to_o salvation_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o uncertain_a as_o to_o the_o event_n but_o shall_v through_o special_a effectual_a grace_n be_v infallible_o perform_v and_o the_o elect_a and_o justify_v shall_v be_v eternal_o save_v this_o be_v the_o gospel_n that_o pareus_n preach_v and_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n approve_v and_o it_o be_v that_o and_o no_o other_o which_o we_o preach_v also_o therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o great_a falsehood_n and_o slander_n that_o we_o preach_v a_o new_a arminian_n gospel_n we_o find_v likewise_o that_o the_o divine_n of_o geneva_n deodat_n and_o tronchin_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o do●t_n be_v for_o the_o conditionality_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o sense_n before_o explain_v for_o thus_o they_o write_v in_o their_o suffrage_n concern_v the_o second_o article_n fides_n est_fw-la revera_fw-la conditio_fw-la novi_fw-la foederis_fw-la respectu_fw-la ordinis_fw-la inviolabilis_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la instituti_fw-la 132._o act._n synod_n dondrect_v part_n 2._o page_n 132._o etc._n etc._n faith_n be_v indeed_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o inviolable_a order_n institute_v by_o god_n but_o it_o be_v also_o a_o promise_a gift_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o a_o effect_n of_o our_o engraft_v into_o christ_n in_o these_o word_n 1._o we_o observe_v that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o those_o divine_n approve_v by_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n god_n by_o his_o absolute_a will_n have_v institute_v a_o conditional_a order_n between_o the_o antecedent_n and_o subsequent_a blessing_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n 2._o that_o faith_n be_v the_o condition_n ordain_v by_o god_n for_o obtain_v the_o subsequent_a blessing_n of_o the_o covenant_n such_o as_o justification_n pardon_v of_o sin_n etc._n etc._n 3._o that_o it_o be_v not_o habitual_a faith_n or_o the_o first_o habitual_a seminal_a permanent_a principle_n of_o faith_n but_o it_o be_v actual_a faith_n because_o they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o our_o engraft_v into_o christ_n but_o the_o first_o seminal_a permanent_a principle_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o the_o effect_n of_o our_o engraft_v into_o christ_n otherwise_o we_o shall_v be_v ingraft_v into_o christ_n before_o we_o have_v so_o much_o as_o the_o least_o seminal_a principle_n of_o faith_n since_o the_o cause_n must_v be_v before_o the_o effect_n therefore_o to_o avoid_v that_o absurdity_n we_o think_v they_o mean_v that_o our_o engraft_v into_o christ_n begin_v in_o the_o spirit_n work_v in_o we_o the_o seminal_a principle_n of_o faith_n which_o concur_v to_o the_o produce_v of_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v our_o formal_a vital_a act_n though_o produce_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o seminal_a principle_n and_o the_o effectual_a influence_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n perform_v by_o we_o and_o withal_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o our_o initial_a engraft_v into_o christ_n the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v believe_v and_o profess_v at_o geneva_n at_o this_o day_n witness_v what_o be_v late_o teach_v and_o publish_v by_o turretin_n professor_n of_o divinity_n there_o in_o page_n 196._o of_o that_o book_n he_o say_v that_o christ_n require_v faith_n in_o god_n promise_n and_o obedience_n to_o his_o commandment_n 1688._o turrotin_n institut_fw-la theologiae_n ele●ct_n part._n 2._o edit_fw-la genev._n 1688._o as_o the_o duty_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o in_o the_o same_o page_n he_o say_v that_o the_o form_n of_o word_n wherein_o the_o new_a covenant_n be_v express_v i_o will_v be_v your_o god_n and_o you_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n comprehend_v both_o the_o benefit_n promise_v on_o god_n part_n and_o the_o duty_n require_v on_o our_o part_n and_o first_o he_o explain_v at_o large_a what_o promise_v benefit_n on_o god_n part_n be_v imply_v in_o the_o word_n i_o will_v be_v your_o god_n second_o he_o show_v what_o duty_n require_v on_o our_o part_n be_v imply_v in_o the_o word_n you_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n after_o he_o have_v in_o general_n open_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o foresay_a form_n of_o the_o covenant_n he_o come_v to_o particular_n and_o in_o the_o 29._o paragraph_n he_o say_v the_o principal_a duty_n require_v of_o we_o be_v faith_n and_o repentance_n faith_n which_o embrace_v the_o promise_n and_o repentance_n which_o fulfil_v the_o commandment_n faith_n answer_v to_o the_o promise_n of_o grace_n believe_v and_o thou_o shall_v be_v save_v repentance_n be_v command_v lege_fw-la evangelicâ_fw-la by_o the_o evangelical_n law_n walk_v before_o i_o and_o be_v thou_o perfect_a gon._n 17.1_o for_o as_o on_o god_n part_n there_o be_v two_o principal_a benefit_n of_o the_o covenant_n remission_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o write_n of_o the_o law_n in_o the_o heart_n so_o on_o man_n part_n two_o duty_n ought_v to_o answer_v unto_o they_o to_o wit_n faith_n which_o apply_v unto_o we_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o repentance_n or_o the_o study_n and_o endeavour_v of_o sanctification_n which_o reduce_v into_o practice_n the_o law_n write_v in_o the_o heart_n by_o walk_v in_o god_n statute_n which_o christ_n mean_v when_o he_o say_v mark_v 1.25_o repent_v and_o believe_v the_o gospel_n in_o page_n 202._o he_o put_v the_o question_n whether_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v conditional_a and_o what_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o it_o and_o in_o answer_n to_o it_o he_o distinguish_v between_o several_a sort_n of_o condition_n and_o as_o we_o have_v do_v show_v that_o in_o some_o sense_n it_o be_v not_o conditional_a and_o then_o he_o conclude_v that_o in_o another_o sense_n it_o it_o conditional_a and_o page_n 203._o he_o prove_v it_o by_o three_o argument_n 1._o because_o it_o be_v propose_v with_o a_o condition_n express_v john_n 3.16_o 36._o bom._n 10.9_o act_n 8.37_o mark_v 16.16_o and_o frequent_o in_o other_o place_n 2._o because_o if_o it_o be_v not_o conditional_a there_o will_v be_v no_o place_n for_o threaten_n in_o the_o gospel_n which_o can_v be_v denounce_v but_o against_o those_o who_o neglect_v to_o perform_v the_o condition_n prescribe_v for_o the_o
1634._o in_o answer_n to_o mr._n hoard_v book_n call_v god_n love_n to_o mankind_n which_o answer_n be_v print_v after_o his_o death_n by_o mr._n jeanes_n a_o very_a learned_a and_o zealous_a calvinist_n in_o the_o year_n 1653._o at_o oxford_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n 195._o twiss_n against_o hoard_n pag._n 194_o 195._o be_v call_v minister_n not_o of_o the_o letter_n but_o of_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o law_n the_o ministry_n whereof_o be_v not_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o yet_o this_o be_v right_o to_o be_v understand_v to_o wit_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n for_o undoubted_o even_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o law_n be_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o spirit_n also_o but_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n to_o hold_v man_n under_o fear_n it_o be_v call_v the_o ministry_n of_o condemnation_n and_o the_o reason_n hereof_o i_o conceive_v to_o be_v because_o god_n do_v not_o concur_v with_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o law_n by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o work_v any_o man_n to_o the_o performance_n of_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o law_n which_o be_v exact_a and_o perfect_a obedience_n but_o thus_o he_o do_v concur_v with_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n namely_o by_o his_o spirit_n to_o work_v man_n to_o the_o performance_n of_o the_o condition_n thereof_o which_o be_v faith_n in_o christ_n and_o true_a repentance_n therefore_o the_o letter_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o law_n be_v call_v a_o kill_a letter_n but_o the_o gospel_n be_v join_v with_o a_o quicken_a spirit_n and_o therefore_o piscator_fw-la conceive_v that_o the_o gospel_n in_o this_o place_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o spirit_n so_o then_o the_o gospel_n give_v life_n by_o the_o spirit_n which_o accompany_v the_o ministry_n thereof_o etc._n etc._n and_o in_o the_o same_o book_n he_o say_v some_o benefit_n be_v bestow_v upon_o man_n only_o conditional_o though_o for_o christ_n sake_n and_o they_o be_v the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o soul_n 154._o page_n 154._o and_o these_o god_n do_v confer_v only_o upon_o the_o condition_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n now_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o profess_v and_o that_o i_o suppose_v as_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o all_o our_o divine_n that_o every_o one_o who_o hear_v the_o gospel_n without_o distinction_n between_o elect_a and_o reprobate_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o he_o so_o far_o as_o to_o procure_v both_o the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o soul_n in_o case_n he_o believe_v and_o repent_v but_o there_o be_v other_o benefit_n which_o christ_n by_o his_o obedience_n have_v merit_v for_o we_o namely_o the_o benefit_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n for_o it_o please_v the_o father_n that_o in_o he_o shall_v all_o fullness_n dwell_v col._n 1.19_o and_o he_o have_v bless_v we_o with_o all_o spiritual_a blessing_n in_o christ_n that_o be_v for_o christ_n sake_n eph._n 1.3_o and_o god_n work_v in_o we_o that_o which_o be_v well-pleasing_a in_o his_o sight_n through_o jesus_n christ_n heb._n 13.21_o and_o therefore_o see_v nothing_o be_v more_o please_v in_o god_n sight_n on_o our_o part_n than_o faith_n and_o repentance_n even_o these_o also_o i_o shall_v think_v god_n work_v in_o we_o through_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n pray_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o ephesian_n eph._n 6.23_o for_o peace_n and_o faith_n and_o love_n from_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v we_o t'interpret_v it_o from_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n as_o a_o efficient_a cause_n and_o from_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n god_n and_o man_n as_o a_o meritorious_a cause_n thereof_o now_o i_o demand_v whether_o this_o author_n can_v say_v true_o that_o it_o be_v the_o constant_a opinion_n of_o our_o divine_n that_o all_o who_o hear_v the_o gospel_n whether_o elect_a or_o reprobate_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n die_v to_o procure_v they_o faith_n and_o repentance_n nay_o do_v any_o arminian_n at_o this_o day_n believe_v this_o or_o can_v he_o name_v 〈◊〉_d a●minian_n that_o do_v avouch_v this_o again_o glory_n and_o salvation_n god_n do_v not_o will_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o portion_n of_o any_o one_o of_o ripe_a year_n absolute_o but_o conditional_o to_o wit_n if_o he_o repent_v and_o believe_v and_o in_o case_n all_o 174._o 〈◊〉_d page_n 174._o and_o every_o one_o of_o the_o world_n shall_v believe_v and_o repent_v all_o and_o every_o one_o how_o notorious_a sinner_n soever_o they_o be_v find_v shall_v be_v save_v such_o be_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o christ_n merit_n i_o say_v this_o be_v true_a not_o of_o they_o only_o who_o be_v invite_v to_o the_o wedding_n mat_n 22._o nor_o of_o they_o only_o to_o who_o st._n peter_n speak_v act_v 3.26_o or_o of_o they_o only_o of_o who_o our_o saviour_n speak_v mat._n 23.37_o but_o of_o all_o and_o every_o ●ne_n throughout_o the_o world_n and_o it_o be_v as_o true_a that_o none_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v if_o they_o die_v in_o infidelity_n and_o impenitency_n this_o god_n himself_o signify_v to_o be_v his_o will_n by_o his_o promise_n act_v 2.38_o 39_o on_o the_o one_o part_n and_o on_o both_o part_n mark_v 16.16_o and_o as_o god_n signify_v this_o to_o be_v his_o will_n so_o indeed_o it_o be_v his_o will_n according_a to_o our_o doctrine_n and_o there_o be_v no_o colour_n of_o imposture_n or_o simulation_n in_o all_o this_o in_o like_a sort_n as_o touch_v the_o grace_n of_o pardon_n of_o sin_n this_o also_o god_n offer_v unto_o all_o that_o hear_v the_o gospel_n but_o how_o not_o absolute_o but_o conditional_o in_o case_n they_o believe_v and_o repent_v and_o it_o be_v god_n will_n that_o every_o one_o who_o believe_v shall_v have_v his_o sin_n pardon_v none_o that_o i_o know_v either_o think_v or_o teach_v otherwise_o whether_o he_o fall_v out_o either_o to_o be_v elect_a or_o reprobate_n though_o how_o to_o distinguish_v man_n according_a unto_o this_o difference_n 〈◊〉_d know_v not_o i_o leave_v that_o unto_o god_n now_o like_a as_o we_o say_v god_n do_v signify_v his_o meaning_n to_o 〈◊〉_d that_o as_o many_o as_o believe_v and_o repent_v shall_v have_v their_o sin_n pardon_v and_o their_o soul_n save_v so_o if_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o meaning_n in_o god_n then_o in_o my_o poor_a judgement_n it_o can_v be_v avoid_v but_o that_o god_n must_v be_v find_v halt_v in_o his_o offer_n but_o for_o my_o part_n i_o acknowledge_v such_o a_o meaning_n in_o god_n neither_o have_v i_o to_o this_o hour_n find_v any_o one_o of_o our_o divine_n either_o by_o word_n or_o write_n to_o have_v deny_v this_o to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o god_n again_o whereas_o he_o hoard_n fashion_v our_o doctrine_n so_o as_o if_o we_o say_v that_o god_n have_v decree_v at_o no_o hand_n to_o save_v they_o to_o who_o he_o promise_v salvation_n upon_o condition_n of_o faith_n this_o be_v a_o notorious_a untruth_n 177._o ibid._n pag._n 177._o and_o such_o as_o impli_v manifest_a contradiction_n for_o to_o say_v he_o have_v resolve_v at_o no_o hand_n to_o save_v they_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o he_o have_v resolve_v to_o save_v they_o on_o no_o condition_n but_o if_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o save_v they_o in_o case_n they_o believe_v undoubted_o he_o have_v resolve_v to_o save_v they_o upon_o condition_n of_o faith_n only_o god_n resolution_n to_o save_v they_o be_v not_o hold_v in_o suspense_n consider_v that_o from_o everlasting_a he_o well_o know_v who_o will_v believe_v and_o who_o will_v not_o etc._n etc._n again_o it_o be_v true_a baptism_n be_v ordain_v that_o those_o which_o do_v receive_v it_o may_v have_v the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n but_o not_o absolute_o but_o conditional_o to_o wit_n in_o case_n they_o believe_v and_o repent_v as_o appear_v both_o in_o that_o place_n act_v 2.38_o 201._o ibid._n pag._n 201._o and_o rom._n 4.11_o and_o baptism_n as_o a_o seal_n do_v assure_v hereof_o only_o in_o case_n they_o believe_v and_o repent_v and_o therefore_o none_o of_o ripe_a year_n be_v admit_v unto_o baptism_n until_o they_o make_v profession_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o as_o for_o infant_n they_o be_v also_o ancient_o say_v to_o be_v baptise_a in_o fide_fw-la parentum_fw-la by_o all_o these_o passage_n quote_v word_n for_o word_n out_o of_o dr._n twiss_n it_o be_v as_o clear_v as_o the_o light_n at_o noonday_n that_o he_o hold_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n to_o be_v conditional_a and_o particular_o that_o the_o promise_n of_o justification_n and_o pardon_v of_o sin_n be_v conditional_a and_o that_o faith_n and_o repentance_n not_o faith_n alone_o nor_o repentance_n alone_o but_o faith_n and_o repentance_n together_o be_v
125._o and_o justify_v do_v sometime_o through_o their_o own_o default_n fall_v into_o heinous_a sin_n and_o thereby_o they_o do_v incur_v the_o fatherly_a anger_n of_o god_n they_o draw_v upon_o themselves_o a_o damnable_a guiltiness_n and_o lose_v their_o present_a ●tness_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n thon_n they_o prove_v their_o position_n it_o be_v manifest_a say_v they_o by_o the_o example_n of_o david_n and_o peter_n that_o the_o regenerate_v can_v throw_v themselves_o headlong_o into_o most_o grievous_a sin_n god_n sometime_o permit_v it_o that_o they_o may_v learn_v with_o all_o humility_n to_o acknowledge_v that_o not_o by_o their_o own_o strength_n or_o desert_n but_o by_o god_n mercy_n alone_o they_o be_v free_v from_o eternal_a death_n and_o have_v life_n eternal_a bestow_v upon_o they_o whilst_o they_o cleave_v to_o such_o sin_n and_o sleep_v secure_o therein_o god_n fatherly_a anger_n arise_v against_o they_o psal_n 89.31_o rom._n 2.9_o beside_o they_o draw_v upon_o themselves_o damnable_a gild_n so_o that_o as_o long_o as_o they_o continue_v without_o repentance_n in_o that_o state_n they_o neither_o aught_o nor_o can_v persuade_v themselves_o otherwise_o than_o that_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o eternal_a death_n rom._n 8.13_o if_o you_o live_v after_o the_o flesh_n you_o shall_v die_v for_o they_o be_v bind_v in_o the_o chain_n of_o a_o capital_a crime_n by_o the_o desert_n whereof_o according_a to_o god_n ordinance_n they_o be_v subject_a to_o death_n although_o they_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o give_v over_o to_o death_n nor_o about_o to_o be_v give_v over_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o fatherly_a love_n of_o god_n but_o be_v first_o to_o be_v rescue_v from_o this_o sin_n that_o they_o may_v also_o be_v rescue_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o death_n last_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o present_a condition_n they_o lose_v the_o fitness_n which_o they_o have_v of_o entere_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n because_o into_o that_o kingdom_n there_o shall_v in_o no_o wise_n enter_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v defile_v 21.27_o rev._n 21.27_o or_o that_o work_v abomination_n for_o the_o crown_n of_o life_n be_v not_o set_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o any_o but_o those_o who_o have_v fight_v a_o good_a fight_n and_o have_v finish_v their_o course_n in_o faith_n and_o holiness_n 2_o tim._n 4.8_o he_o be_v therefore_o unfit_a to_o obtain_v this_o crown_n whosoever_o as_o yet_o cleave_v to_o the_o work_n of_o wickedness_n the_o four_o position_n be_v the_o unalterable_a ordinance_n of_o god_n do_v require_v that_o the_o faithful_a so_o stray_v out_o of_o the_o right_a way_n must_v first_o return_v again_o into_o the_o way_n by_o a_o renew_a performance_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n before_o he_o can_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o way_n that_o be_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n by_o the_o decree_n of_o election_n the_o faithful_a be_v so_o predestinate_v to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o be_v as_o along_o the_o king_n highway_n to_o be_v lead_v to_o this_o appoint_a end_n no_o other_o way_n than_o by_o the_o mean_v ordain_v by_o god_n nor_o be_v these_o decree_n of_o god_n concern_v the_o mean_n manner_n and_o order_n of_o such_o event_n less_o fix_v and_o sure_a than_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o end_n and_o of_o the_o event_n themselves_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o walk_v in_o a_o way_n contrary_a to_o god_n ordinance_n namely_o that_o broad_a way_n of_o uncleanness_n and_o impenitence_n which_o lead_v direct_o down_o to_o hell_n he_o can_v never_o come_v by_o this_o mean_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n yea_o and_o if_o death_n shall_v overtake_v he_o wander_v in_o this_o by-path_n he_o can_v but_o fall_v into_o everlasting_a death_n this_o be_v the_o constant_a and_o manifest_a voice_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n except_o you_o repent_v you_o shall_v all_o likewise_o perish_v luke_n 13.3_o be_v not_o deceive_v neither_o fornicatour_n nor_o idolater_n etc._n etc._n shall_v inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 6.9_o they_o be_v deceive_v therefore_o who_o think_v that_o the_o elect_n wallow_v in_o such_o crime_n and_o so_o die_v must_v notwithstanding_o needs_o be_v save_v through_o the_o force_n of_o election_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o elect_n be_v sure_a indeed_o god_n so_o decree_a but_o withal_o by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o same_o our_o god_n it_o be_v not_o otherwise_o sure_a than_o by_o the_o way_n of_o faith_n repentance_n and_o holiness_n heb._n 12.14_o without_o holiness_n no_o man_n shall_v see_v god_n the_o foundation_n of_o god_n stand_v sure_a and_o let_v every_o one_o that_o name_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n depart_v from_o iniquity_n 2_o tim._n 2.19_o again_o their_o five_o position_n be_v that_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n between_o the_o gild_n of_o a_o grievous_a sin_n and_o the_o renew_a act_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n such_o a_o offender_n stand_v by_o his_o own_o desert_n to_o be_v condemn_v by_o christ_n merit_n 127._o ibid._n art_n v._o pag._n 126_o 127._o and_o god_n decree_n to_o be_v acquit_v but_o actual_o absolve_v he_o be_v not_o until_o he_o have_v obtain_v pardon_n by_o renew_a faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o for_o proof_n of_o this_o position_n they_o say_v in_o page_n 128._o the_o father_n of_o mercy_n have_v set_v down_o this_o order_n that_o the_o act_n of_o repentance_n must_v go_v before_o the_o benefit_n of_o forgiveness_n psal_n 32.5_o ezek._n 18.27_o thus_o those_o excellent_a divine_n and_o judicious_a faithful_a minister_n of_o christ_n by_o all_o which_o it_o be_v clear_a as_o the_o sun_n that_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n teach_v the_o conditionality_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o hold_v faith_n repentance_n sincere_a obedience_n and_o perseverance_n to_o the_o end_n to_o be_v the_o indispensable_o necessary_a condition_n of_o obtain_v eternal_a salvation_n and_o therefore_o if_o there_o happen_v to_o be_v a_o partial_a intermission_n of_o sincere_a evangelical_n obedience_n for_o a_o time_n by_o christian_n fall_v into_o heinous_a wilful_a sin_n there_o must_v be_v a_o renew_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o a_o return_v to_o their_o obedience_n again_o before_o they_o can_v obtain_v the_o pardon_n of_o those_o sin_n and_o the_o eternal_a salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n which_o be_v all_o that_o we_o hold_v in_o this_o matter_n and_o it_o be_v alsert_v explain_v and_o solid_o prove_v by_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o judicious_a d●●●●●ant_n who_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o d●●_n in_o another_o book_n of_o he_o in_o these_o word_n bond_n opera_fw-la sunt_fw-la necessaria_fw-la ad_fw-la justificationis_fw-la statum_fw-la relinendum_fw-la 405._o praelect_v de_fw-fr justitiâ_fw-la habit._fw-la &_o act._n cap._n 31._o p._n 404_o 405._o &_o conservandum_fw-la non_fw-la ut_fw-la causae_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v good_a work_n be_v necessary_a to_o retain_v and_o preserve_v the_o state_n of_o justification_n not_o as_o cause_n which_o of_o themselves_o effect_n produce_v or_o merit_v this_o preservation_n but_o as_o mean_n or_o condition_n without_o which_o god_n will_v not_o preserve_v the_o grace_n of_o justification_n in_o men._n and_o here_o may_v be_v reckon_v up_o the_o same_o work_n which_o we_o mention_v in_o the_o forego_n conclusion_n for_o as_o no_o man_n receive_v that_o general_a justification_n which_o froe_n from_o the_o gild_n of_o all_o former_a sin_n unless_o repentance_n faith_n a_o purpose_n to_o lead_v a_o new_a life_n and_o other_o action_n of_o that_o nature_n concur_v so_o no_o man_n retain_v a_o state_n free_a from_o gild_n with_o respect_n to_o follow_a sin_n but_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o same_o action_n of_o believe_v in_o god_n call_v upon_o god_n mortify_v the_o flesh_n continual_o repent_v and_o grieve_v for_o the_o sin_n that_o be_v continual_o commit_v the_o reason_n why_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v necessary_o require_v on_o our_o part_n be_v this_o because_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v always_o absent_a but_o their_o contrary_n will_v begin_v to_o be_v present_a which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o justify_v man_n for_o if_o you_o take_v away_o faith_n in_o god_n and_o prayer_n there_o succeed_v unbelief_n and_o contempt_n of_o god_n name_n if_o you_o take_v away_o the_o endeavour_n of_o mortification_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o repentance_n there_o break_v in_o upon_o the_o man_n predominant_a lust_n and_o sin_n waste_v the_o conscience_n therefore_o because_o it_o be_v not_o god_n will_n that_o man_n who_o be_v unbeliever_n obstinate_a carnal_a shall_v enjoy_v the_o benefit_n of_o justification_n he_o require_v continual_a work_n of_o faith_n repentance_n and_o mortification_n by_o who_o presence_n be_v thrust_v as_o it_o be_v out_o of_o door_n and_o drive_v far_o away_o unbelief_n obstinacy_n security_n and_o other_o poison_n of_o justify_v grace_n and_o also_o of_o particular_a sin_n there_o be_v a_o particular_a pardon_n
obtain_v hence_o paul_n say_v rom._n 8.13_o if_o you_o live_v after_o the_o flesh_n you_o shall_v die_v and_o heb._n 3.12_o take_v heed_n lest_o there_o be_v in_o any_o of_o you_o a_o evil_a heart_n of_o unbelief_n in_o depart_v from_o the_o live_a god_n we_o do_v not_o therefore_o think_v that_o the_o act_n itself_o of_o believe_v repent_v and_o mortify_v the_o flesh_n do_v effect_n or_o merit_v the_o conservation_n of_o justify_v grace_n because_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o we_o faint_o and_o imperfect_o sometime_o also_o through_o the_o prevalency_n of_o some_o great_a tentation_n they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v choke_v and_o oppress_v but_o we_o say_v that_o god_n himself_o of_o his_o free_a mercy_n preserve_v the_o regenerate_v in_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n whilst_o they_o walk_v in_o these_o way_n as_o therefore_o for_o the_o preservation_n of_o natural_a life_n it_o be_v necessary_o require_v that_o a_o man_n careful_o avoid_v fire_n water_n precipice_n poison_n and_o other_o thing_n which_o destroy_v the_o health_n of_o the_o body_n so_o for_o the_o preservation_n of_o spiritual_a life_n it_o be_v necessary_o require_v that_o a_o man_n avoid_v unbelief_n impenitency_n and_o other_o thing_n that_o be_v destructive_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n which_o can_v be_v avoid_v unless_o the_o opposite_a and_o contrary_a action_n be_v exercise_v but_o these_o action_n do_v not_o preserve_v the_o life_n of_o grace_n proper_o and_o of_o themselves_o by_o touch_v or_o produce_v the_o very_a effect_n itself_o of_o preservation_n but_o improper_o and_o by_o accident_n by_o exclude_v and_o remove_v the_o cause_n of_o destruction_n thus_o we_o have_v at_o large_a refute_v the_o author_n of_o the_o letter_n his_o second_o error_n against_o the_o purity_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o have_v full_o and_o clear_o prove_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n to_o be_v conditional_a this_o we_o have_v do_v first_o by_o clear_a scripture_n second_o by_o certain_a and_o evident_a reason_n ground_v upon_o scripture_n three_o by_o testimony_n of_o orthodox_n divine_v and_o first_o by_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n second_o by_o testimony_n of_o divine_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n both_o at_o home_o and_o abroad_o and_o particular_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o divine_n of_o the_o famous_a synod_n of_o dort_n whence_o it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n that_o we_o preach_v no_o new_a arminian_n gospel_n in_o this_o great_a point_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o letter_n be_v a_o false_a witness_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n who_o have_v proclaim_v we_o to_o the_o world_n to_o be_v preacher_n of_o a_o new_a arminian_n gospel_n on_o the_o account_n of_o our_o doctrine_n in_o the_o point_n of_o justification_n if_o after_o all_o this_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o though_o we_o have_v prove_v the_o covenant_n to_o be_v conditional_a and_o faith_n to_o be_v the_o receptive_a applicative_a condition_n of_o it_o yet_o we_o have_v not_o prove_v that_o faith_n justify_v as_o a_o condition_n we_o answer_v that_o look_v by_o what_o place_n of_o scripture_n he_o shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o faith_n justify_v as_o a_o instrument_n and_o a_o hand_n by_o the_o same_o shall_v we_o prove_v that_o faith_n justify_v as_o a_o receptive_a applicative_a condition_n for_o as_o we_o say_v before_o we_o take_v a_o receptive_a applicative_a condition_n and_o a_o moral_a foederal_a instrument_n to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n so_o do_v the_o westminster_n assembly_n of_o divine_n before_o we_o and_o in_o this_o sense_n which_o alone_o be_v justifiable_a we_o hold_v faith_n to_o be_v both_o a_o instrument_n and_o a_o condition_n with_o respect_n to_o justification_n and_o if_o that_o will_v please_v our_o author_n we_o shall_v grant_v he_o that_o faith_n be_v a_o hand_n and_o not_o only_o a_o hand_n but_o a_o eye_n and_o a_o mouth_n too_o a_o eye_n to_o look_v unto_o christ_n crucify_v john_n 3.14_o 15._o john_n 6.40_o isa_n 45.22_o and_o a_o mouth_n to_o eat_v and_o drink_v and_o feed_v on_o his_o crucify_a flesh_n and_o blood_n john_n 6.35_o 50_o 51_o 53_o 54_o 55_o 56_o 57_o 58._o we_o shall_v conclude_v this_o answer_n with_o the_o testimony_n of_o two_o learneder_n and_o wise_a man_n than_o our_o author_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o first_o be_v the_o reverend_n mr._n lukin_n a_o worthy_a judicious_a congregational_a minister_n in_o his_o life_n of_o faith_n print_v above_o thirty_o year_n ago_o 25._o lukin_n be_v life_n of_o faith_n p._n 24_o 25._o for_o the_o question_n about_o the_o interest_n of_o faith_n in_o our_o justification_n whether_o it_o justify_v as_o a_o instrument_n or_o as_o a_o condition_n i_o think_v say_v he_o it_o deserve_v not_o half_a the_o word_n that_o have_v be_v use_v about_o it_o they_o be_v both_o of_o they_o school-term_n and_o not_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o shall_v not_o therefore_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o see_v both_o party_n at_o variance_n be_v agree_v in_o the_o thing_n but_o not_o in_o the_o formal_a notion_n under_o which_o they_o do_v conceive_v it_o and_o i_o think_v both_o lide_n be_v so_o far_o agree_v that_o faith_n may_v be_v call_v a_o instrument_n allow_v much_o impropriety_n of_o speech_n and_o that_o it_o may_v be_v call_v a_o condition_n while_o we_o thereby_o do_v not_o suppose_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o merit_v thus_o mr._n lukin_n now_o we_o hearty_o accept_v of_o this_o expedient_a for_o the_o calm_v of_o the_o tempest_n which_o the_o letter_n have_v raise_v we_o will_v never_o desire_v the_o author_n to_o call_v faith_n a_o meritorious_a condition_n for_o we_o never_o call_v it_o so_o ourselves_o if_o he_o will_v grant_v we_o that_o it_o be_v but_o improper_o a_o instrument_n of_o justification_n the_o other_o be_v the_o learned_a turretin_n that_o famous_a calvinist_n professor_n of_o divinity_n late_o at_o geneva_n who_o write_v thus_o caeterum_fw-la non_fw-la anxiè_fw-la quaerendum_fw-la putamus_fw-la a_o fides_fw-la instrumenti_fw-la notionem_fw-la induat_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la negotio_fw-la etc._n etc._n 737._o turretin_n instit_fw-la part_n 2._o loc_fw-la 16._o quaest_n 7._o p._n 737._o but_o we_o do_v not_o think_v that_o it_o be_v curious_o to_o be_v inquire_v after_o whether_o faith_n put_v on_o the_o nation_n of_o a_o instrument_n in_o this_o matter_n of_o justification_n or_o likewise_o of_o a_o condition_n as_o it_o seem_v to_o some_o man_n for_o nothing_o hinder_v but_o both_o notion_n may_v be_v ascribe_v to_o it_o provide_v condition_n be_v not_o take_v for_o that_o in_o consideration_n whereof_o god_n justify_v man_n in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n after_o the_o manner_n that_o work_v be_v the_o condition_n of_o justification_n in_o the_o legal_a covenant_n for_o in_o this_o sense_n it_o can_v be_v call_v a_o condition_n unless_o we_o come_v over_o to_o the_o socinian_o and_o arminian_o who_o will_v have_v faith_n or_o the_o act_n of_o believe_v to_o be_v accept_v by_o god_n for_o perfect_a righteousness_n which_o we_o have_v but_o now_o resuted_a but_o take_v the_o word_n condition_n in_o a_o large_a sense_n for_o all_o that_o which_o be_v require_v on_o our_o part_n to_o obtain_v that_o benefit_n whether_o it_o have_v the_o notion_n of_o a_o cause_n proper_o so_o call_v or_o only_o of_o a_o instrumental_a cause_n for_o as_o that_o condition_n have_v the_o relation_n of_o a_o instrument_n so_o that_o instrument_n have_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o condition_n on_o our_o part_n without_o which_o justification_n can_v be_v obtain_v thus_o turretin_n to_o which_o we_o full_o agree_v except_o that_o we_o think_v he_o give_v too_o much_o to_o faith_n in_o conceive_v it_o to_o be_v a_o instrumental_a cause_n of_o justification_n yet_o since_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v no_o cause_n proper_o so_o call_v it_o follow_v necessary_o that_o it_o be_v not_o proper_o a_o instrumental_a cause_n and_o so_o have_v no_o proper_a causal_n influence_n upon_o the_o act_n of_o justification_n and_o if_o so_o then_o it_o be_v but_o improper_o a_o instrument_n as_o mr._n lukin_n say_v and_o so_o the_o whole_a controversy_n come_v to_o nothing_o but_o a_o strife_n about_o the_o propriety_n or_o impropriety_n of_o a_o word_n which_o turretin_n plain_o see_v and_o therefore_o confess_v that_o faith_n be_v so_o a_o instrument_n as_o to_o be_v a_o condition_n and_o so_o a_o condition_n as_o to_o be_v a_o instrument_n of_o justification_n and_o take_v the_o word_n instrument_n in_o a_o moral_a sense_n for_o a_o mean_n of_o receive_v the_o benefit_n of_o justification_n for_o christ_n sake_n only_o we_o do_v unfeigned_o affirm_v as_o turretin_n do_v that_o a_o sincere_a faith_n be_v both_o the_o instrument_n and_o receptive_a
condition_n of_o justification_n sect_n iii_o of_o his_o three_o error_n that_o there_o be_v no_o real_a change_n no_o holy_a disposition_n or_o qualification_n no_o good_a or_o holy_a thing_n wrought_v in_o or_o do_v by_o man_n in_o order_n to_o and_o before_o justification_n that_o faith_n be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o qualification_n of_o the_o person_n to_o be_v justify_v and_o that_o repentance_n be_v not_o in_o order_n before_o pardon_n of_o sin_n his_o three_o error_n against_o the_o purity_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n be_v that_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o by_o prevent_v grace_n prepare_v dispose_n and_o fit_v his_o people_n for_o their_o justification_n by_o and_o for_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n impute_v to_o they_o but_o that_o his_o first_o save_v work_n towards_o they_o and_o upon_o they_o be_v their_o justification_n by_o christ_n impute_a righteousness_n 3._o error_n 3._o that_o this_o be_v his_o opinion_n be_v evident_a from_o his_o own_o word_n for_o in_o page_n 9_o 11_o 12_o 15_o 17_o 18_o 25_o 26_o 30_o 31_o 32._o he_o deny_v that_o there_o can_v be_v any_o qualification_n in_o we_o that_o any_o real_a change_n be_v wrought_v upon_o we_o that_o any_o condition_n be_v require_v of_o we_o in_o order_n to_o our_o justification_n he_o will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o admit_v of_o repentance_n as_o a_o dispositive_a condition_n in_o order_n thereunto_o and_o often_o find_v fault_n with_o we_o for_o hold_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o qualification_n or_o the_o condition_n of_o justification_n though_o he_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o we_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v only_o the_o receptive_a applicative_a condition_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n in_o order_n to_o our_o be_v justify_v thereby_o now_o that_o this_o opinion_n be_v erroneous_a and_o against_o the_o purity_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n we_o shall_v prove_v 1._o by_o scripture_n 2._o by_o reason_n agreeable_a to_o scripture_n 3._o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o most_o famous_a orthodox_n protestant_n divine_v but_o before_o we_o come_v to_o our_o proof_n we_o premise_v a_o few_o thing_n to_o give_v light_n unto_o what_o shall_v follow_v as_o 1._o that_o we_o hold_v the_o priority_n of_o any_o preparation_n disposition_n qualification_n or_o condition_n before_o justification_n no_o far_o than_o be_v necessary_a to_o verify_v the_o expression_n of_o holy_a scripture_n concern_v they_o 2._o we_o hold_v that_o they_o proceed_v from_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 3_o that_o that_o grace_n be_v from_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o supernatural_a influence_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n 4._o that_o some_o of_o those_o thing_n whereby_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n prepare_v and_o dispose_v soul_n before_o they_o be_v justify_v be_v such_o as_o by_o the_o constitution_n and_o ordination_n of_o god_n have_v a_o necessary_a infallible_a connexion_n with_o justification_n they_o be_v disposition_n or_o qualification_n sine_fw-la quibus_fw-la nunquam_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la quibus_fw-la semper_fw-la justificamur_fw-la without_o which_o we_o be_v never_o and_o with_o which_o we_o be_v always_o justify_v of_o this_o sort_n be_v effectual_a call_v and_o what_o be_v common_o call_v regeneration_n or_o that_o seminal_a abide_a principle_n of_o spiritual_a life_n which_o be_v communicate_v unto_o we_o in_o effectual_a call_v and_o the_o new_a birth_n together_o with_o the_o first_o vital_a act_n of_o that_o principle_n in_o faith_n and_o repentance_n that_o seminal_a principle_n of_o spiritual_a life_n with_o its_o first_o vital_a act_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n do_v according_a to_o our_o judgement_n so_o prepare_v and_o dispose_v and_o qualify_v the_o soul_n for_o justification_n that_o it_o be_v always_o infallible_o connect_v with_o they_o according_a to_o the_o word_n and_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o it_o be_v never_o in_o any_o case_n without_o they_o and_o let_v it_o be_v always_o remember_v that_o in_o our_o opinion_n actual_a faith_n qualify_v we_o as_o a_o receptive_a condition_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n but_o we_o think_v also_o that_o there_o be_v other_o disposition_n antecedent_n to_o justification_n which_o have_v not_o such_o a_o necessary_a connexion_n with_o justification_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v from_o god_n spirit_n too_o 5._o that_o the_o say_v seminal_a principle_n of_o spiritual_a life_n with_o its_o first_o vital_a act_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n which_o be_v in_o order_n before_o justification_n and_o upon_o which_o justification_n always_o follow_v be_v the_o first_o beginning_n of_o holiness_n and_o may_v well_o be_v call_v initial_a sanctification_n for_o it_o be_v the_o holy_a thing_n first_o beget_v in_o we_o by_o god_n word_n and_o spirit_n it_o be_v the_o first_o form_v of_o christ_n in_o we_o and_o it_o be_v the_o holy_a root_n or_o seed_n out_o of_o which_o grow_v our_o progressive_a sanctification_n through_o the_o influence_n and_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n give_v we_o after_o justification_n to_o dwell_v in_o we_o and_o to_o abide_v with_o we_o for_o ever_o these_o thing_n premise_v we_o shall_v prove_v first_o by_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v a_o error_n to_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o real_a change_n in_o we_o that_o there_o can_v be_v any_o qualification_n or_o disposition_n wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n antecedent_o at_o least_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n to_o our_o justification_n by_o the_o impute_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n for_o do_v not_o the_o scripture_n express_o put_v effectual_a call_v before_o our_o justification_n rom._n 8.30_o who_o god_n call_v they_o he_o also_o justify_v now_o it_o be_v confess_v that_o it_o be_v a_o inward_a effectual_a call_v that_o be_v there_o speak_v of_o and_o that_o such_o a_o call_v make_v a_o real_a change_n in_o the_o person_n so_o call_v but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o this_o call_v be_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n put_v before_o justification_n again_o in_o heb._n 10.16_o 17._o there_o we_o have_v the_o order_n of_o god_n bestow_v on_o his_o select_a people_n the_o blessing_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n this_o be_v the_o covenant_n that_o i_o will_v make_v with_o they_o after_o those_o day_n say_v the_o lord_n i_o will_v put_v my_o law_n into_o their_o heart_n and_o in_o their_o mind_n will_v i_o write_v they_o and_o their_o sin_n and_o their_o iniquity_n will_v i_o remember_v no_o more_o here_o we_o see_v that_o the_o lord_n according_a to_o his_o covenant_n first_o write_v his_o law_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n which_o can_v be_v without_o some_o real_a change_n wrought_v on_o they_o and_o some_o holy_a principle_n put_v into_o they_o second_o their_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n he_o remember_v no_o more_o and_o that_o be_v he_o justify_v they_o for_o pardon_v of_o sin_n be_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o justification_n and_o be_v put_v for_o the_o whole_a by_o a_o form_n of_o speech_n usual_a enough_o in_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n further_o our_o saviour_n himself_o give_v we_o plain_o to_o understand_v that_o this_o be_v the_o order_n of_o his_o dispense_n his_o saving_n grace_n mark_v 4.12_o lest_o at_o any_o time_n they_o shall_v be_v convert_v and_o their_o sin_n shall_v be_v forgive_v they_o in_o which_o word_n our_o lord_n plain_o intimate_v that_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o unbelieve_a jew_n be_v not_o forgive_v they_o that_o be_v they_o be_v not_o justify_v because_o they_o be_v not_o convert_v and_o that_o whosoever_o he_o pardon_v and_o justify_v he_o first_o convert_v they_o and_o sure_a conversion_n import_v a_o real_a change_n and_o a_o principle_n of_o grace_n and_o holiness_n implant_v in_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o convert_v this_o be_v yet_o clear_a from_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o paul_n record_v by_o luke_n act_v 26.17_o 18._o i_o send_v thou_o unto_o the_o gentile_n to_o open_v their_o eye_n and_o to_o turn_v they_o from_o darkness_n to_o light_n and_o from_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n unto_o god_n that_o they_o may_v receive_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n etc._n etc._n by_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v mean_v justification_n because_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n be_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o justification_n before_o the_o gentile_n can_v attain_v to_o this_o justification_n consist_v in_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o their_o sin_n their_o eye_n be_v to_o be_v open_v and_o they_o be_v to_o be_v turn_v from_o darkness_n to_o light_n and_o from_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n unto_o god_n be_v it_o not_o then_o self-evident_a that_o the_o gentile_n be_v to_o be_v real_o change_v from_o what_o they_o have_v be_v in_o former_a time_n and_o that_o they_o must_v be_v renew_v and_o become_v new_a creature_n before_o they_o can_v obtain_v the_o blessing_n and_o benefit_n of_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o justification_n it_o be_v a_o wonder_n to_o we_o that_o any_o man_n shall_v doubt_v of_o this_o matter_n who_o believe_v
the_o scripture_n and_o consider_v the_o form_n of_o word_n use_v there_o by_o the_o holy_a writer_n which_o plain_o set_v forth_o the_o justification_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o a_o end_n and_o their_o conversion_n from_o darkness_n to_o light_n and_o from_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n unto_o god_n as_o a_o mean_n to_o attain_v that_o end_n now_o the_o mean_n be_v always_o in_o execution_n before_o the_o end_n consequently_n conversion_n be_v and_o must_v be_v before_o justification_n and_o if_o so_o then_o there_o be_v a_o real_a change_n in_o the_o soul_n before_o justification_n the_o person_n to_o be_v justify_v be_v prepare_v dispose_v and_o qualify_v by_o convert_v grace_n in_o order_n of_o nature_n at_o least_o before_o he_o be_v justify_v and_o till_o he_o be_v so_o change_v by_o convert_v grace_n he_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o be_v justify_v according_a to_o god_n order_n of_o dispense_n save_v grace_n unto_o his_o people_n this_o our_o author_n see_v well_o enough_o 16._o lett._n pag._n 16._o when_o he_o quote_v gal._n 2.16_o to_o prove_v that_o a_o man_n be_v to_o believe_v that_o he_o may_v be_v justify_v for_o that_o plain_o show_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o mean_n to_o obtain_v justification_n and_o all_o the_o world_n know_v that_o the_o mean_n be_v always_o first_o in_o execution_n as_o have_v be_v say_v before_o the_o end_n be_v thereby_o obtain_v now_o we_o demand_v if_o a_o man_n must_v have_v faith_n before_o he_o be_v justify_v must_v there_o not_o be_v a_o real_a change_n in_o he_o must_v he_o not_o be_v change_v from_o be_v a_o vnbeliever_n to_o be_v a_o believer_n and_o must_v he_o not_o also_o be_v initial_o sanctify_v be_v not_o true_a faith_n a_o holy_a virtue_n and_o do_v it_o not_o denominate_v the_o subject_n of_o it_o to_o be_v so_o far_o holy_a as_o he_o be_v a_o true_a believer_n peter_n say_v that_o sincere_a faith_n be_v a_o precious_a thing_n 2_o pet._n 1.1_o and_o judas_n v._n 20._o affirm_v that_o our_o faith_n be_v a_o most_o holy_a faith_n and_o it_o be_v true_a both_o of_o the_o object_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o thing_n which_o we_o believe_v and_o of_o our_o faith_n itself_o the_o habit_n and_o act_n whereby_o we_o do_v believe_v both_o be_v holy_a and_o how_o can_v it_o be_v but_o faith_n must_v be_v holy_a since_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n gal._n 5.22_o and_o sure_o nothing_o but_o what_o be_v holy_a can_v be_v a_o fruit_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n from_o all_o which_o we_o may_v confident_o conclude_v that_o something_o which_o be_v holy_a be_v wrought_v in_o we_o and_o by_o we_o before_o we_o be_v justify_v for_o it_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o and_o by_o we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v thus_o we_o learn_v from_o scripture_n that_o by_o prevent_v convert_v grace_n there_o be_v a_o real_a change_n wrought_v in_o the_o soul_n before_o we_o be_v justify_v that_o that_o change_n be_v from_o falsehood_n to_o truth_n from_o evil_a to_o good_a and_o that_o thereby_o the_o person_n to_o be_v justify_v of_o a_o unholy_a vnbeliever_n become_v a_o holy_a believer_n and_o so_o be_v a_o subject_a capable_a of_o be_v immediate_o justify_v by_o christ_n righteousness_n impute_v to_o he_o upon_o his_o conversion_n and_o penitent_a believe_v and_o here_o we_o may_v further_o demonstrate_v that_o there_o be_v through_o grace_n some_o holy_a disposition_n wrought_v in_o the_o soul_n before_o justification_n by_o all_o those_o scripture_n that_o put_v repentance_n before_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o this_o we_o have_v do_v already_o when_o we_o prove_v sincere_a repentance_n to_o be_v a_o dispositive_a condition_n of_o justification_n therefore_o we_o pass_v from_o this_o first_o to_o our_o second_o head_n of_o argument_n second_o we_o prove_v by_o reason_n agreeable_a to_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v a_o error_n to_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o real_a change_n that_o there_o can_v be_v any_o holy_a qualification_n or_o disposition_n wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n antecedent_o to_o our_o justification_n reason_n 1._o first_o we_o reason_v thus_o faith_n be_v a_o condition_n of_o justification_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v at_o large_a therefore_o it_o may_v well_o be_v a_o qualification_n of_o the_o person_n to_o be_v justify_v and_o we_o much_o wonder_v that_o our_o author_n shall_v bold_o deny_v the_o possibility_n of_o any_o such_o qualification_n for_o it_o be_v less_o to_o be_v a_o qualification_n than_o to_o be_v a_o condition_n if_o then_o faith_n be_v a_o condition_n it_o may_v much_o more_o be_v a_o qualification_n and_o that_o for_o faith_n to_o be_v a_o qualification_n be_v less_o than_o to_o be_v a_o condition_n be_v hence_o evident_a because_o faith_n as_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n without_o any_o act_n of_o we_o may_v be_v a_o qualification_n but_o to_o make_v it_o a_o proper_a condition_n it_o must_v be_v our_o own_o free_a act_n receive_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n though_o produce_v by_o the_o strength_n of_o god_n special_a grace_n now_o it_o be_v plain_o less_o for_o we_o to_o be_v the_o subject_n only_o passive_o receive_v the_o gift_n of_o faith_n than_o to_o be_v the_o agent_n free_o produce_v the_o act_n and_o perform_v the_o condition_n of_o faith_n although_o then_o our_o author_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v some_o reason_n to_o doubt_n whether_o faith_n be_v the_o proper_a condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n with_o respect_n to_o justification_n yet_o we_o can_v imagine_v why_o be_n shall_v deny_v that_o it_o can_v possible_o be_v a_o qualification_n of_o the_o person_n to_o be_v justify_v for_o it_o be_v very_o easy_o conceivable_a that_o it_o may_v be_v such_o a_o qualification_n as_o it_o be_v a_o grace_n give_v unto_o and_o wrought_v in_o the_o person_n to_o be_v justify_v on_o purpose_n that_o he_o may_v be_v thereby_o qualify_v for_o the_o great_a and_o bless_a privilege_n of_o justification_n what_o impossibility_n be_v there_o in_o all_o this_o that_o god_n shall_v constitute_v and_o ordain_v that_o none_o thould_v ever_o be_v justify_v by_o christ_n righteousness_n but_o those_o that_o be_v so_o qualify_v and_o that_o faith_n shall_v be_v the_o qualification_n and_o then_o because_o no_o man_n can_v by_o his_o natural_a power_n qualify_v himself_o with_o this_o faith_n that_o god_n for_o christ_n sake_n shall_v by_o his_o spirit_n give_v save_v faith_n unto_o all_o his_o select_a people_n and_o special_a favourite_n and_o thereby_o quali●ie_v they_o for_o justification_n we_o can_v see_v no_o shadow_n of_o repugnancy_n and_o impossibility_n but_o that_o god_n may_v do_v this_o if_o he_o please_v and_o when_o he_o have_v do_v it_o when_o he_o have_v qualify_v a_o man_n with_o faith_n he_o most_o certain_o have_v a_o qualification_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o justification_n and_o this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o darken_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n free_a grace_n in_o christ_n that_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o great_o set_v it_o forth_o and_o illustrate_v it_o that_o god_n will_v not_o only_o free_o promise_v justification_n through_o christ_n unto_o all_o that_o be_v qualify_v with_o true_a faith_n but_o that_o for_o christ_n sake_n he_o free_o give_v they_o that_o faith_n and_o do_v himself_o qualify_v they_o therewith_o the_o like_a we_o say_v of_o repentance_n it_o be_v a_o qualification_n of_o god_n own_o ordain_v and_o of_o god_n own_o give_v nor_o do_v faith_n and_o repentance_n their_o be_v condition_n hinder_v their_o be_v qualification_n for_o they_o may_v be_v and_o be_v both_o all_o that_o we_o have_v hitherto_o ascribe_v to_o repentance_n in_o order_n to_o justification_n be_v to_o be_v a_o dispositive_a condition_n of_o the_o subject_a and_o that_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o a_o qualify_a condition_n and_o a_o qualify_a condition_n be_v a_o qualification_n we_o have_v indeed_o give_v more_o to_o faith_n for_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n we_o have_v own_v it_o to_o be_v the_o only_a receptive_a applicative_a condition_n of_o justification_n which_o be_v more_o than_o to_o be_v either_o a_o mere_a qualification_n or_o a_o mere_a condition_n for_o neither_o be_v qualification_n nor_o condition_n mere_o as_o qualification_n and_o as_o condition_n receptive_a and_o applicative_a of_o christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n unto_o justification_n to_o be_v so_o receptive_a and_o applicative_a be_v not_o essential_a to_o the_o general_a notion_n of_o a_o condition_n but_o to_o the_o special_a notion_n of_o such_o a_o condition_n and_o yet_o this_o receptive_a applicative_a nature_n of_o faith_n as_o such_o a_o special_a condition_n do_v not_o at_o all_o hinder_v it_o from_o be_v a_o qualification_n of_o the_o person_n to_o be_v justify_v for_o the_o same_o faith_n in_o different_a respect_n be_v capable_a of_o different_a notion_n or_o if_o any_o shall_v doubt_v of_o that_o
both_o they_o and_o the_o synod_n which_o approve_v their_o suffrage_n and_o give_v they_o great_a thanks_o for_o it_o do_v all_o of_o they_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v and_o must_v be_v a_o great_a and_o holy_a change_n wrought_v on_o we_o and_o holy_a disposition_n and_o qualification_n bestow_v on_o we_o before_o we_o be_v immediate_o able_a and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o believe_v and_o repent_v and_o consequent_o before_o we_o be_v justify_v yea_o our_o divine_n express_o reject_v it_o as_o the_o first_o arminian_n error_n against_o that_o part_n of_o the_o three_o and_o four_o article_n which_o relate_v to_o regeneration_n and_o conversion_n unto_o god_n by_o faith_n and_o repentance_n that_o in_o regeneration_n there_o be_v no_o spiritual_a gift_n infuse_v into_o the_o will_n of_o men._n 91._o pag._n 91._o this_o arminian_n error_n they_o disprove_v and_o among_o other_o argument_n against_o it_o 92._o pag._n 92._o they_o use_v this_o for_o one_o as_o the_o will_n of_o a_o mere_a natural_a man_n be_v say_v to_o be_v vicious_a from_o a_o certain_a inbred_a and_o inherent_a wickedness_n which_o in_o a_o wicked_a man_n even_o when_o he_o do_v nothing_o be_v habitual_a so_o again_o we_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o in_o the_o will_n of_o the_o regenerate_a there_o be_v a_o certain_a righteousness_n or_o goodness_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o original_a give_v and_o infuse_v by_o god_n which_o be_v presuppose_v unto_o their_o religious_a action_n st._n austin_n in_o many_o place_n set_v forth_o this_o habitual_a righteousness_n or_o goodness_n and_o prosper_n call_v this_o goodness_n of_o the_o will_n 6._o prosper_n de_fw-fr vocat_fw-la gentium_fw-la lib._n 1._o c._n 6._o superni_fw-la agricolae_fw-la primam_fw-la plantationem_fw-la the_o first_o plant_n of_o the_o heavenly_a husbandman_n now_o a_o plantation_n note_n something_a ingraft_v in_o the_o soul_n not_o a_o act_n or_o action_n flow_v from_o the_o soul_n thus_o our_o divine_n at_o dort_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o it_o be_v a_o branch_n of_o arminianism_n to_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o holy_a habit_n seed_n root_n or_o permanent_a principle_n of_o grace_n or_o any_o spiritual_a qualification_n wrought_v in_o the_o soul_n before_o justification_n and_o we_o find_v that_o long_o ago_o robinson_n one_o of_o the_o rigide_a separatist_n from_o the_o worship_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n yet_o religious_o adhere_v to_o her_o doctrine_n in_o this_o point_n we_o be_v upon_o for_o thus_o he_o write_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o synod_n at_o dort_n 132.133_o robinson_n defence_n of_o the_o doct._n of_o the_o synod_n at_o dort_n p._n 109._o pag._n 132.133_o that_o a_o man_n may_v have_v his_o sin_n pardon_v who_o yet_o want_v all_o brotherly_a love_n and_o goodness_n the_o scripture_n every_o where_o deny_v mat._n 6.14_o 15._o 1_o joh._n 3.14_o 15._o mark_v 11_o 24_o 25._o rom._n 8.1_o psal_n 32.1_o 2._o and_o afterward_o in_o the_o same_o book_n by_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n say_v he_o god_n regenerate_v man_n or_o give_v they_o faith_n and_o repentance_n which_o they_o must_v have_v before_o they_o can_v believe_v or_o repent_v as_o the_o child_n must_v have_v life_n before_o it_o can_v live_v or_o do_v act_n of_o life_n and_o must_v be_v generate_v or_o beget_v before_o it_o have_v life_n or_o be_v regeneration_n therefore_o go_v before_o faith_n and_o repentance_n here_o we_o see_v that_o old_a rigid_a zealous_a nonconformist_n hold_v that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o real_a great_a change_n make_v on_o a_o man_n a_o holy_a principle_n must_v be_v put_v into_o he_o and_o holy_a qualification_n bestow_v upon_o he_o before_o he_o can_v believe_v and_o repent_v and_o consequent_o before_o he_o can_v be_v justify_v 56._o pag._n 56._o again_o before_o in_o the_o same_o book_n he_o say_v express_o that_o rom._n 8.29_o 30._o show_v plain_o that_o our_o predestination_n or_o election_n go_v before_o our_o call_v and_o our_o call_v before_o our_o justification_n and_o in_o the_o same_o page_n god_n choose_v a_o man_n whether_o in_o decree_n from_o eternity_n or_o by_o actual_a and_o effectual_a call_v and_o call_v of_o he_o out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o sin_n by_o give_v he_o the_o spirit_n of_o faith_n and_o grace_n go_v before_o his_o believe_v for_o he_o can_v believe_v before_o he_o have_v faith_n nor_o have_v it_o before_o god_n give_v he_o it_o but_o his_o actual_a save_n by_o justification_n and_o glorificaton_n follow_v after_o faith_n the_o same_o truth_n be_v witness_v unto_o by_o mr._n ball_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o faith_n 1.36_o part_n 1._o p._n 1.36_o every_o one_o say_v he_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o receive_v the_o promise_n of_o mercy_n the_o enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n worldling_n hypocrite_n and_o all_o in_o who_o sin_n reign_v can_v have_v no_o true_a faith_n in_o christ_n he_o be_v only_o sit_v to_o receive_v mercy_n who_o know_v that_o he_o be_v lose_v in_o himself_o and_o unsatiable_o desire_v to_o be_v ease_v of_o the_o heavy_a burden_n of_o his_o sin_n faith_n be_v a_o work_n of_o grace_n of_o the_o essicacy_n of_o god_n spirit_n whereby_o we_o answer_v to_o the_o effectual_a call_n of_o god_n and_o come_v unto_o he_o that_o we_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o life_n eternal_a and_o if_o save_v effectual_a call_v be_v precedent_n to_o faith_n the_o subject_n of_o live_a faith_n be_v man_n save_o call_v according_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n will._n we_o can_v teach_v no_o faith_n to_o salvation_n but_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o christ_n mark_n 1.15_o repent_v and_o believe_v the_o gospel_n no_o remission_n but_o according_a to_o the_o like_a rule_n luke_n 24.47_o act_n 2.37_o 38._o our_o last_o witness_n be_v mr._n gataker_n who_o say_v god_n do_v not_o actual_o remit_v or_o release_v sin_n until_o he_o give_v grace_n to_o repent_v 55._o gataker_n shadow_n without_o substance_n p._n 55._o which_o in_o the_o gospel_n phrase_n and_o method_n go_v constant_o before_o pardon_n etc._n etc._n we_o may_v easy_o bring_v many_o more_o of_o our_o reform_a divine_n to_o witness_v unto_o this_o truth_n but_o these_o be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v the_o old_a protestant_a doctrine_n general_o receive_v in_o the_o reform_a church_n that_o there_o be_v and_o must_v be_v a_o real_a holy_a change_n a_o seminal_a permanent_a principle_n of_o spiritual_a life_n some_o holy_a disposition_n and_o qualification_n wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n before_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n we_o must_v tell_v our_o author_n what_o it_o may_v be_v he_o do_v not_o know_v first_o that_o if_o he_o will_v believe_v bardwardin_n 13._o let._n p._n 13._o with_o who_o he_o say_v god_n bless_v england_n against_o the_o pelagian_o than_o he_o will_v find_v it_o to_o be_v a_o branch_n of_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n that_o there_o be_v no_o gracious_a principle_n no_o holy_a disposition_n or_o qualification_n wrought_v in_o we_o before_o our_o justification_n for_o bradwardin_n say_v so_o express_o 397._o bradward_n de_fw-fr causâ_fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 43._o p._n 397._o asserunt_fw-la ambae_fw-la part_n residuae_fw-la opinionis_fw-la pelagii_fw-la remissionem_fw-la peccati_fw-la &_o justificationem_fw-la injusti_fw-la praecedere_fw-la gratiam_fw-la tempore_fw-la vel_fw-la naturâ_fw-la that_o be_v both_o the_o remain_a part_n of_o the_o opinion_n of_o pelagius_n assert_v that_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o justification_n of_o the_o unjust_a go_v before_o grace_n in_o time_n or_o in_o nature_n thus_o bradwardin_n and_o then_o he_o fall_v a_o confute_v of_o this_o pelagian_a opinion_n by_o such_o argument_n as_o most_o manifest_o show_v that_o by_o the_o word_n grace_n there_o he_o mean_v not_o the_o goodwill_n love_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n but_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o upon_o the_o soul_n even_o a_o gracious_a gift_n communicate_v unto_o and_o a_o real_a holy_a change_n wrought_v in_o the_o soul_n whereby_o of_o ungracious_a it_o be_v make_v inherent_o gracious_a and_o of_o unjust_a and_o unholy_a it_o be_v make_v inward_o just_a and_o holy_a this_o grace_n this_o gracious_a change_n he_o maintain_v to_o be_v in_o order_n before_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o denial_n of_o this_o grace_n this_o gracious_a change_n before_o remission_n of_o sin_n he_o declare_v to_o be_v a_o branch_n of_o pelagian_a heresy_n we_o think_v fit_a to_o let_v the_o world_n know_v that_o what_o by_o some_o be_v account_v pure_a gospel_n doctrine_n now_o be_v in_o former_a time_n account_v a_o part_n of_o pelagius_n his_o opinion_n and_o that_o even_o by_o bradwardin_n who_o our_o author_n so_o high_o commend_v yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n we_o must_v declare_v that_o we_o do_v by_o no_o mean_n approve_v bradwardins_n way_n of_o confute_v
definition_n of_o faith_n as_o not_o be_v real_o harsh_a but_o only_o harsh-like_a though_o he_o put_v assurance_n into_o it_o as_o be_v essential_a to_o faith_n in_o its_o direct_a act._n so_o that_o by_o compare_v one_o passage_n of_o his_o letter_n with_o another_o we_o find_v that_o he_o believe_v with_o marshal_n that_o true_a faith_n in_o christ_n be_v a_o believe_v at_o first_o that_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o he_o believe_v with_o we_o that_o that_o be_v not_o true_a but_o that_o it_o be_v a_o believe_v only_o at_o first_o that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v again_o he_o believe_v with_o marshal_n that_o justify_v faith_n in_o its_o first_o direct_a act_n be_v a_o believe_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v assure_o save_v by_o christ_n and_o he_o believe_v with_o we_o that_o justify_v faith_n in_o its_o first_o direct_a act_n be_v no_o such_o thing_n it_o be_v not_o a_o believe_a that_o we_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o christ_n but_o it_o be_v a_o believe_v that_o we_o may_v be_v save_v by_o christ_n further_o he_o believe_v with_o marshal_n that_o assurance_n that_o our_o sin_n be_v forgive_v and_o that_o our_o soul_n shall_v be_v save_v be_v essential_a to_o the_o first_o direct_a act_n of_o justify_v faith_n and_o he_o believe_v with_o we_o that_o it_o be_v quite_o otherwise_o and_o that_o we_o do_v not_o get_v such_o assurance_n by_o the_o first_o direct_a act_n of_o faith_n but_o by_o its_o reftex_n act_n which_o follow_v after_o the_o direct_a and_o then_o for_o the_o antinomian_o he_o believe_v with_o they_o that_o before_o justification_n there_o be_v no_o real_a change_n wrought_v in_o the_o soul_n from_o ungodliness_n to_o godliness_n in_o any_o kind_a or_o degree_n because_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v in_o rom._n 4.5_o that_o god_n justify_v the_o ungodly_a and_o yet_o he_o believe_v with_o we_o that_o before_o justification_n there_o be_v a_o real_a change_n wrought_v in_o the_o soul_n from_o unbelief_n to_o faith_n in_o christ_n because_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v in_o gal._n 2.16_o that_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v and_o he_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o a_o real_a change_n from_o unbelief_n to_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v a_o change_n and_o a_o real_a change_n too_o from_o ungodliness_n to_o godliness_n in_o some_o kind_n or_o degree_n because_o he_o himself_o hold_v unbelief_n to_o be_v the_o chief_a part_n of_o ungodliness_n and_o faith_n in_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o chief_a part_n of_o godliness_n witness_v his_o own_o word_n pag._n 15_o 16._o that_o believe_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n for_o salvation_n be_v more_o please_v to_o god_n than_o all_o obedience_n to_o his_o law_n and_o that_o unbelief_n be_v the_o most_o provoke_a to_o god_n and_o the_o most_o damn_v to_o man_n of_o all_o sin_n if_o our_o author_n believe_v this_o then_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n he_o believe_v that_o unbelief_n be_v the_o chief_a part_n of_o ungodliness_n and_o that_o faith_n be_v the_o chief_a part_n of_o godliness_n and_o that_o a_o real_a change_n from_o unbelief_n to_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v a_o real_a change_n from_o ungodliness_n to_o godliness_n in_o some_o kind_n and_o degree_n the_o import_n and_o issue_n of_o this_o be_v that_o our_o author_n believe_v both_o part_n of_o a_o contradiction_n with_o the_o antinomian_o he_o believe_v that_o before_o justification_n there_o be_v no_o real_a change_n from_o ungodliness_n to_o godliness_n in_o any_o kind_n or_o degree_n and_o with_o we_o he_o believe_v that_o before_o justification_n there_o be_v a_o real_a change_n from_o the_o ungodliness_n of_o unbelief_n to_o the_o godliness_n of_o faith_n because_o the_o sinner_n through_o grace_n come_v off_o from_o his_o ungodly_a unbelief_n that_o he_o may_v believe_v and_o he_o believe_v that_o he_o may_v be_v justify_v and_o so_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n before_o he_o be_v justify_v now_o since_o our_o author_n be_v so_o strong_a a_o believer_n that_o he_o can_v believe_v both_o part_n of_o a_o contradiction_n why_o may_v not_o we_o think_v that_o as_o he_o believe_v that_o we_o preach_v a_o new_a pelagian_a arminian_n gospel_n so_o he_o may_v believe_v at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o we_o do_v not_o preach_v a_o new_a pelagian_a arminian_n gospel_n but_o the_o old_a everlasting_a gospel_n of_o christ_n he_o believe_v in_o his_o letter_n that_o we_o do_v preach_v a_o new_a gospel_n and_o for_o aught_o we_o know_v to_o the_o contrary_a he_o may_v at_o the_o same_o time_n believe_v in_o his_o conscience_n that_o we_o do_v not_o preach_v a_o new_a gospel_n for_o his_o letter_n and_o his_o conscience_n be_v two_o different_a thing_n that_o may_v not_o have_v much_o communion_n one_o with_o another_o yea_o in_o this_o matter_n they_o may_v be_v at_o hostile_a enmity_n the_o letter_n may_v be_v against_o his_o conscience_n and_o his_o conscience_n against_o the_o letter_n but_o will_v not_o the_o apostle_n paul_n justify_v he_o in_o believe_v contradiction_n since_o he_o say_v in_o gal._n 2.16_o that_o man_n believe_v in_o christ_n that_o they_o may_v be_v justify_v and_o consequent_o that_o faith_n be_v before_o justification_n but_o in_o rom._n 4.5_o he_o say_v that_o god_n justify_v the_o ungodly_a and_o by_o that_o it_o seem_v that_o faith_n be_v after_o justification_n we_o answer_v far_o be_v it_o from_o any_o that_o fear_v the_o lord_n to_o charge_v the_o apostle_n with_o contradict_v himself_o or_o with_o give_v any_o ground_n to_o believe_v contradiction_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v to_o the_o corimbians_n 2_o cor._n 1.18_o as_o god_n be_v true_a our_o word_n towards_o you_o be_v not_o yea_o and_o nay_o that_o be_v it_o do_v not_o contradict_v itself_o and_o as_o he_o do_v not_o contradict_v himself_o in_o preach_v and_o write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n no_o more_o do_v he_o do_v it_o in_o preach_v and_o write_v to_o the_o roman_n and_o galatian_n we_o must_v therefore_o so_o understand_v rom._n 4.5_o of_o which_o the_o question_n now_o be_v as_o not_o to_o make_v it_o contradict_v gal._n 2.16_o and_o that_o be_v no_o difficult_a matter_n to_o do_v for_o we_o may_v easy_o conceive_v that_o this_o form_n of_o speech_n god_n justifi_v the_o ungodly_a be_v like_o that_o of_o our_o saviour_n mat._n 11.5_o the_o deaf_a hear_v now_o no_o man_n be_v so_o foolish_a as_o to_o think_v that_o the_o deaf_a remain_a deaf_a do_v first_o hear_v and_o then_o immedite_o after_o be_v cure_v of_o their_o deasness_n why_o then_o shall_v we_o be_v so_o foolish_a as_o to_o understand_v the_o apostle_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o god_n justify_v man_n while_o they_o remain_v ungodly_a without_o any_o real_a change_n wrought_v in_o they_o and_o that_o immedite_o after_o he_o have_v justify_v they_o he_o first_o begin_v to_o make_v they_o godly_a and_o to_o sanctify_v they_o we_o be_v persuade_v it_o be_v much_o more_o rational_a to_o understand_v the_o apostle_n the_o quite_o contrary_a way_n to_o wit_n that_o as_o the_o deaf_a be_v first_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n and_o causality_n cure_v of_o their_o deafness_n and_o then_o they_o do_v actual_o hear_v so_o god_n first_o work_v a_o holy_a change_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o a_o sinner_n and_o of_o a_o ungodly_a unpenitent_a unbeliever_n make_v he_o a_o godly_a penitent_a believer_n and_o then_o immediate_o justify_v he_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n so_o that_o the_o sinner_n who_o god_n justify_v he_o be_v ungodly_a antecedenter_n feed_v none_o concomitant_a that_o be_v he_o be_v ungodly_a in_o the_o time_n before_o he_o be_v justify_v but_o he_o be_v not_o ungodly_a either_o in_o the_o instant_n of_o nature_n before_o or_o in_o the_o instant_n of_o time_n when_o he_o be_v justify_v but_o on_o the_o contrary_n he_o be_v through_o grace_n godly_a both_o before_o and_o when_o he_o be_v justify_v 2_o we_o answer_v that_o the_o man_n who_o god_n justify_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v certain_o godly_a evangelical_o both_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n before_o he_o be_v justify_v and_o at_o the_o time_n when_o be_v be_v justify_v and_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v legal_o ungodly_a for_o understand_v this_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o the_o man_n who_o god_n justify_v may_v be_v compare_v with_o and_o judge_v by_o the_o law_n of_o work_n or_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n if_o he_o be_v compare_v with_o and_o judge_v by_o the_o law_n of_o work_n he_o be_v find_v to_o be_v in_o himself_o a_o ungodly_a man_n because_o he_o have_v not_o perfect_o keep_v but_o have_v frequent_o transgress_v that_o law_n and_o so_o can_v never_o be_v justify_v but_o be_v condemn_v by_o it_o but_o if_o he_o be_v compare_v with_o and_o judge_v by_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n the_o evangelical_n law_n the_o law_n of_o the_o new_a
ministry_n of_o the_o word_n in_o order_n to_o the_o conversion_n of_o sinner_n ☞_o for_o as_o there_o be_v no_o use_n of_o the_o ministry_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o regenerate_v but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v prepare_v for_o and_o bring_v unto_o glory_n so_o there_o be_v no_o use_n of_o it_o with_o respect_n to_o the_o unregenerate_a but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v prepare_v for_o and_o bring_v unto_o conversion_n in_o his_o 9th_o position_n he_o bring_v two_o place_n of_o scripture_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v such_o disposition_n previous_a to_o conversion_n mark_v 12.34_o thou_o be_v not_o far_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n act_v 2.37_o when_o they_o hear_v this_o they_o be_v prick_v in_o their_o heart_n upon_o both_o these_o place_n of_o scripture_n he_o quote_v calvin_n observe_v from_o they_o that_o there_o be_v preparation_n and_o disposition_n previous_a to_o save_v conversion_n let_v scholar_n consult_v the_o author_n himself_o and_o read_v the_o whole_a disputation_n if_o they_o please_v what_o we_o have_v transcribe_v out_o of_o it_o be_v abundant_o sufficient_a to_o demonstrate_v that_o ames_n be_v on_o our_o side_n and_o approve_v the_o say_a doctrine_n of_o our_o britain_n divine_v in_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n 2._o dr._n twiss_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o mr._n hoard_n his_o book_n call_v god_n love_n unto_o mankind_n discourse_v there_o of_o what_o our_o divine_n at_o dort_n 205._o twiss_n against_o hoard_n p._n 205._o on_o the_o five_o article_n say_v concern_v the_o change_n which_o by_o god_n word_n and_o spirit_n be_v wrought_v in_o the_o mind_n affection_n and_o manner_n of_o man_n even_o of_o the_o non-elect_a before_o conversion_n and_o justification_n he_o say_v express_o that_o the_o disposition_n which_o god_n grant_v unto_o man_n before_o save_a conversion_n as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o elect_n they_o be_v preparation_n to_o further_a grace_n and_o so_o in_o the_o reprobate_n they_o may_v be_v preparation_n to_o further_a grace_n if_o it_o please_v god_n so_o to_o ordain_v as_o to_o bring_v they_o on_o forward_o to_o justification_n and_o true_a sanctification_n conjunct_a therewith_o and_o thereby_o unto_o salvation_n from_o which_o word_n we_o observe_v two_o thing_n 1_o that_o dr._n twiss_n absolute_o assert_n that_o the_o previous_a disposition_n which_o god_n by_o his_o word_n and_o spirit_n work_v in_o the_o elect_a before_o conversion_n and_o regeneration_n be_v preparation_n to_o further_a grace_n 2._o as_o for_o the_o like_a disposition_n wrought_v by_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n in_o the_o reprobate_n who_o be_v never_o convert_v and_o regenerate_v he_o affirm_v not_o that_o they_o be_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v in_o they_o also_o preparation_n unto_o further_a grace_n upon_o supposition_n that_o it_o please_v god_n to_o give_v they_o the_o like_a special_a effectual_a save_a grace_n which_o he_o give_v unto_o the_o elect._n and_o afterward_o in_o the_o same_o book_n he_o approve_v what_o our_o divine_n say_v on_o the_o 3d._n and_o four_o article_n concern_v previous_a disposition_n and_o which_o we_o have_v quote_v out_o of_o they_o at_o large_a only_o he_o say_v he_o do_v not_o sufficient_o understand_v the_o last_o clause_n of_o their_o argument_n to_o prove_v their_o three_o position_n which_o be_v that_o call_n by_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n can_v be_v think_v to_o leave_v man_n inexcusable_a which_o be_v only_o exhibit_v to_o this_o end_n to_o make_v they_o unexcusable_a 218._o twiss_n against_o hoard_n p._n 218._o this_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n in_o that_o discourse_n of_o they_o concern_v previous_a disposition_n which_o dr._n twiss_n pretend_v not_o to_o understand_v yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o say_v that_o he_o think_v by_o god_n make_v man_n unexcusable_a they_o mean_v god_n so_o take_v away_o all_o excuse_n from_o man_n as_o that_o thereby_o they_o become_v faulty_a and_o culpable_a before_o god_n for_o want_v of_o a_o sufficient_a excuse_n which_o he_o grant_v to_o be_v the_o ordinary_a meaning_n of_o the_o word_n unexcusable_a and_o then_o he_o add_v in_o this_o sense_n i_o willing_o subscribe_v unto_o they_o and_o therewithal_o show_v what_o i_o take_v to_o be_v their_o meaning_n namely_o this_o that_o if_o god_n make_v show_n that_o if_o they_o believe_v he_o will_v accept_v they_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v do_v not_o indeed_o mean_a that_o he_o will_v in_o that_o case_n accept_v and_o save_v they_o than_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v be_v account_v faulty_a and_o condemn_v for_o not_o believe_v thus_o say_v he_o in_o a_o desire_n exact_o to_o conform_v myself_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o these_o worthy_n of_o our_o church_n make_v choice_n of_o by_o our_o sovereign_n to_o be_v send_v in_o so_o honourable_a a_o ambassage_n to_o countenance_v that_o famous_a synod_n of_o the_o most_o reform_a church_n i_o have_v make_v bold_a to_o interpret_v they_o and_o to_o show_v my_o concurrence_n with_o they_o etc._n etc._n by_o this_o passage_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o approve_v all_o they_o write_v on_o that_o head_n of_o disposition_n previous_a to_o regeneration_n for_o he_o scruple_v only_o one_o clause_n which_o he_o so_o interpret_v as_o to_o remove_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o scruple_n and_o then_o declare_v his_o concurrence_n with_o they_o in_o that_o which_o he_o take_v to_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o their_o word_n and_o indeed_o he_o need_v not_o to_o have_v make_v any_o such_o scrupulous_a objection_n as_o he_o there_o do_v for_o undoubted_o our_o divine_n use_v the_o word_n unexcusable_a there_o in_o no_o other_o sense_n but_o what_o he_o yield_v to_o at_o last_o and_o approve_v of_o to_o wit_n that_o that_o call_n by_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n can_v be_v think_v to_o leave_v man_n faulty_a by_o take_v away_o their_o excuse_n which_o be_v only_o design_v and_o exhibit_v to_o make_v they_o faulty_a for_o want_v of_o a_o excuse_n it_o appear_v plain_o by_o the_o whole_a series_n and_o contexture_n of_o their_o discourse_n that_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o our_o most_o learned_a and_o judicious_a divine_n and_o consequent_o that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o twiss_n and_o they_o in_o this_o matter_n especial_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o twiss_n and_o they_o exact_o agree_v that_o in_o the_o elect_a the_o foresay_a disposition_n before_o conversion_n be_v preparation_n to_o further_a grace_n even_o to_o the_o special_a grace_n of_o save_a conversion_n itself_o and_o this_o be_v the_o main_a thing_n that_o we_o now_o inquire_v after_o to_o wit_n whether_o there_o be_v any_o preparatory_a disposition_n in_o the_o elect_a before_o conversion_n three_o dr._n owen_n also_o in_o his_o discourse_n in_o folio_n concern_v the_o holy_a spirit_n quote_v the_o judgement_n of_o our_o britain_n divine_v at_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n concern_v the_o foresay_a disposition_n previous_a to_o regeneration_n 196._o dr._n owen_n discourse_n concern_v the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n book_n 3_o cap._n 2._o pag._n 191_o 192_o 193_o 194_o 195_o 196._o and_o approve_v it_o and_o go_v the_o same_o way_n that_o they_o do_v in_o discourse_v of_o they_o and_o show_v what_o they_o be_v and_o how_o they_o be_v wrought_v first_o say_v he_o in_o reference_n unto_o the_o work_n of_o regeneration_n itself_o positive_o consider_v we_o may_v observe_v that_o ordinary_o there_o be_v certain_a previous_a and_o preparatory_a work_n or_o working_n in_o and_o upon_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n that_o be_v antecedent_n and_o dispositive_a unto_o it_o but_o yet_o regeneration_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o they_o nor_o can_v it_o be_v educe_v out_o of_o they_o this_o be_v for_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o the_o position_n of_o the_o divine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n at_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n two_o whereof_o die_v bishop_n and_o other_o of_o they_o be_v dignify_v in_o the_o hierarchy_n i_o mention_v it_o that_o those_o new_a divine_n by_o who_o these_o thing_n be_v despise_v may_v a_o little_a consider_v who_o ash_n they_o trample_v on_o and_o scorn_v then_o the_o dr._n tell_v we_o 1_o that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o regeneration_n of_o infant_n but_o of_o the_o adult_n 2._o that_o the_o disposition_n previous_a to_o their_o regeneration_n be_v not_o formal_a but_o material_a disposition_n 3._o that_o some_o of_o they_o be_v attainable_a by_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n alone_o such_o as_o be_v outward_a attendance_n on_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o word_n and_o a_o diligent_a intention_n of_o mind_n in_o attend_v on_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n to_o understand_v and_o receive_v the_o thing_n reveal_v and_o declare_v as_o the_o mind_n and_o will_n of_o god_n and_o he_o say_v that_o the_o omit_v or_o neglect_v to_o use_v this_o natural_a ability_n be_v the_o principal_a occasion_n and_o
by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v work_v do_v by_o a_o certain_a inferior_a kind_n of_o supernatural_a grace_n of_o christ_n and_o inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o elevate_v and_o raise_v the_o faculty_n of_o a_o sinner_n something_o above_o its_o natural_a capacity_n to_o the_o produce_v of_o such_o action_n which_o though_o they_o be_v not_o saving_o good_a and_o so_o not_o please_v to_o god_n unto_o justification_n and_o salvation_n yet_o they_o be_v material_o good_a and_o relative_o good_a too_o in_o order_n to_o the_o use_n and_o end_n for_o which_o god_n have_v ordain_v they_o that_o be_v they_o be_v dispositive_o good_a they_o have_v from_o god_n so_o much_o goodness_n as_o make_v they_o fit_a to_o be_v a_o material_a disposition_n of_o the_o sinner_n to_o receive_v from_o god_n that_o which_o be_v in_o a_o high_a order_n of_o goodness_n even_o that_o which_o be_v save_o good_a and_o in_o this_o respect_n be_v good_a they_o be_v so_o far_o please_v to_o god_n as_o they_o be_v dispositive_a unto_o regeneration_n and_o conversion_n hence_o it_o be_v write_v mark_v 10.21_o that_o jesus_n behold_v a_o unconverted_a man_n love_v he_o the_o man_n be_v certain_o as_o yet_o in_o a_o unregenerate_v unconvert_v state_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o 22_o verse_n and_o by_o the_o follow_a discourse_n of_o our_o saviour_n yet_o he_o be_v something_o solicitous_a about_o his_o salvation_n and_o have_v some_o small_a weak_a disposition_n towards_o conversion_n which_o our_o saviour_n observe_v in_o he_o and_o be_v please_v with_o it_o and_o love_v he_o under_o that_o consideration_n as_o something_o incline_v and_o dispose_v towards_o conversion_n now_o our_o saviour_n as_o man_n and_o as_o mediator_n be_v never_o please_v with_o any_o thing_n but_o as_o it_o be_v please_v to_o god_n and_o never_o love_v any_o man_n further_o than_o god_n love_v he_o 3._o the_o article_n do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o foresay_a work_n or_o action_n of_o unregenerate_a man_n do_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o inspiration_n of_o his_o spirit_n be_v by_o the_o ordination_n and_o free_a constitution_n of_o god_n preparatory_a and_o dispositive_a unto_o the_o reception_n of_o special_a save_a grace_n in_o regeneration_n and_o conversion_n but_o if_o it_o intend_v they_o at_o all_o it_o deny_v that_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n they_o be_v meritorious_o dispositive_a either_o unto_o the_o grace_n of_o regeneration_n or_o justification_n for_o the_o clear_n of_o this_o it_o be_v to_o be_v well_o consider_v that_o before_o the_o reformation_n there_o be_v several_a numerous_a sect_n of_o schoolman_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n whereof_o one_o to_o wit_n the_o scotist_n hold_v that_o a_o sinner_n by_o do_v what_o he_o can_v as_o far_o as_o his_o natural_a strength_n will_v go_v without_o any_o supernatural_a grace_n from_o christ_n may_v merit_v the_o first_o supernatural_a grace_n with_o a_o merit_n of_o congruity_n and_o this_o same_o doctrine_n be_v teach_v at_o rome_n even_o after_o the_o reformation_n and_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o publish_v by_o nider_n in_o a_o book_n entitle_v consolatorium_fw-la timoratae_fw-la conscientiae_fw-la print_v at_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n 1604._o as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o 9_o chap._n of_o the_o 2d_o part_n pag._n 57_o where_o he_o maintain_v that_o facienti_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o se_fw-la est_fw-la solis_fw-la naturae_fw-la viribus_fw-la deus_fw-la da●_n gratiam_fw-la infallibiliter_fw-la &_o necessario_fw-la that_o unto_o a_o man_n who_o do_v what_o he_o can_v by_o the_o alone_a power_n of_o nature_n god_n give_v grace_n infallible_o and_o necessary_o ●u●n_o as_o necessary_o as_o the_o sun_n give_v light_a to_o all_o that_o open_v their_o eye_n to_o receive_v it_o but_o other_o of_o the_o schoolman_n reject_v this_o opinion_n of_o the_o scotist_n as_o a_o semipelagian_a error_n yet_o even_o they_o hold_v that_o god_n have_v free_o give_v to_o a_o unconverted_a sinner_n the_o first_o supernatural_a prevent_a grace_n he_o may_v thereby_o so_o convert_v and_o turn_v himself_o to_o god_n as_o to_o merit_v of_o congruity_n the_o grace_n of_o the_o first_o justification_n that_o be_v the_o infusion_n of_o the_o habit_n of_o justify_v or_o sanctify_v grace_n now_o the_o 13_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v level_v against_o both_o these_o opinion_n of_o the_o papist_n especial_o and_o express_o against_o the_o one_a work_v do_v by_o the_o alone_a power_n of_o nature_n can_v make_v man_n meet_v to_o receive_v grace_n or_o they_o can_v deserve_v grace_n of_o congruity_n because_o they_o be_v do_v before_o and_o without_o any_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o inspiration_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o so_o be_v not_o please_v to_o god_n and_o what_o be_v not_o please_v to_o he_o can_v possible_o merit_v the_o grace_n of_o regeneration_n or_o justification_n at_o his_o hand_n 2._o neither_o the_o work_v do_v without_o any_o grace_n of_o christ_n nor_o the_o work_v do_v by_o the_o help_n of_o christ_n prevent_v common_a grace_n before_o regeneration_n make_v man_n meet_v to_o receive_v or_o of_o congruity_n deserve_v the_o grace_n of_o justification_n because_o they_o do_v not_o spring_n out_o of_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n but_o be_v both_o of_o they_o before_o it_o and_o therefore_o be_v not_o please_v to_o god_n unto_o justification_n and_o salvation_n yet_o that_o nothing_o hinder_v but_o the_o work_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o prevent_a grace_n of_o christ_n before_o conversion_n may_v by_o god_n free_a ordination_n be_v preparatory_a and_o material_o dispositive_a unto_o conversion_n and_o faith_n in_o christ_n 4._o we_o willing_o grant_v what_o the_o article_n say_v that_o work_v do_v before_o regeneration_n and_o conversion_n have_v the_o nature_n of_o sin_n because_o they_o be_v not_o do_v as_o god_n have_v will_v and_o command_v they_o to_o be_v do_v that_o be_v they_o be_v not_o so_o circumstantiate_v as_o god_n require_v good_a work_n to_o be_v yet_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o such_o of_o they_o as_o be_v do_v by_o the_o help_n of_o prevent_a grace_n be_v sin_n and_o nothing_o but_o sin_n as_o our_o author_n will_v make_v people_n believe_v for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n for_o a_o work_n to_o have_v the_o nature_n of_o sin_n cleave_v to_o it_o and_o it_o be_v another_o thing_n to_o be_v sin_n and_o nothing_o but_o sin_n the_o work_n of_o which_o we_o now_o speak_v certain_o have_v the_o nature_n of_o sin_n cleave_v to_o they_o as_o they_o proceed_v from_o a_o unregenerate_a man_n who_o heart_n be_v not_o yet_o renew_v and_o who_o be_v not_o endue_v with_o a_o save_a faith_n and_o as_o they_o be_v not_o direct_v by_o he_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n as_o the_o best_a and_o high_a end_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v true_a that_o they_o be_v sin_n in_o the_o abstrect_v and_o nothing_o but_o sin_n that_o on_o the_o contrary_a they_o be_v material_o and_o substantial_o good_a as_o they_o be_v command_v by_o god_n and_o as_o they_o proceed_v from_o the_o prevent_n exciting_a grace_n of_o christ_n spirit_n cause_v a_o man_n to_o do_v they_o in_o obedience_n to_o god_n command_n and_o likewise_o they_o be_v relative_o and_o dispositive_o good_a as_o they_o be_v order_v by_o god_n to_o be_v a_o mean_n of_o prepare_v and_o dispose_v man_n for_o the_o save_a grace_n of_o regeneration_n and_o conversion_n hence_o dr._n owen_n in_o the_o book_n aforesaid_a pag._n 196._o say_v that_o they_o be_v good_a in_o themselves_o and_o fruit_n of_o the_o kindness_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o and_o pag._n 198._o he_o say_v that_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n they_o have_v a_o tendency_n unto_o sincere_a conversion_n and_o pag._n 167._o he_o say_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n ordinary_o give_v not_o out_o his_o aid_n and_o assistance_n any_o where_o but_o where_o he_o preparen_a the_o soul_n with_o diligence_n in_o duty_n thus_o dr._n owen_n whereby_o it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o he_o be_v far_o from_o think_v that_o all_o a_o man_n can_v do_v before_o he_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o he_o and_o in_o order_n to_o a_o holy_a change_n first_o in_o his_o heart_n and_o then_o in_o his_o life_n be_v both_o vain_a labour_n and_o a_o act_n of_o sin_n and_o as_o far_o be_v dr._n twiss_n from_o any_o such_o thought_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v in_o the_o book_n mention_v before_o 106._o answer_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n and_o arles_n reduce_v to_o practice_n p._n 106._o there_o be_v a_o legal_a repentance_n and_o there_o be_v a_o evangelical_n repentance_n and_o that_o legal_a repentance_n may_v be_v unto_o desperation_n as_o judas_n his_o repentance_n be_v again_o that_o legal_a repentance_n may_v be_v a_o
but_o after_o all_o this_o anger_n on_o both_o side_n there_o may_v be_v some_o hope_n that_o the_o child_n of_o those_o father_n and_o our_o author_n may_v be_v reconcile_v in_o time_n if_o the_o old_a axiom_n be_v true_a that_o quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la eadem_fw-la in_o tertio_fw-la sunt_fw-la eadem_fw-la inter_fw-la se_fw-la they_o who_o agree_v in_o a_o three_o agree_v between_o themselves_o or_o one_o with_o another_o but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o they_o agree_v in_o a_o three_o to_o wit_n in_o bradwardin_n for_o certain_a papist_n agree_v with_o bradwardin_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n and_o they_o will_v have_v good_a hope_n that_o our_o author_n will_v do_v so_o too_o when_o they_o consider_v that_o in_o the_o 13_o page_n of_o his_o letter_n he_o say_v that_o god_n give_v bradwardin_n for_o a_o blessing_n to_o england_n for_o since_o he_o believe_v that_o bradwardin_n be_v a_o blessing_n to_o england_n the_o papist_n can_v but_o hope_v that_o he_o will_v be_v of_o bradwardins_n mind_n in_o the_o important_a point_n of_o justification_n and_o if_o the_o world_n will_v know_v of_o what_o mind_n bradwardin_n be_v in_o that_o matter_n they_o may_v see_v it_o in_o his_o book_n pag._n 406_o consiteor_fw-la deum_fw-la meum_fw-la sicut_fw-la aeternaliter_fw-la gratuitô_o i_o dilexit_fw-la &_o aeternaliter_fw-la gratiam_fw-la justificatricem_n tempore_fw-la placito_fw-la coram_fw-la eo_fw-la mihi_fw-la gratis_o confer_v disposuit_fw-la sic_fw-la tempore_fw-la placito_fw-la veniente_fw-la gratis_o insundere_fw-la gratiam_fw-la justificatem_fw-la mihi_fw-la injusto_fw-la justificare_fw-la i_o gratis_o lavare_fw-la injustitias_fw-la meas_fw-la gratis_o suscitare_fw-la &_o sanare_fw-la i_o gratis_o debitum_fw-la poenae_fw-la aeternae_fw-la dimittere_fw-la mihi_fw-la gratis_o atque_fw-la in_o poenam_fw-la temporalem_fw-la vertere_fw-la ipsam_fw-la gratis_o etc._n etc._n i_o confess_v that_o my_o god_n as_o from_o eternity_n he_o free_o love_v i_o and_o likewise_o from_o eternity_n purpose_v free_o to_o give_v i_o justify_v grace_n in_o such_o time_n as_o seem_v good_a in_o his_o sight_n so_o when_o the_o time_n appoint_v come_v do_v free_o infuse_v justify_v grace_n into_o i_o a_o unjust_a man_n that_o he_o do_v justify_v i_o free_o wash_v away_o my_o unrighteousness_n free_o raise_v up_o and_o heal_v i_o free_o that_o he_o do_v free_o forgive_v i_o the_o debt_n of_o eternal_a punishment_n and_o free_o change_v it_o into_o temporal_a punishment_n etc._n etc._n and_o pag._n 416._o nec_fw-la etiam_fw-la peccator_fw-la peccato_fw-la dimisso_fw-la statim_fw-la habet_fw-la reformatione_fw-la plenariam_fw-la status_fw-la svi_fw-la sicut_fw-la evidenter_fw-la sequitur_fw-la ex_fw-la predictis_fw-la adhuc_fw-la enim_fw-la remanet_fw-la debtor_n poenae_fw-la &_o satisfactionis_fw-la debitae_fw-la pro_fw-la peccato_fw-la nor_o when_o sin_n be_v forgive_v have_v the_o sinner_n immediate_o a_o full_a reformation_n or_o change_n of_o the_o state_n of_o his_o soul_n as_o it_o evident_o follow_v from_o what_o have_v be_v say_v before_o for_o he_o yet_o remain_v a_o debtor_n of_o punistment_n or_o bind_v to_o suffer_v punishment_n and_o to_o make_v the_o satisfaction_n which_o he_o owe_v for_o his_o sin_n thus_o bradwardin_n he_o speak_v the_o true_a language_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o make_v justification_n to_o be_v by_o inherent_a righteousness_n and_o the_o pardon_n of_o the_o eternal_a punishment_n of_o sin_n with_o a_o reservation_n of_o the_o temporal_a punishment_n to_o be_v yet_o suffer_v and_o of_o satisfaction_n to_o be_v make_v by_o ourselves_o either_o in_o this_o life_n or_o in_o purgatory_n after_o this_o life_n in_o all_o which_o there_o be_v a_o perfect_a agreement_n between_o he_o and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o let_v no_o man_n think_v that_o he_o must_v needs_o differ_v from_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n because_o he_o speak_v so_o much_o of_o god_n free_o justify_v the_o unrighteous_a for_o it_o be_v the_o first_o justification_n that_o he_o so_o speak_v of_o and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n speak_v the_o selfsame_a language_n witness_v their_o own_o formal_a express_a word_n in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n of_o the_o six_o session_n 8._o council_n trident_n sesse_n 6._o cap._n 8._o perpetuus_n ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la consensus_fw-la tenuit_fw-la ut_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o perpetual_a consent_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n have_v always_o hold_v that_o we_o be_v therefore_o say_v to_o be_v justify_v free_o because_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o go_v before_o justification_n whether_o faith_n or_o work_n do_v merit_n the_o grace_n of_o justification_n for_o if_o it_o be_v of_o grace_n than_o it_o be_v not_o of_o work_n otherwise_o as_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v grace_n be_v no_o more_o grace_n rom._n 11.6_o thus_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n whereby_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o and_o bradwardin_n be_v agree_v as_o to_o the_o freeness_n of_o justification_n and_o it_o be_v as_o evident_a from_o the_o canon_n that_o they_o be_v agree_v about_o the_o formal_a nature_n of_o justification_n wherein_o it_o consist_v and_o as_o the_o papist_n that_o keep_v close_o to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v agree_v with_o bradwardin_n in_o the_o fundamental_a point_n of_o justification_n against_o the_o pelagian_o so_o they_o be_v not_o without_o ground_n of_o hope_n that_o our_o author_n will_v agree_v also_o if_o he_o do_v not_o already_o agree_v with_o the_o profound_a bradwardin_n in_o that_o fundamental_a point_n of_o justification_n against_o the_o pelagian_o because_o he_o have_v public_o confess_v it_o in_o the_o 13_o page_z of_o his_o letter_n that_o god_n give_v bradwardin_n to_o be_v a_o blessing_n unto_o england_n sure_o then_o will_v they_o say_v among_o themselves_o this_o minister_n will_v not_o differ_v from_o bradwardin_n in_o so_o important_a a_o point_n of_o religion_n for_o fear_v he_o shall_v prove_v a_o curse_n unto_o england_n it_o be_v not_o impossible_a nor_o it_o may_v be_v improbable_a but_o papist_n who_o consider_v of_o the_o matter_n may_v thus_o reason_v themselves_o into_o the_o hope_n of_o a_o proselyte_n to_o their_o religion_n therefore_o we_o will_v endeavour_v to_o frustrate_v their_o hope_n and_o to_o prevent_v our_o brother_n be_v draw_v over_o to_o they_o by_o mean_n of_o his_o admire_a bradwardin_n and_o this_o we_o shall_v do_v by_o give_v he_o a_o further_a account_n of_o the_o principle_n and_o practice_n of_o that_o profound_a doctor_n thus_o than_o he_o write_v in_o 61_o page_n of_o his_o book_n call_v the_o cause_n of_o god_n nos_n imagine_v christi_fw-la dei_fw-la trinitatis_fw-la angelorum_fw-la &_o sanctorum_fw-la hominum_fw-la adoramus_fw-la we_o worship_v the_o image_n of_o christ_n of_o god_n of_o the_o trinity_n of_o angel_n and_o holy_a men._n again_o in_o the_o same_o page_n nos_fw-la deum_fw-la propter_fw-la se_fw-la &_o sanctos_fw-la angelos_n ejus_fw-la &_o homines_fw-la &_o ipsorum_fw-la imagine_v adoramus_fw-la finaliter_fw-la propter_fw-la deum_fw-la we_o worship_v god_n for_o his_o own_o sake_n and_o we_o worship_v his_o holy_a angel_n and_o man_n final_o for_o god_n sake_n this_o bradwardin_n confess_v to_o have_v be_v the_o principle_n and_o practice_n of_o himself_o and_o his_o church_n and_o in_o the_o same_o page_n he_o very_o kind_o make_v a_o apology_n for_o the_o heathen_a and_o excuse_n they_o from_o the_o guilt_n of_o damnable_a idolatry_n upon_o the_o same_o principle_n for_o say_v he_o it_o be_v probable_a they_o have_v some_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o he_o they_o worship_v for_o his_o own_o sake_n sub_fw-la nomine_fw-la tamen_fw-la &_o idolo_fw-la dei_fw-la jovis_n yet_o under_o the_o name_n and_o idol_n or_o image_n of_o the_o god_n jupiter_n et_fw-la nihilominus_fw-la praeter_fw-la ipsum_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o beside_o he_o they_o worship_v some_o other_o idol_n dedicate_v unto_o holy_a angel_n unto_o man_n and_o demon_n and_o in_o they_o and_o by_o they_o they_o final_o worship_v god_n that_o be_v the_o pagan_n worship_v god_n for_o himself_o but_o they_o worship_v idol_n and_o devil_n for_o god_n sake_n just_a as_o the_o papist_n worship_n saint_n and_o angel_n and_o that_o excuse_v they_o from_o the_o guilt_n of_o damnable_a idolatry_n as_o it_o do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o they_o therein_o find_v acceptance_n with_o god_n for_o they_o know_v no_o better_o and_o do_v as_o well_o as_o they_o can_v therefore_o deus_fw-la ista_fw-la piè_fw-la &_o discretè_fw-la respiciens_fw-la ignorantiae_fw-la &_o simplicitati_fw-la eorum_fw-la pepercit_fw-la sinceram_fw-la verô_o dilectionem_fw-la sanctam_fw-la intentionem_fw-la &_o benevolam_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la acceptavit_fw-la hoc_fw-la autem_fw-la consonum_fw-la videtur_fw-la rationi_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la videtur_fw-la quod_fw-la justissimus_fw-la atque_fw-la piissimus_fw-la plus_fw-la requirat_fw-la ab_fw-la homine_fw-la quam_fw-la accepit_fw-la &_o quam_fw-la sit_fw-la in_o hominis_fw-la potestate_fw-la imò_fw-la quod_fw-la illud_fw-la acceptet_fw-la si_fw-la intention_n debitâ_fw-la offeratur_fw-la god_n consider_v these_o thing_n merciful_o and_o discreet_o spare_v their_o ignorance_n and_o simplicity_n but_o he_o accept_v
heresy_n this_o we_o find_v in_o the_o full_a narrative_a of_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o glasgow_n record_v by_o dr._n spang_n in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o commotion_n and_o war_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o scotland_n in_o the_o year_n 1638_o 1639_o and_o 1640._o and_o by_o this_o passage_n we_o learn_v that_o mr._n henderson_n and_o the_o general_n assembly_n of_o glasgow_n be_v of_o another_o spirit_n and_o temper_n than_o our_o author_n be_v they_o will_v not_o nor_o can_v in_o conscience_n say_v that_o arminianism_n keep_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o five_o article_n be_v concern_v fundamental_a doctrine_n or_o that_o the_o arminian_n error_n be_v heresy_n but_o he_o presume_v to_o be_v now_o wise_a than_o mr._n henderson_n and_o a_o whole_a general_n assembly_n of_o the_o scottish_a church_n for_o he_o see_v and_o say_v that_o arminianism_n be_v a_o new_a gospel_n yea_o he_o be_v so_o illuminate_v of_o late_a that_o he_o can_v see_v and_o confident_o say_v that_o less_o error_n than_o the_o arminian_n even_o the_o pretend_a error_n of_o the_o middle-way-man_n be_v a_o new_a gospel_n or_o inconsistent_a with_o and_o destructive_a of_o the_o main_a point_n of_o the_o old_a and_o true_a gospel_n of_o christ_n here_o we_o must_v warn_v our_o author_n and_o those_o of_o his_o way_n to_o beware_v that_o from_o our_o allege_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o glasgow_n concern_v the_o arminian_n error_n they_o do_v not_o increase_v their_o jealousy_n of_o we_o as_o if_o we_o thereby_o show_v our_o love_n to_o and_o like_n of_o arminianism_n for_o we_o sincere_o profess_v that_o though_o we_o have_v a_o real_a love_n and_o respect_n for_o the_o person_n of_o some_o arminian_n who_o we_o know_v yet_o we_o have_v none_o at_o all_o for_o their_o error_n but_o we_o do_v real_o hate_v their_o error_n and_o all_o error_n wherever_o we_o discern_v they_o and_o if_o we_o can_v discern_v any_o in_o our_o self_n there_o we_o shall_v hate_v they_o most_o of_o all_o and_o renounce_v they_o with_o abhorrency_n but_o though_o we_o ought_v to_o hate_v and_o be_v zealous_a against_o all_o error_n wheresoever_o and_o in_o whosoever_o yet_o we_o shall_v do_v it_o with_o judgement_n and_o understanding_n and_o our_o hatred_n of_o and_o zeal_n against_o error_n shall_v bear_v a_o due_a proportion_n to_o the_o real_a greatness_n or_o comparative_a smallness_n of_o they_o for_o if_o we_o do_v otherwise_o and_o make_v no_o difference_n between_o error_n and_o error_n but_o judge_v all_o to_o be_v alike_o fundamental_a and_o damnable_a the_o natural_a consequence_n thereof_o will_v be_v this_o that_o as_o soon_o as_o ever_o we_o apprehend_v right_a or_o wrong_n that_o any_o christian_a brethren_n be_v fall_v into_o a_o error_n we_o shall_v immediate_o damn_v their_o person_n and_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o their_o society_n which_o we_o take_v to_o be_v against_o the_o rule_n of_o christianity_n and_o high_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o common_a good_a of_o christ_n church_n and_o to_o the_o particular_a good_a of_o our_o own_o soul_n wherefore_o as_o we_o have_v warn_v so_o we_o advise_v our_o author_n when_o at_o any_o time_n he_o apprehend_v any_o brethren_n to_o be_v in_o a_o error_n that_o he_o will_v not_o present_o cry_v these_o man_n have_v get_v a_o new_a gospel_n away_o with_o they_o anathema_n to_o they_o that_o be_v let_v the_o curse_n of_o god_n be_v upon_o they_o but_o rather_o take_v time_n to_o consider_v whether_o it_o be_v real_o a_o error_n and_o if_o it_o be_v whether_o it_o be_v a_o fundamental_a error_n and_o inconsistent_a with_o their_o glorify_v god_n on_o earth_n and_o obtain_v salvation_n in_o heaven_n and_o if_o after_o he_o have_v use_v the_o best_a mean_n he_o can_v to_o inform_v himself_o he_o can_v but_o think_v that_o it_o be_v such_o a_o great_a and_o damnable_a heresy_n let_v he_o think_v also_o whether_o he_o have_v not_o better_a endeavour_n to_o reclaim_v they_o by_o instruct_v they_o in_o meekness_n and_o love_n than_o present_o to_o proclaim_v they_o to_o be_v curse_v and_o damn_a heretic_n and_o last_o if_o after_o he_o have_v converse_v with_o they_o hear_v they_o speak_v for_o themselves_o and_o find_v it_o may_v be_v that_o they_o have_v argument_n for_o their_o opinion_n from_o scripture_n and_o reason_n which_o he_o can_v easy_o and_o clear_o answer_v it_o may_v not_o be_v amiss_o for_o he_o to_o abate_v his_o confidence_n and_o to_o think_v sober_o with_o himself_o that_o the_o error_n of_o these_o man_n may_v not_o be_v so_o great_a and_o damnable_a as_o he_o think_v nor_o the_o man_n themselves_o so_o bad_a as_o he_o take_v they_o to_o be_v but_o that_o for_o aught_o he_o know_v to_o the_o contrary_a they_o may_v be_v good_a people_n in_o the_o main_a and_o such_o as_o christ_n himself_o will_v own_v notwithstanding_o all_o their_o involuntary_a error_n for_o true_a live_a member_n of_o that_o mystical_a body_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o head_n and_o saviour_n as_o for_o our_o author_n allege_v that_o bradwardin_n twiss_n and_o ames_n be_v against_o we_o because_o they_o be_v against_o pelagius_n and_o arminius_n it_o imply_v the_o foresay_a calumny_n and_o false_a accusation_n that_o we_o be_v pelagian_n and_o arminian_o and_o be_v ground_v upon_o it_o otherwise_o it_o be_v impertinent_a for_o if_o we_o be_v as_o we_o be_v against_o pelagius_n and_o arminius_n as_o well_o as_o they_o it_o make_v nothing_o against_o but_o for_o we_o that_o they_o be_v against_o they_o likewise_o yet_o we_o must_v tell_v our_o author_n what_o it_o may_v be_v he_o do_v not_o know_v that_o bradwardin_n and_o the_o arminian_o agree_v in_o several_a of_o their_o error_n wherein_o we_o differ_v from_o and_o oppose_v they_o both_o for_o instance_n bradwardin_n hold_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o and_o redeem_v not_o only_o sufficient_o and_o efficacious_o also_o many_o of_o the_o reprobate_n so_o that_o in_o the_o visible_a church_n many_o of_o they_o be_v through_o christ_n make_v effectual_o partaker_n of_o regenerate_v justify_v and_o sanctify_a grace_n for_o a_o time_n insomuch_o that_o quoad_fw-la statum_fw-la praesentis_fw-la justitiae_fw-la in_o respect_n of_o the_o present_a state_n of_o justification_n wherein_o they_o be_v there_o be_v no_o intrinsical_a difference_n between_o they_o and_o the_o regenerate_a justify_v elect_a but_o they_o always_o fall_v from_o that_o state_n of_o grace_n or_o justification_n total_o and_o final_o and_o be_v damn_v eternal_o the_o necessary_a consequence_n whereof_o be_v that_o none_o of_o the_o regenerate_v justify_v elect_a can_v be_v absolute_o sure_a without_o a_o miracle_n or_o extraordinary_a immediate_a revelation_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o fall_v from_o grace_n total_o and_o final_o and_o be_v damn_v too_o for_o though_o they_o be_v never_o so_o sure_a that_o there_o be_v a_o holy_a change_n wrought_v in_o they_o and_o that_o they_o be_v convert_v and_o justify_v and_o in_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n for_o the_o present_a yet_o they_o can_v conclude_v nothing_o from_o that_o with_o a_o absolute_a certainty_n that_o they_o be_v elect_v and_o shall_v persevere_v to_o the_o end_n and_o be_v save_v because_o all_o that_o grace_n that_o they_o have_v for_o the_o present_a be_v of_o the_o same_o common_a nature_n with_o that_o grace_n which_o be_v in_o many_o reprobate_n and_o so_o the_o one_o may_v be_v final_o lose_v for_o aught_o they_o can_v know_v to_o the_o contrary_a as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o thus_o bradwardin_n by_o hold_v the_o actual_a justification_n and_o sanctification_n of_o reprobate_n subvert_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o saint_n total_a and_o final_a perseverance_n in_o grace_n and_o assurance_n of_o salvation_n as_o shall_v be_v prove_v from_o his_o own_o word_n if_o our_o author_n have_v the_o boldness_n to_o deny_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o now_o let_v he_o go_v and_o make_v his_o best_a of_o bradwardin_n and_o tell_v the_o people_n what_o a_o orthodox_n defender_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n he_o have_v get_v for_o his_o second_o against_o we_o who_o he_o have_v high_o provoke_v to_o the_o combat_n and_o necessitate_v to_o take_v arm_n for_o our_o own_o defence_n for_o as_o ruffinus_n say_v of_o old_a christianus_n non_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la notam_fw-la haereseos_fw-la dissimulat_fw-la he_o be_v not_o good_a christian_n who_o suffer_v the_o black_a mark_n of_o heresy_n to_o be_v set_v upon_o himself_o and_o do_v not_o endeavour_v to_o wipe_v it_o off_o and_o clear_v himself_o of_o it_o but_o now_o at_o last_o it_o be_v like_a our_o author_n will_v say_v that_o if_o we_o be_v neither_o pelagian_n nor_o arminian_n yet_o we_o can_v never_o clear_v ourselves_o of_o be_v middle-way-man_n and_o that_o here_o he_o have_v we_o and_o will_v hold_v we_o and_o we_o shall_v never_o escape_v his_o inquisition_n whereunto_o we_o answer_v
divine_n but_o cvi_fw-la bono_fw-mi to_o what_o good_a end_n and_o purpose_n do_v it_o serve_v to_o tell_v simple_a injudicious_a people_n that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o difference_n among_o protestant_a divine_n about_o justification_n whatever_o our_o author_n may_v think_v of_o it_o other_o can_v but_o judge_v that_o this_o course_n tend_v rather_o to_o confound_v distract_v and_o unsettle_v injudicious_a people_n than_o to_o edify_v and_o establish_v they_o in_o the_o faith_n for_o it_o be_v not_o probable_a that_o there_o be_v many_o so_o very_o injudicious_a as_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o can_v lay_v the_o spirit_n again_o which_o he_o have_v raise_v we_o mean_v that_o he_o can_v infalliblydecide_v the_o controversy_n which_o he_o have_v bring_v upon_o the_o stage_n before_o the_o people_n and_o so_o quiet_a the_o mind_n of_o those_o who_o he_o have_v perplex_v and_o discompose_v to_o we_o he_o seem_v not_o altogether_o so_o well_o qualify_v for_o decide_v of_o controversy_n and_o quiet_v people_n mind_n as_o for_o throw_v dirt_n on_o his_o brethren_n and_o calumniate_a they_o to_o the_o people_n as_o if_o they_o differ_v not_o from_o the_o papist_n in_o hold_v christ_n righteousness_n to_o be_v the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o justification_n which_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o lie_n we_o be_v sure_a it_o be_v a_o swing_a falsehood_n and_o a_o very_a great_a mistake_n three_o calumny_n his_o three_o calumny_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o 8_o and_o 9th_o page_n of_o the_o letter_n and_o it_o be_v that_o we_o deny_v the_o headship_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o only_o deny_v his_o suretyship_n his_o be_v the_o second_o adam_n and_o a_o public_a person_n but_o also_o treat_v these_o thing_n with_o contempt_n all_o which_o be_v utter_o false_a and_o on_o the_o contrary_a we_o declare_v that_o with_o all_o our_o heart_n we_o own_o christ_n headship_n and_o suretyship_n his_o be_v the_o second_o adam_n and_o a_o public_a person_n for_o his_o headship_n we_o believe_v according_a to_o the_o seven_o canon_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n on_o the_o first_o head_n of_o doctrine_n concern_v divine_a predestination_n t●at_o deus_fw-la christum_fw-la ab_fw-la reterno_fw-la mediatorem_fw-la &_o omnium_fw-la electorum_fw-la caput_fw-la salutisque_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la constituit_fw-la god_n from_o eternity_n ordain_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o mediator_n and_o head_n of_o all_o the_o elect_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o salvation_n we_o believe_v also_o according_a to_o the_o suffrage_n of_o our_o britain_n divine_v read_v in_o and_o approve_a by_o the_o same_o synod_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o elect_n so_o that_o all_o save_a grace_n prepare_v in_o the_o decree_n of_o election_n be_v bestow_v upon_o the_o elect_n only_o for_o christ_n and_o through_o christ_n 6._o english_a translation_n of_o the_o suffrage_n p._n 5_o 6._o this_o be_v their_o position_n upon_o which_o they_o say_v that_o god_n in_o the_o eternal_a election_n of_o particular_a man_n by_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o act_n do_v both_o assign_n christ_n to_o be_v a_o head_n to_o they_o and_o also_o do_v appoint_v they_o according_a to_o his_o good_a pleasure_n to_o be_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_n in_o time_n when_o they_o believe_v for_o his_o suretyship_n do_v this_o man_n think_v that_o he_o can_v make_v the_o simple_a people_n believe_v that_o we_o be_v so_o impious_a as_o to_o deny_v it_o and_o treat_v it_o with_o contempt_n when_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v express_o that_o jesus_n be_v make_v a_o surety_n of_o a_o better_a testament_n heb._n 7.22_o but_o it_o may_v be_v our_o author_n mean_v that_o some_o of_o we_o deny_v the_o aminomian_a notion_n of_o a_o surety_n and_o treat_v their_o notion_n with_o contempt_n and_o indeed_o that_o may_v be_v but_o what_o then_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o therefore_o we_o deny_v christ_n real_a and_o true_a suretyship_n which_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o his_o word_n for_o our_o faith_n and_o comfort_n before_o that_o consequence_n be_v admit_v our_o author_n must_v prove_v that_o the_o antinomian_a notion_n be_v the_o real_a true_a scripture-notion_n of_o christ_n suretyship_n which_o we_o do_v indeed_o deny_v and_o contemn_v as_o a_o very_a false_a unscriptural_a notion_n and_o challenge_v he_o to_o prove_v it_o by_o scripture_n as_o for_o christ_n be_v the_o second_o adam_n it_o be_v a_o abominable_a falsehood_n that_o we_o deny_v it_o or_o treat_v it_o with_o contempt_n so_o far_o be_v we_o from_o so_o do_v that_o on_o the_o contrary_n we_o do_v most_o firm_o believe_v it_o and_o open_o confess_v that_o as_o the_o first_o adam_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n unto_o all_o who_o in_o the_o ordinary_a way_n of_o human_a generation_n partake_v of_o the_o natural_a bitth_n so_o christ_n as_o the_o second_o adam_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o righteousness_n and_o life_n unto_o all_o who_o by_o divine_a regeneration_n partake_v of_o the_o spiritual_a birth_n but_o as_o no_o man_n suffer_v any_o actual_a prejudice_n by_o the_o first_o adam_n before_o he_o be_v natural_o beget_v and_o generate_v so_o no_o man_n actual_o receive_v in_o himself_o any_o save_a benefit_n from_o christ_n as_o the_o second_o adam_n before_o he_o be_v spiritual_o beget_v and_o regenerate_v our_o meaning_n be_v that_o no_o man_n actual_o receive_v from_o christ_n before_o the_o time_n of_o his_o spiritual_a regeneration_n any_o benefit_n that_o have_v a_o necessary_a and_o infallible_a connexion_n with_o salvation_n by_o the_o constitution_n and_o ordination_n of_o god_n last_o that_o we_o deny_v and_o contemn_v christ_n be_v a_o public_a person_n be_v false_a so_o far_o be_v we_o from_o that_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_n we_o sincere_o declare_v to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o we_o most_o firm_o and_o steadfast_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v a_o public_a person_n that_o he_o be_v the_o public_a prophet_n priest_n and_o king_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n and_o that_o it_o be_v his_o proper_a incommunicable_a glory_n to_o be_v such_o a_o public_a person_n four_o calumny_n his_o four_o calumny_n be_v that_o we_o teach_v such_o doctrine_n in_o the_o point_n of_o justification_n as_o neither_o we_o ourselves_o nor_o any_o other_o sensible_a man_n dare_v stand_v to_o at_o death_n this_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o 18_o and_o 19_o page_n of_o his_o letter_n if_o this_o be_v true_a we_o confess_v it_o may_v just_o prejudice_v people_n against_o our_o doctrine_n and_o give_v they_o and_o ourselves_o too_o cause_n enough_o to_o suspect_v it_o to_o be_v false_a but_o this_o be_v like_o the_o rest_n utter_o false_a and_o contrary_a to_o experience_n for_o our_o doctrine_n be_v as_o we_o have_v say_v often_o that_o christ_n most_o perfect_a satisfactory_a meritorious_a righteousness_n be_v to_o we_o and_o all_o that_o be_v save_v instead_o of_o that_o perfect_a sinless_a righteousness_n which_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v have_v in_o ourselves_o but_o since_o the_o fall_n neither_o have_v nor_o can_v have_v and_o that_o by_o and_o for_o the_o say_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n alone_o we_o be_v justify_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o all_o our_o sin_n of_o omission_n and_o commission_n original_a and_o actual_a and_o be_v accept_v as_o righteous_a before_o god_n and_o receive_v a_o right_n and_o title_n to_o eternal_a life_n this_o be_v the_o only_a righteousness_n which_o we_o crust_v to_o as_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o justification_n this_o righteousness_n we_o hold_v to_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o if_o through_o grace_n we_o sincere_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o repent_v of_o our_o sin_n and_o that_o on_o the_o account_n of_o this_o righteousness_n we_o shall_v obtain_v eternal_a life_n and_o salvation_n if_o through_o grace_n we_o persevere_v to_o the_o end_n in_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o in_o lead_v a_o holy_a life_n as_o be_v before_o explain_v but_o on_o the_o contrary_n we_o maintain_v that_o the_o foresaid_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o give_v to_o any_o for_o their_o actual_a justification_n before_o they_o first_o through_o grace_n sincere_o believe_v and_o repent_v and_o that_o none_o shall_v obtain_v eternal_a life_n and_o salvation_n on_o the_o account_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n but_o those_o who_o after_o they_o have_v first_o believe_v and_o repent_v do_v not_o apostatise_v either_o total_o or_o final_o but_o in_o opposition_n to_o such_o apostasy_n persevere_v in_o faith_n repentance_n and_o holy_a gospel-obedience_n unto_o death_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n and_o substance_n of_o our_o whole_a doctrine_n in_o the_o point_n of_o justification_n now_o why_o we_o or_o any_o sincere_a christian_n shall_v be_v afraid_a to_o stand_v to_o this_o doctrine_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n and_o in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n it_o be_v above_o our_o capacity_n to_o understand_v for_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n which_o
soul_n be_v and_o through_o grace_n shall_v be_v our_o fervent_a and_o frequent_a prayer_n unto_o he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o do_v for_o we_o exceed_o abundant_o above_o all_o that_o we_o ask_v or_o think_v 21._o ephes_n 3.20_o 21._o unto_o who_o be_v glory_n in_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n jesus_n throughout_o all_o age_n world_n without_o end_n amen_n the_o index_n the_o introduction_n no_o just_a cause_n appear_v for_o raise_v such_o a_o clamour_n against_o the_o subscriber_n the_o test_n propose_v by_o our_o accuser_n out_o of_o the_o assembly_n confession_n of_o faith_n and_o catechism_n accept_v by_o we_o who_o be_v ready_a to_o subscribe_v to_o it_o in_o the_o assembly_n own_o sense_n page_n 1._o to_o 8._o chap._n i._o concern_v the_o occasion_n and_o design_n of_o the_o letter_n some_o remark_n on_o it_o page_n 8._o to_o 18._o chap._n ii_o of_o the_o author_n error_n in_o doctrine_n against_o the_o purity_n of_o our_o christian_n faith_n sect_n i._o of_o his_o first_o error_n that_o there_o be_v no_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n the_o controversy_n state_v p._n 20_o 21._o the_o affirmative_a prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o by_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o modern_a divine_n p._n 22_o to_o 33._o sect_n ii_o of_o his_o second_o error_n that_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v absolute_a and_o not_o conditional_a 1._o it_o be_v show_v in_o what_o sense_n we_o hold_v it_o not_o to_o be_v and_o in_o what_o sense_n to_o be_v conditional_a p._n 34_o to_o 49._o 2._o with_o respect_n to_o justification_n and_o glorification_n it_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v conditional_a that_o faith_n and_o repentance_n with_o respect_n to_o justification_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n with_o respect_n to_o glorification_n be_v condition_n in_o the_o sense_n there_o declare_v prove_v 1._o by_o scripture_n 2._o by_o reason_n agreeable_a to_o scripture_n 3._o by_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o many_o modern_a divine_n p._n 49_o to_o 120._o sect_n iii_o of_o his_o three_o error_n that_o there_o be_v no_o real_a change_n no_o holy_a disposition_n or_o qualification_n no_o good_a or_o holy_a thing_n wrought_v in_o or_o do_v by_o man_n in_o order_n to_o and_o before_o justification_n etc._n etc._n the_o question_n state_v p._n 120._o the_o contrary_a truth_n prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o reason_n agreeable_a to_o scripture_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o protestant_a divine_n especial_o of_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n and_o objection_n a_o swer_v p._n 120_o to_o 145._o a_o appendix_n of_o the_o three_o section_n concern_v disposition_n previous_a to_o regeneration_n and_o conversion_n show_v what_o they_o ordinary_o be_v p._n 146._o what_o our_o opinion_n be_v concern_v they_o p._n 146_o 147._o that_o our_o opinion_n be_v neither_o new_a nor_o singular_a prove_v by_o testimony_n of_o famous_a protestant_a divine_n p._n 148_o to_o 156._o objection_n answer_v p._n 156_o to_o 162._o bradwardin_n for_o justification_n by_o inherent_a righteousness_n and_o humane_a satisfaction_n some_o further_a account_n of_o his_o principle_n and_o practice_n p._n 163_o to_o 165._o more_o testimony_n of_o mr._n dickson_n claude_n charnock_n turretin_n etc._n etc._n for_o previous_a disposition_n p._n 165_o to_o 168._o chap._n iii_o of_o his_o ridiculous_a way_n of_o convert_v a_o vnbeliever_n p._n 168_o to_o 183._o chap._n iu._n of_o the_o calumny_n wherewith_o he_o asperse_v christ_n minister_n and_o particular_o of_o the_o middle_a way_n show_v that_o we_o be_v neither_o pelagian_n nor_o arminian_n in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n p._n 184_o to_o 190._o that_o call_v the_o middle_a way_n state_v and_o show_v not_o to_o be_v a_o new_a gospel_n but_o the_o opinion_n of_o calvin_n and_o other_o of_o our_o reformer_n p._n 191_o 192._o the_o calumny_n relate_v to_o justification_n refute_v p._n 193_o to_o 195._o as_o also_o p._n 37_o to_o 40_o and_o 42_o to_o 45._o other_o calumny_n refute_v p._n 195_o to_o 204._o chap._n v._o people_n be_v advise_v to_o try_v before_o they_o trust_v and_o not_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v impose_v upon_o and_o lead_v into_o error_n by_o the_o bold_a unproved_a assertion_n and_o dictate_v of_o any_o preacher_n or_o writer_n whatsoever_o p._n 204_o to_o the_o end_n the_o errata_fw-la of_o the_o press_n thus_o to_o be_v correct_v title_n page_n for_o nostraa_v read_v nostras_fw-la preface_n page_z 3_o line_n 2_o read_v rule_n book_n p._n 1._o l._n 2._o f._n flesh_n r._n flesh_n p._n 1._o l._n 10._o after_o battle_n add_v p._n 14._o l._n 1._o for_o the_o that_o r._n that_o the._n p._n 23_o l._n 36_o f._n perfect_a of_o r._n perfect_a or_o l._n 8._o r._n virtual_a p._n 25_o l._n 2_o r._n pius_fw-la p._n 51_o l._n 31_o r._n it_o be_v a_o condition_n p._n 52_o l._n 47_o r._n go_v on_o p._n 55_o l._n 33_o f._n of_o they_o r._n on_o they_o p._n 63_o l._n 43_o f._n or_o r._n of_o p._n 67_o l._n 10._o f._n atr_n r._n act_n p._n 80._o l._n 24_o f._n inward_a applicative_a r._n inward_a applicative_a without_o a_o comma_n p._n 85._o lin_v 40._o f._n he_o a_o r._n he_o be_v a_o l._n 41._o blot_n out_o be_v p._n 88_o at_o the_o end_n blot_v out_o the_o last_o word_n this_o p._n 105._o l._n 34._o r._n receive_v it_o p._n 110._o l._n 3._o after_o emendationem_fw-la for_o a_o point_n put_v a_o comma_n in_o the_o same_o line_n after_o life_n put_v a_o p._n 115._o l._n 48._o r._n prove_v that_o no_o man_n without_o a_o p._n 128._o l._n 32_o f._n he_o r._n it_o and_o l._n 33_o r._n penitent_a p._n 138_o l._n 6_o f._n make_v r._n make_v p._n 147_o l._n 30._o f._n discourse_n r._n discourse_n p._n 149._o l._n 17_o f._n ecclesiastical_a r._n scholastical_a p._n 162_o l._n 54_o f._n they_o who_o r._n those_o which_o p._n 163_o l._n 20_o r._n reformationem_fw-la and_o f._n predictis_fw-la r._n praedictis_fw-la l._n 23_o r._n punishment_n p._n 183._o l._n 40_o f._n oar_n r._n our_o p._n 186._o l._n 30._o f._n in_o all_o age_n might_n r._n in_o all_o age_n may_v without_o a_o comma_n p._n 186_o l._n 18_o 19_o f._n chap._n 28_o r._n chap._n 30._o and_o l._n 24._o f._n infer_v for_o what_o r._n infer_v what_o p._n 189_o l._n 46_o f._n and_o efficacious_o r._n but_o efficacious_o p._n 194._o l._n 40_o and_o 41_o r._n justification_n p._n 198_o l._n 38_o f._n doath_z r._n death_n p._n 201_o l._n 42._o r._n merit_n of_o p._n 202._o l._n 50_o f._n relation_n r._n revelation_n what_o other_o fault_n the_o reader_n may_v find_v he_o be_v desire_v to_o correct_v or_o excuse_v they_o advertisement_n a_o brief_a review_n of_o mr._n davis_n vindication_n by_o giles_n firmin_n one_o of_o the_o unite_a brethren_n print_v by_o john_n laurence_n at_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o poultry_n 1693._o the_o introduction_n holy_a david_n the_o man_n after_o god_n own_o heart_n say_v of_o old_a my_o flesh_n tremble_v for_o fear_n of_o thou_o 119.120_o ps_n 119.120_o and_o i_o be_o afraid_a of_o thy_o judgement_n we_o will_v it_o be_v thus_o with_o all_o that_o pretend_v to_o any_o seriousness_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n at_o this_o day_n but_o alas_o where_o be_v such_o to_o be_v find_v where_o be_v they_o that_o be_v affect_v with_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n as_o david_n be_v and_o that_o be_v due_o apprehensive_a of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n which_o be_v actual_o upon_o and_o seem_v to_o be_v yet_o further_o come_v upon_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v it_o not_o visible_a that_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n turn_v to_o their_o several_a course_n of_o sin_n as_o the_o horse_n rush_v into_o the_o battle_n they_o run_v on_o in_o the_o way_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n blind_o and_o bold_o without_o consider_v or_o fear_v the_o issue_n and_o who_o can_v wonder_v that_o those_o who_o have_v harden_v their_o heart_n from_o god_n fear_n shall_v bold_o venture_v upon_o sin_n especial_o if_o they_o have_v get_v a_o strong_a but_o false_a persuasion_n that_o they_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o true_a the_o best_a and_o pure_a church_n upon_o earth_n most_o high_o in_o favour_n with_o god_n and_o that_o their_o sin_n be_v the_o spot_n of_o god_n child_n which_o do_v not_o hurt_v they_o and_o be_v well_o consistent_a with_o his_o high_a love_n and_o favour_n the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n assure_v we_o that_o when_o once_o professor_n of_o religion_n have_v bring_v themselves_o to_o this_o than_o they_o can_v secure_o lean_a upon_o the_o lord_n and_o say_v be_v not_o the_o lord_n among_o we_o none_o evil_a can_v come_v upon_o we_o though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o lord_n say_v that_o zion_n for_o your_o sake_n shall_v be_v plough_v as_o a_o field_n and_o jerusalem_n shall_v become_v heap_n 12._o mic._n 3.11_o 12._o we_o wish_v it_o be_v
requisite_a that_o in_o the_o justification_n of_o a_o sinner_n contrition_n be_v present_a and_o that_o necessary_o charity_n and_o virtuous_a life_n must_v follow_v yet_o do_v the_o scripture_n attribute_v only_a remission_n of_o sin_n unto_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n which_o be_v give_v only_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o receive_v sole_o by_o faith_n paul_n do_v not_o exclude_v those_o virtue_n to_o be_v present_a but_o he_o exclude_v the_o merit_n of_o those_o virtue_n and_o derive_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o acceptation_n into_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n only_o for_o christ._n if_o we_o can_v all_o be_v so_o wise_a and_o humble_a as_o to_o learn_v of_o that_o holy_a man_n and_o to_o follow_v he_o as_o he_o learn_v of_o and_o follow_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n we_o may_v yet_o defeat_v satan_n as_o to_o the_o foresay_a plot_n that_o he_o be_v carry_v on_o to_o ruin_v we_o but_o alas_o it_o grieve_v we_o to_o the_o heart_n that_o some_o minister_n by_o not_o watch_v against_o that_o most_o subtle_a malicious_a enemy_n of_o god_n and_o man_n have_v suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v impose_v upon_o so_o far_o as_o to_o turn_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d accuser_n of_o the_o brethren_n who_o stand_v up_o for_o god_n and_o man_n in_o opposition_n to_o satan_n and_o faithful_o tell_v the_o people_n that_o they_o must_v through_o grace_n true_o repent_v of_o their_o sin_n in_o order_n to_o obtain_v the_o pardon_n of_o they_o and_o particular_o we_o be_v true_o sorry_a that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o letter_n from_o a_o minister_n in_o the_o city_n etc._n etc._n shall_v have_v meddle_v in_o this_o matter_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v become_v accuser_n of_o the_o brethren_n especial_o of_o those_o pious_a young_a man_n who_o give_v themselves_o up_o to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n in_o difficult_a and_o dangerous_a time_n without_o any_o visible_a encouragement_n thereunto_o from_o any_o thing_n in_o this_o world_n and_o also_o against_o groat_n visible_a discouragement_n both_o from_o the_o world_n and_o the_o devil_n what_o have_v those_o young_a brethren_n do_v to_o provoke_v this_o brother_n who_o be_v himself_o also_o one_o of_o the_o young_a sort_n to_o become_v their_o accuser_n some_o of_o we_o who_o be_v old_a than_o they_o have_v know_v several_a of_o they_o these_o many_o year_n and_o yet_o never_o know_v any_o evil_n by_o they_o nor_o hear_v any_o evil_n of_o they_o since_o we_o first_o know_v they_o it_o have_v to_o we_o look_v like_o a_o token_n for_o good_a to_o his_o people_n in_o this_o nation_n that_o the_o lord_n have_v raise_v up_o so_o many_o young_a man_n and_o have_v spirit_v and_o to_o such_o a_o degree_n gift_v they_o for_o the_o ministry_n under_o such_o discourage_a circumstance_n but_o now_o after_o all_o that_o god_n have_v do_v for_o and_o by_o those_o brethren_n notwithstanding_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n with_o they_o and_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n upon_o their_o labour_n up_o start_v one_o who_o call_v himself_o a_o minister_n in_o the_o city_n and_o accuse_v they_o of_o be_v corrupter_n of_o the_o pure_a gospel_n of_o christ_n of_o new_a vamp_a an_z arminian_n gospel_n and_o obtrude_a it_o on_o the_o people_n 10._o let._n pag._n 10._o to_o the_o certain_a peril_n of_o their_o soul_n that_o believe_v it_o yea_o he_o raise_v the_o charge_n high_o in_o pag._n 13._o and_o say_v that_o judicious_a observer_n can_v but_o already_o perceive_v a_o coincidency_n between_o their_o cause_n and_o that_o of_o those_o two_o pest_n of_o the_o church_n pelagius_n and_o arminius_n and_o do_v fear_v more_o when_o &c_n &c_n here_o be_v a_o high_a charge_n indeed_o but_o where_o be_v there_o any_o evidence_n for_o all_o this_o one_o will_v think_v that_o no_o man_n who_o pretend_v such_o relation_n unto_o christ_n and_o such_o seriousness_n in_o christian_a religion_n as_o this_o man_n do_v shall_v dare_v thus_o to_o accuse_v his_o brethren_n and_o fellow-minister_n of_o such_o horrid_a crime_n without_o clear_a and_o certain_a evidence_n whereby_o he_o can_v prove_v they_o guilty_a for_o if_o man_n be_v suffer_v to_o accuse_v one_o another_o of_o atrocious_a crime_n without_o be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v their_o accusation_n no_o man_n will_v be_v able_a to_o preserve_v his_o good_a name_n nor_o will_v it_o be_v possible_a for_o man_n to_o live_v peaceable_o together_o in_o any_o society_n civil_a or_o religious_a this_o brother_n therefore_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v make_v to_o prove_v his_o accusation_n that_o the_o church_n may_v have_v be_v deliver_v from_o those_o young_a heretic_n if_o he_o have_v prove_v they_o to_o be_v such_o or_o if_o he_o have_v fail_v in_o his_o proof_n that_o the_o church_n may_v know_v what_o spirit_n he_o be_v of_o who_o have_v kindle_v a_o fire_n in_o the_o church_n by_o traduce_v the_o minister_n of_o christ_n and_o false_o accuse_v they_o of_o heresy_n but_o some_o may_v possible_o say_v have_v he_o not_o by_o his_o print_a letter_n prove_v they_o guilty_a of_o arminian_n and_o pelagian_a heresy_n to_o which_o we_o answer_v that_o no_o man_n of_o judgement_n who_o read_v it_o can_v see_v any_o such_o proof_n in_o it_o nor_o indeed_o see_v just_a cause_n to_o harbour_v any_o such_o thought_n of_o they_o if_o he_o but_o know_v the_o man_n accuse_v have_v hear_v their_o doctrine_n and_o see_v their_o manner_n of_o life_n and_o if_o withal_o he_o understand_v what_o pelagianism_n and_o arminianism_n be_v it_o be_v true_a he_o bold_o accuse_v they_o of_o arminianism_n and_o pelagianism_n and_o of_o preach_v a_o new_a gospel_n and_o to_o make_v the_o simple_a people_n believe_v that_o his_o accusation_n be_v well_o ground_v he_o say_v that_o judicious_a observer_n perceive_v their_o cause_n to_o be_v coincident_a with_o that_o of_o pelagius_n etc._n etc._n that_o they_o be_v reserve_v and_o do_v not_o yet_o speak_v out_o upon_o such_o and_o such_o point_n and_o that_o they_o hold_v such_o thing_n as_o be_v utter_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o freeness_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o justify_v sinner_n by_o the_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n of_o christ_n blood_n these_o thing_n be_v often_o affirm_v or_o insinuate_v throughout_o the_o letter_n but_o none_o of_o they_o prove_v a_o monster_n or_o a_o man_n of_o straw_n of_o his_o own_o make_n be_v set_v up_o to_o represent_v the_o brethren_n and_o then_o he_o call_v upon_o the_o people_n to_o come_v and_o see_v with_o what_o a_o spirit_n of_o zeal_n he_o hew_v it_o all_o in_o piece_n this_o be_v a_o way_n of_o writing_n that_o be_v take_v with_o weak_a well-meaning_a people_n 30._o let._n p._n 14_o 15_o 30._o and_o his_o hold_a repentance_n not_o to_o be_v necessary_a in_o order_n to_o the_o obtain_v pardon_n of_o sin_n may_v be_v please_v to_o satan_n and_o very_o take_v with_o hypocrite_n but_o no_o body_n of_o judgement_n and_o understanding_n can_v ever_o think_v that_o this_o be_v the_o way_n to_o prove_v the_o foresay_a accusation_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n for_o our_o part_n we_o have_v diligent_o consider_v every_o paragraph_n of_o his_o letter_n and_o in_o it_o all_o can_v find_v one_o proof_n of_o the_o say_a accusation_n and_o after_o all_o we_o believe_v in_o our_o conscience_n that_o the_o brethren_n accuse_v be_v innocent_a of_o the_o crime_n he_o lay_v to_o their_o charge_n indeed_o we_o know_v assure_o that_o several_a of_o they_o be_v innocent_a thereof_o and_o till_o the_o contrary_n be_v prove_v and_o appear_v we_o must_v think_v so_o of_o they_o all_o we_o will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o do_v so_o by_o we_o in_o case_n we_o be_v false_o accuse_v and_o it_o be_v but_o just_a and_o reasonable_a that_o we_o do_v as_o we_o will_v be_v do_v by_o if_o we_o shall_v happen_v to_o be_v mistake_v as_o to_o any_o of_o the_o brethren_n who_o cause_n we_o plead_v we_o err_v on_o the_o safe_a side_n 13.5_o 1_o cor._n 13.5_o for_o charity_n think_v no_o evil_a true_a love_n will_v not_o suffer_v a_o christian_a heart_n to_o entertain_v a_o deliberate_a thought_n of_o his_o brother_n that_o he_o be_v a_o ill_a man_n or_o a_o heretic_n without_o sufficient_a evidence_n that_o he_o be_v so_o we_o have_v meet_v with_o no_o such_o evidence_n either_o in_o the_o aforesaid_a letter_n or_o any_o where_o else_o and_o therefore_o we_o must_v still_o think_v that_o the_o accuse_a brethren_n be_v innocent_a of_o the_o crime_n they_o be_v charge_v with_o and_o that_o the_o accuser_n of_o they_o if_o he_o be_v a_o good_a man_n yet_o have_v do_v a_o very_a ill_a thing_n in_o stander_v the_o lord_n minister_n and_o we_o hearty_o pray_v god_n to_o give_v he_o repentance_n and_o forgiveness_n for_o christ_n sake_n and_o that_o the_o world_n may_v see_v and_o that_o this_o brother_n himself_o may_v see_v how_o rash_a and_o
the_o say_v nethenus_n in_o the_o publish_n of_o that_o book_n of_o rutherford_n and_o though_o he_o have_v late_o go_v off_o from_o his_o principle_n and_o we_o think_v from_o some_o principle_n contain_v in_o that_o book_n both_o as_o to_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o he_o will_v even_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o have_v change_v his_o godliness_n with_o his_o principle_n and_o that_o as_o he_o have_v get_v new_a principle_n so_o he_o have_v a_o new_a godliness_n and_o that_o he_o never_o have_v any_o before_o if_o we_o shall_v be_v mistake_v in_o this_o our_o charitable_a opinion_n of_o he_o we_o shall_v be_v sorry_a for_o he_o and_o can_v not_o but_o fear_v that_o he_o be_v in_o as_o bad_a a_o case_n as_o he_o fancy_v the_o middle-way_n man_n to_o be_v in_o who_o usual_o have_v a_o great_a kindness_n he_o say_v for_o that_o extreme_a they_o go_v half_a way_n to_o 2._o let._n pag._n 2._o than_o for_o that_o they_o go_v half_a way_n from_o for_o if_o he_o shall_v be_v find_v to_o have_v make_v such_o a_o profession_n that_o his_o godliness_n begin_v with_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o new_a principle_n he_o be_v not_o only_o go_v the_o half_a but_o we_o think_v the_o whole_a way_n to_o the_o extreme_a and_o that_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o will_v help_v we_o to_o account_v for_o his_o be_v so_o unmerciful_a in_o his_o censure_n and_o accusation_n of_o we_o who_o have_v rather_o stop_v in_o the_o midway_n than_o to_o run_v with_o he_o into_o such_o extreme_n this_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o a_o passage_n in_o mr._n patrick_n hamilton_n little_a treatise_n in_o the_o book_n of_o martyr_n vol._n ii_o pag._n 188._o col._n 2._o to_o which_o the_o letter_n refer_v we_o 4._o pag._n 4._o and_o which_o we_o have_v read_v upon_o our_o author_n recommendation_n the_o passage_n be_v this_o evil_n work_v make_v not_o a_o man_n evil_n we_o hope_v our_o author_n will_v not_o have_v we_o to_o understand_v these_o word_n just_a as_o they_o sound_v without_o interpretation_n or_o distinction_n we_o honour_v the_o memory_n of_o that_o bless_a martyr_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v willing_a to_o understand_v his_o word_n just_a as_o he_o mean_v they_o and_o as_o they_o be_v consistent_a with_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o that_o be_v thus_o evil_a work_n do_v not_o make_v a_o man_n first_o evil_n because_o we_o be_v all_o evil_a by_o participation_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n from_o our_o conception_n and_o birth_n psal_n 51.5_o john_n 3.6_o eph._n 2.3_o but_o for_o all_o that_o we_o know_v very_o well_o that_o in_o another_o sense_n evil_a work_n do_v real_o make_v a_o man_n evil_a they_o make_v he_o gradual_o evil_a that_o be_v they_o make_v he_o worse_o than_o he_o be_v if_o our_o author_n do_v not_o see_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o at_o a_o distance_n let_v he_o bring_v it_o home_o to_o himself_o and_o then_o we_o dare_v say_v he_o will_v see_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o we_o affirm_v that_o evil_a work_n will_v make_v a_o man_n evil_a that_o be_v worse_o than_o he_o be_v for_o if_o not_o then_o 1._o it_o must_v be_v either_o because_o he_o be_v so_o very_o bad_a already_o that_o he_o can_v possible_o be_v worse_a and_o this_o we_o hope_v our_o author_n will_v confess_v not_o to_o be_v true_a of_o himself_o or_o else_o 2_o it_o must_v be_v because_o he_o be_v already_o so_o very_o good_a that_o let_v he_o do_v never_o so_o many_o evil_a work_n they_o can_v make_v he_o evil_a that_o be_v they_o can_v make_v he_o worse_o than_o he_o be_v before_o he_o do_v they_o now_o we_o can_v think_v that_o he_o have_v such_o a_o opinion_n of_o himself_o if_o we_o know_v that_o he_o have_v we_o shall_v look_v upon_o he_o as_o a_o very_a dangerous_a man_n to_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v with_o for_o he_o may_v do_v we_o all_o the_o mischief_n he_o can_v by_o lie_v and_o slander_v or_o otherwise_o and_o yet_o be_v persuade_v in_o his_o own_o mind_n that_o he_o be_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o worse_a for_o so_o do_v he_o and_o we_o both_o profess_v to_o believe_v that_o all_o god_n regenerate_v justify_v people_n be_v keep_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n so_o as_o that_o they_o do_v not_o fall_v from_o grace_n either_o total_o or_o final_o but_o we_o must_v profess_v for_o ourselves_o that_o it_o be_v none_o of_o our_o faith_n that_o the_o saint_n on_o earth_n be_v already_o so_o confirm_v in_o goodness_n that_o they_o can_v sin_v at_o all_o or_o if_o they_o do_v sin_n as_o alas_o too_o sad_o they_o have_v do_v and_o frequent_o do_v that_o their_o sin_n do_v not_o make_v they_o evil_a in_o any_o degree_n nor_o in_o the_o least_o worse_o than_o they_o be_v before_o they_o sin_v and_o we_o hope_v our_o author_n be_v not_o so_o far_o go_v but_o that_o he_o will_v yet_o join_v with_o we_o in_o this_o profession_n for_o by_o this_o time_n we_o think_v he_o may_v see_v if_o he_o do_v not_o before_o the_o certain_a and_o evident_a truth_n of_o what_o we_o affirm_v that_o evil_a work_n will_v make_v a_o man_n evil_a that_o be_v if_o he_o be_v evil_a already_o they_o will_v make_v he_o more_o evil_a and_o if_o he_o be_v good_a already_o they_o will_v make_v he_o less_o good_a and_o to_o be_v less_o good_a than_o he_o shall_v be_v be_v to_o be_v in_o some_o degree_n evil_a see_v the_o xvith_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o our_o author_n and_o we_o have_v all_o subscribe_v as_o also_o the_o iith_o article_n of_o the_o ausburg_n confession_n of_o faith_n and_o by_o both_o it_o will_v manifest_o appear_v that_o our_o first_o reformer_n even_o the_o lutheran_n by_o who_o mr._n hamilton_n through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v full_o convert_v from_o popery_n and_o from_o who_o he_o have_v that_o passage_n that_o evil_a work_n do_v not_o make_v a_o man_n evil_a never_o think_v that_o a_o good_a man_n can_v do_v any_o evil_a work_n or_o that_o if_o any_o man_n good_a or_o evil_n do_v evil_a work_n they_o will_v not_o make_v he_o evil_a that_o be_v worse_o than_o he_o be_v before_o he_o do_v they_o in_o all_o this_o we_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o contradict_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o bless_a martyr_n mr._n hamilton_n but_o explain_v his_o word_n and_o give_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o they_o as_o will_v appear_v to_o any_o man_n of_o judgement_n that_o will_v be_v at_o the_o pain_n to_o read_v attentive_o what_o he_o say_v before_o and_o after_o the_o word_n we_o be_v upon_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v mention_v this_o but_o that_o we_o be_v afraid_a lest_o ignorant_a injudicious_a people_n unto_o who_o our_o author_n recommend_v that_o little_a treatise_n of_o mr._n hamiltons_n shall_v wrest_v the_o word_n of_o a_o holy_a martyr_n to_o countenance_n and_o encourage_v libertinism_n 3.16_o 2_o pet._n 3.16_o as_o they_o do_v wrest_v the_o sacred_a word_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a god_n himself_o unto_o their_o own_o destruction_n we_o do_v not_o by_o this_o reflect_v in_o the_o least_o upon_o the_o say_a martyr_n of_o bless_a memory_n but_o rather_o endeavour_v as_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o secure_v his_o good_a name_n from_o any_o reproach_n which_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o religion_n may_v possible_o cast_v upon_o it_o from_o a_o wrong_n and_o wrest_a sense_n of_o his_o word_n as_o they_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o do_v this_o we_o have_v here_o provide_v against_o by_o give_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o his_o word_n which_o be_v right_o understand_v have_v nothing_o harsh_a in_o they_o at_o all_o but_o otherwise_o take_v just_o according_a to_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o letter_n they_o carry_v a_o very_a scandalous_a meaning_n which_o we_o dare_v say_v the_o holy_a martyr_n never_o think_v of_o we_o do_v not_o doubt_v therefore_o but_o our_o author_n will_v confess_v that_o we_o have_v do_v right_a to_o the_o martyr_n and_o have_v right_o interpret_v his_o say_n which_o he_o learn_v of_o luther_n but_o if_o we_o happen_v to_o be_v mistake_v as_o to_o our_o author_n and_o he_o will_v not_o admit_v this_o sense_n we_o have_v give_v of_o the_o foresay_a word_n than_o he_o can_v be_v just_o offend_v if_o this_o be_v give_v as_o his_o character_n the_o author_n of_o the_o letter_n be_v one_o who_o hold_v that_o no_o man_n can_v make_v himself_o evil_a by_o do_v evil_a that_o be_v he_o hold_v that_o no_o man_n by_o do_v all_o the_o evil_a and_o mischief_n that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o do_v can_v make_v himself_o in_o the_o least_o degree_n worse_o than_o he_o be_v and_o then_o let_v the_o world_n judge_n how_o well_o he_o have_v clear_v himself_o of_o the_o
suspicion_n of_o antinomianism_n which_o he_o have_v bring_v upon_o himself_o but_o we_o be_v real_o persuade_v better_a thing_n of_o our_o author_n though_o we_o thus_o write_v upon_o a_o supposition_n which_o we_o hope_v he_o will_v never_o admit_v but_o rather_o than_o admit_v such_o a_o supposition_n with_o its_o necessary_a consequence_n he_o will_v join_v with_o we_o and_o say_v that_o luther_n and_o mr._n hamilton_n mean_v no_o more_o but_o that_o evil_a work_n do_v not_o first_o make_v a_o man_n evil_a because_o ever_o since_o the_o first_o sin_n of_o adam_n and_o eve_n all_o mere_a man_n beside_o they_o two_o be_v evil_a by_o original_a sin_n before_o they_o commit_v any_o actual_a sin_n thus_o much_o shall_v suffice_v to_o have_v say_v of_o the_o occasion_n and_o design_n of_o the_o letter_n chap._n ii_o of_o the_o author_n error_n in_o doctrine_n against_o the_o purity_n of_o our_o christian_n faith_n section_n i._o of_o his_o first_o error_n that_o there_o be_v no_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n the_o first_o error_n against_o our_o christian_a faith_n which_o we_o find_v in_o the_o letter_n be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n according_a to_o which_o the_o lord_n dispense_v unto_o his_o people_n the_o benefit_n and_o blessing_n of_o justification_n and_o eternal_a saulation_n that_o we_o do_v not_o wrong_v he_o in_o charge_v he_o with_o this_o erroneous_a opinion_n be_v evident_a from_o his_o letter_n pag._n 9_o 18_o 29._o and_o pag._n 30_o 31._o where_o he_o say_v that_o justification_n upon_o the_o term_n of_o the_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o sound_a word_n of_o the_o reverend_a assembly_n of_o divine_n at_o westminster_n and_o that_o the_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v a_o new_a word_n but_o of_o a_o old_a and_o ill_a meaning_n thus_o he_o and_o this_o the_o people_n must_v believe_v upon_o his_o bare_a word_n without_o any_o proof_n now_o to_o refute_v this_o we_o need_v do_v no_o more_o but_o refer_v they_o that_o desire_v to_o know_v who_o be_v in_o the_o right_n as_o to_o this_o matter_n unto_o mr._n william_n defence_n of_o gospel_n truth_n from_o pag._n 18_o to_o 34._o where_o it_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v by_o scripture_n by_o reason_n ground_v on_o scripture_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o divine_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n that_o there_o be_v a_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v that_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n this_o error_n then_o that_o there_o be_v no_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v refute_v to_o our_o hand_n we_o may_v well_o pass_v it_o and_o proceed_v to_o another_o yet_o because_o the_o author_n discover_v so_o much_o ignorance_n and_o boldness_n in_o what_o he_o say_v to_o the_o people_n upon_o this_o point_n we_o judge_v it_o expedient_a to_o insi_v a_o little_a upon_o it_o both_o to_o instruct_v and_o also_o to_o rebuke_v he_o and_o because_o he_o will_v make_v the_o people_n believe_v whether_o he_o believe_v it_o of_o we_o himself_o god_n and_o his_o own_o conscience_n know_v that_o we_o consider_v god_n only_o as_o a_o rector_n rule_v by_o a_o prescribe_a law_n in_o all_o his_o purpose_n concern_v and_o deal_n with_o the_o child_n of_o man_n that_o he_o may_v not_o go_v on_o deceive_v and_o be_v deceive_v we_o declare_v to_o the_o world_n that_o we_o never_o think_v speak_v or_o write_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o he_o will_v fasten_v upon_o we_o that_o he_o may_v the_o better_o misrepresent_v we_o to_o the_o people_n pag._n 9_o at_o the_o beginning_n to_o wit_n that_o god_n be_v only_o to_o be_v consider_v under_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o rector_n and_o judge_n as_o aforesaid_a where_o by_o the_o way_n we_o can_v but_o take_v notice_n how_o honest_o he_o deal_v by_o our_o reverend_a brother_n mr._n williams_n in_o draw_v this_o inference_n from_o a_o pretend_a scheme_n of_o his_o doctrine_n thus_o say_v our_o author_n they_o antedate_v the_o last_o day_n and_o hold_v forth_o christ_n as_o a_o judge_n rather_o than_o a_o saviour_n here_o the_o world_n see_v what_o doctrine_n he_o fix_v upon_o mr._n williams_n next_o let_v they_o turn_v to_o pag._n 56._o of_o gospel_n truth_n state_v etc._n etc._n and_o there_o they_o will_v find_v these_o express_a word_n of_o mr._n williams_n he_o christ_n treat_v with_o man_n as_o his_o subject_n who_o he_o will_v now_o rule_v and_o hereafter_o judge_n now_o can_v christ_n be_v our_o saviour_n but_o by_o cease_v to_o be_v our_o ruler_n and_o can_v we_o be_v save_v by_o he_o but_o by_o cease_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o he_o where_o be_v that_o man_n brain_n who_o can_v see_v if_o he_o will_v that_o these_o two_o thing_n do_v very_o well_o consist_v that_o christ_n be_v both_o our_o saviour_n and_o ruler_n at_o the_o same_o time_n but_o this_o only_a on_o the_o by_o we_o declare_v therefore_o again_o that_o we_o never_o think_v speak_v or_o write_v that_o god_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v only_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o rector_n or_o judge_n in_o all_o his_o purpose_n concern_v and_o deal_n with_o the_o race_n of_o mankind_n on_o the_o contrary_n we_o believe_v that_o first_o god_n as_o a_o absolute_a sovereign_a lord_n of_o his_o own_o most_o free_a and_o gracious_a will_n and_o pleasure_n purpose_v to_o give_v and_o according_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n to_o be_v the_o redeemer_n and_o saviour_n of_o sinful_a man_n but_o not_o of_o fall_v angel_n second_o that_o god_n as_o a_o absolute_a sovereign_a lord_n of_o his_o own_o good_a pleasure_n and_o according_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o own_o will_n do_v before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n choose_v some_o and_o not_o other_o of_o the_o lapse_v and_o lose_v race_n of_o mankind_n unto_o the_o participation_n of_o special_a effectual_a victorious_a grace_n and_o eternal_a glory_n through_o christ_n jesus_n three_o that_o in_o the_o first_o make_v of_o the_o covenant_n and_o enact_v of_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n with_o we_o through_o christ_n jesus_n god_n do_v not_o act_v as_o a_o governor_n rule_v we_o according_a to_o a_o external_a law_n which_o he_o have_v before_o make_v for_o we_o but_o as_o a_o sovereign_n and_o gracious_a lord_n who_o have_v free_o purpose_v to_o save_v we_o in_o such_o a_o way_n by_o jesus_n christ_n four_o that_o in_o give_v the_o foresay_a special_a effectual_a victorious_a grace_n to_o the_o elect_n rather_o than_o to_o other_o god_n do_v not_o act_n as_o a_o rector_n or_o governor_n according_a to_o a_o state_v law_n prescribe_v to_o we_o and_o know_v by_o we_o but_o according_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o own_o will_n and_o his_o hide_a purpose_n and_o transaction_n with_o christ_n concern_v we_o five_o but_o yet_o in_o good_a consistency_n with_o what_o we_o have_v say_v we_o do_v firm_o believe_v that_o god_n have_v enact_v and_o constitute_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n for_o bestow_v upon_o we_o the_o subsequent_a blessing_n and_o benefit_n of_o the_o covenant_n such_o as_o justification_n and_o glorification_n this_o law_n god_n have_v reveal_v to_o we_o in_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n by_o this_o law_n he_o both_o oblige_v and_o encourage_v we_o to_o certain_a duty_n and_o also_o by_o the_o promise_n of_o it_o oblige_v himself_o to_o justify_v and_o glorify_v we_o for_o christ_n sake_n if_o we_o perform_v the_o duty_n prescribe_v and_o comply_v with_o the_o term_n enjoin_v it_o be_v with_o respect_n to_o those_o subsequent_a blessing_n and_o benefit_n of_o the_o covenant_n that_o we_o say_v the_o lord_n deal_v with_o we_o as_o a_o rector_n and_o governor_n rule_v we_o by_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n this_o law_n be_v express_v in_o holy_a scripture_n in_o several_a form_n of_o word_n as_o that_o 8.51_o see_v also_o ps_n 103.17_o 18._o pr._n 28.13_o isa_n 1.16_o 17_o 18._o &_o 55.7_o jer._n 36.3_o act_n 2.38_o &_o ●_o 19_o &_o 16.31_o &_o 26.18_o heb._n 5.9_o &_o 12.14_o revel_v 2.10_o &_o 3.21_o &_o 22.14_o john_n 8.51_o ho_o who_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v but_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v mark_v 16.16_o and_o if_o thou_o shall_v confess_v with_o thy_o mouth_n the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o shall_v believe_v in_o thy_o heart_n that_o god_n have_v raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a thou_o shall_v be_v save_v rom._n 10.9_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o christ_n shall_v receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n act_n 10.43_o except_o you_o repent_v you_o shall_v all_o likewise_o perish_v luke_n 13.5_o this_o be_v that_o which_o we_o mean_v by_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o our_o meaning_n be_v so_o plain_a that_o any_o man_n endue_v with_o
common_a sense_n and_o reason_n may_v understand_v it_o but_o our_o brethren_n do_v not_o like_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o why_o we_o pray_v do_v not_o they_o like_v it_o 1._o be_v it_o because_o it_o be_v call_v a_o law_n why_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n call_v it_o so_o express_o rom._n 3.27_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n gal._n 6.2_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n the_o messiah_n law_n the_o isle_n shall_v wait_v for_o his_o law_n isa_n 42.4_o or_o 2._o be_v it_o because_o it_o oblige_v to_o duty_n with_o a_o promise_n of_o blessing_n to_o the_o performer_n and_o with_o a_o threaten_n of_o misery_n and_o punishment_n to_o the_o neglecter_n refuser_n and_o despiser_n if_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n wherefore_o they_o like_v it_o not_o then_o let_v they_o receive_v a_o answer_n from_o the_o lord_n own_o mouth_n luke_o 19.27_o those_o my_o enemy_n which_o will_v not_o that_o i_o shall_v reign_v over_o they_o bring_v they_o hither_o and_o slay_v they_o before_o i_o but_o we_o have_v better_a hope_n of_o our_o brethren_n or_o 3._o be_v it_o because_o we_o call_v it_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n why_o we_o call_v it_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n because_o it_o real_o be_v so_o it_o be_v a_o gracious_a law_n for_o it_o be_v a_o federal_n or_o covenant-law_n that_o make_v rich_a offer_v of_o grace_n of_o justify_v and_o glorify_v grace_n and_o it_o be_v a_o mean_n also_o whereby_o the_o lord_n convey_v unto_o his_o people_n regenerate_v and_o sanctify_a grace_n it_o be_v a_o mean_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v ordain_v to_o bring_v his_o people_n to_o faith_n repentance_n and_o gospel-obedience_n therefore_o it_o may_v well_o be_v call_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o we_o think_v none_o shall_v and_o especial_o our_o angry_a brethren_n shall_v not_o like_v it_o the_o worse_a because_o we_o call_v it_o and_o it_o real_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n they_o do_v not_o like_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o worse_o because_o it_o be_v call_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o why_o then_o shall_v they_o like_v this_o law_n of_o christ_n the_o worse_a because_o we_o call_v it_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n especial_o when_o we_o tell_v they_o that_o this_o law_n of_o grace_n be_v the_o conditional_a part_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n it_o be_v that_o part_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o respect_v the_o way_n of_o god_n dispense_n to_o we_o the_o subsequent_a blessing_n and_o benefit_n of_o the_o covenant_n such_o as_o pardon_v of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o do_v not_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 4.16_o say_v express_o that_o it_o be_v of_o faith_n that_o it_o may_v be_v by_o grace_n or_o 4._o and_o last_o be_v it_o because_o we_o call_v it_o a_o new_a law_n if_o that_o be_v it_o that_o displease_v why_o shall_v our_o brethren_n be_v displease_v on_o that_o account_n since_o they_o know_v if_o it_o be_v not_o their_o own_o fault_n that_o we_o call_v it_o the_o new_a law_n in_o no_o other_o sense_n than_o as_o we_o call_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n the_o new_a covenant_n this_o law_n of_o grace_n we_o speak_v of_o be_v both_o new_a and_o old_a in_o different_a respect_n it_o be_v new_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n make_v with_o man_n in_o his_o state_n of_o innocency_n for_o that_o covenant_n of_o work_n be_v before_o this_o law_n of_o grace_n which_o come_v after_o and_o therefore_o be_v comparative_o new_a again_o as_o we_o christian_n have_v it_o it_o be_v call_v new_a because_o we_o have_v the_o new_a and_o clear_a and_o last_o edition_n of_o it_o and_o as_o in_o these_o respect_v it_o be_v new_a so_o in_o other_o respect_v it_o be_v old_a it_o be_v old_a as_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o have_v have_v a_o existence_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n ever_o since_o the_o first_o promise_n of_o grace_n make_v to_o our_o first_o parent_n after_o the_o fall_n it_o be_v the_o everlasting_a gospel_n 29._o rev._n 14.7_o heb._n 12.26_o 27_o 28_o 29._o which_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n under_o various_a form_n of_o administration_n and_o will_v continue_v in_o we_o new_a and_o excellent_a form_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n we_o hear_v it_o be_v say_v by_o some_o that_o the_o command_n to_o believe_v and_o repent_v with_o the_o promise_n of_o pardon_n to_o the_o penitent_a believer_n and_o the_o threaten_n of_o punishment_n to_o the_o impenitent_a unbeliever_n can_v be_v a_o evangelical_n law_n because_o god_n do_v not_o give_v unto_o all_o special_a grace_n to_o enable_v they_o to_o believe_v and_o repent_v in_o obedience_n to_o that_o command_n we_o answer_v 1._o if_o that_o be_v it_o that_o hinder_v it_o from_o be_v a_o law_n then_o notwithstanding_o that_o reason_n it_o be_v a_o law_n to_o all_o god_n elect_n for_o to_o they_o he_o give_v through_o christ_n the_o say_v special_a grace_n 2._o we_o deny_v the_o consequence_n god_n give_v not_o special_a grace_n to_o the_o non-elect_a therefore_o the_o command_n to_o believe_v and_o repent_v with_o the_o annex_v conditional_a promise_n of_o pardon_n and_o threaten_v of_o punishment_n can_v be_v a_o law_n to_o they_o it_o may_v be_v and_o be_v a_o law_n to_o they_o though_o the_o say_v special_a grace_n be_v not_o give_v they_o and_o whereas_o it_o be_v object_v that_o without_o such_o special_a grace_n the_o non-elect_a can_v obey_v that_o law_n we_o answer_v 1._o that_o their_o not_o their_o impotence_n be_v not_o physical_a but_o moral_a they_o can_v be_v cause_n they_o will_v not_o 2._o the_o non-elect_a to_o who_o the_o evangelical_n law_n be_v promulgate_v together_o with_o it_o receive_v more_o commongrace_n more_o light_a and_o power_n from_o the_o lord_n in_o order_n to_o their_o obey_v his_o reveal_v will_n than_o they_o make_v a_o good_a use_n of_o hence_o the_o professor_n of_o leyden_n in_o their_o synopsis_n of_o pure_a divinity_n write_v thus_o concern_v this_o matter_n diligenter_n notandum_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n 291._o disp_n 24._o thes_n 54_o 55._o p._n 290_o 291._o it_o be_v diligent_o to_o be_v note_v that_o this_o nonelection_n do_v not_o take_v away_o or_o deny_v all_o grace_n in_o the_o non-elect_a but_o only_o that_o grace_n which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o elect._n but_o that_o grace_n which_o in_o various_a measure_n be_v dispense_v unto_o ●on_n by_o the_o administration_n of_o common_a providence_n whether_o under_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n or_o under_o the_o evangelical_n grace_n be_v not_o take_v away_o by_o this_o act_n of_o preterition_n or_o nonelection_n but_o be_v rather_o presuppose_v because_o the_o non_fw-fr elect_v be_v leave_v under_o that_o common_a government_n of_o divine_a providence_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o own_o freewill_n but_o this_o administration_n of_o common_a providence_n always_o have_v conjoin_v with_o it_o that_o communication_n of_o benefit_n external_a and_o internal_a which_o in_o perfect_a of_o innocent_a nature_n be_v indeed_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n as_o it_o be_v manifest_a in_o the_o reprobate_a angel_n and_o in_o all_o mankind_n consider_v in_o our_o first_o parent_n before_o the_o fall_n but_o in_o corrupt_a nature_n so_o much_o remain_v or_o be_v superad_v to_o nature_n under_o the_o gospel_n that_o they_o be_v bereave_v and_o deprive_v of_o all_o pretence_n of_o excuse_n before_o the_o divine_a judgement_n as_o the_o apostle_n testify_v act_v 14.17_o rom._n 1.20_o &_o 2.1_o john_n 15.22_o and_o elsewhere_o thus_o the_o professor_n of_o leyden_n and_o dr._n owen_n in_o his_o discourse_n concern_v the_o holy_a spirit_n page_z 198._o say_v that_o where_o special_a grace_n and_o real_a conversion_n be_v not_o attain_v to_o wit_n by_o mean_n of_o common_a grace_n of_o which_o he_o be_v there_o write_v it_o be_v always_o from_o the_o interposition_n of_o a_o act_n of_o wilfulness_n and_o stubbornness_n in_o those_o enlighten_v and_o convict_v they_o do_v not_o sincere_o improve_v what_o they_o have_v receive_v and_o faint_v not_o mier_o for_o want_v of_o strength_n to_o proceed_v but_o by_o a_o free_a act_n of_o their_o own_o will_n they_o refuse_v the_o grace_n which_o be_v further_o tender_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o gospel_n so_o much_o brief_o in_o answer_n to_o the_o foresay_a objection_n which_o be_v cast_v into_o our_o way_n and_o it_o be_v remove_v we_o go_v on_o with_o our_o author_n who_o in_o pag._n 30._o say_v that_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v a_o new_a word_n but_o of_o a_o old_a and_o ill_a meaning_n very_o well_n here_o be_v a_o pretty_a jingle_n of_o word_n and_o it_o may_v be_v he_o or_o some_o that_o he_o know_v be_v much_o please_v with_o such_o trifle_n and_o if_o so_o here_o they_o be_v fit_v for_o our_o part_n we_o can_v see_v what_o shall_v move_v he_o to_o say_v that_o the_o new_a law_n of_o
grace_n be_v a_o new_a word_n of_o a_o old_a and_o ill_a meaning_n but_o that_o either_o he_o himself_o be_v much_o please_v with_o the_o jingle_n or_o else_o which_o we_o rather_o think_v he_o intend_v to_o please_v some_o of_o his_o consort_n and_o to_o make_v they_o remember_v the_o thing_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o little_a wit_n he_o have_v show_v in_o express_v it_o and_o if_o that_o be_v his_o intend_a end_n it_o be_v pity_n he_o shall_v fail_v of_o obtain_v it_o and_o that_o people_n shall_v not_o remember_v it_o for_o ever_o for_o that_o reason_n which_o will_v for_o ever_o hold_v true_a that_o there_o be_v little_a wit_n in_o it_o but_o you_o will_v say_v how_o do_v that_o appear_v why_o very_o plain_o thus_o there_o be_v little_a wit_n and_o less_o grace_n in_o bold_o assert_v a_o notorious_a falsehood_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n in_o the_o face_n of_o a_o learned_a age._n but_o this_o the_o author_n of_o the_o letter_n have_v do_v in_o assert_v that_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v a_o new_a word_n of_o a_o old_a but_o ill_a meaning_n to_o prove_v this_o it_o be_v matter_n of_o fact_n there_o need_v no_o more_o but_o to_o show_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o credible_a witness_n who_o live_v many_o hundred_o year_n ago_o that_o the_o word_n be_v not_o new_a but_o be_v use_v in_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o a_o good_a sense_n and_o meaning_n long_o before_o we_o be_v bear_v without_o doubt_n we_o may_v bring_v multitude_n of_o witness_n from_o among_o the_o ancient_a writer_n of_o the_o church_n to_o prove_v this_o matter_n of_o fact_n if_o it_o be_v needful_a but_o we_o shall_v content_v ourselves_o with_o a_o few_o whereof_o some_o be_v such_o as_o our_o author_n can_v in_o reason_n except_o against_o because_o he_o himself_o have_v suborn_v they_o to_o bear_v witness_n and_o that_o false_a witness_n too_o for_o he_o against_o we_o we_o have_v show_v already_o that_o the_o apostle_n paul_n express_o call_v it_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n rom._n 3.27_o and_o say_v that_o it_o be_v of_o faith_n that_o it_o may_v be_v by_o grace_n rom._n 4.16_o and_o that_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v both_o together_o in_o one_o place_n that_o it_o be_v the_o law_n of_o grace_n we_o will_v pass_v the_o testimony_n of_o ignatius_n though_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o magnesian_o he_o express_o mention_n the_o law_n of_o christ_n because_o it_o be_v dispute_v that_o his_o epistle_n even_o those_o of_o best_a credit_n have_v be_v much_o interpolate_v and_o corrupt_v and_o our_o cause_n need_v not_o the_o testimony_n of_o suspect_a witness_n therefore_o after_o bless_a paul_n 228._o paris_n edit_n an._n 1636._o p._n 228._o we_o begin_v with_o justin_n the_o martyr_n as_o our_o first_o witness_n that_o bless_a martyr_n in_o his_o dialogue_n with_o trypho_n the_o jew_n write_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n but_o now_o for_o i_o have_v read_v o_o trypho_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o latter_a or_o after-law_n and_o a_o testament_n or_o covenant_n of_o the_o great_a or_o most_o excellent_a authority_n of_o all_o which_o testament_n or_o covenant_n now_o all_o man_n must_v keep_v whosoever_o they_o be_v that_o will_v obtain_v possession_n of_o the_o inheritance_n of_o god_n for_o the_o law_n that_o be_v give_v in_o horeb_n be_v now_o old_a and_o concern_v you_o jew_n only_a but_o this_o after_o law_n concern_v all_o man_n absolute_o and_o universal_o and_o when_o one_o law_n be_v set_v against_o another_o law_n the_o latter_a disannul_v the_o former_a again_o in_o the_o same_o page_n justin_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n by_o the_o work_n or_o gracious_a effect_n and_o the_o power_n which_o follow_v or_o accompany_v it_o all_o may_v understand_v 251._o pag._n 231._o pag._n 251._o that_o this_o be_v the_o new_a law_n afterward_o he_o call_v christ_n the_o new_a law_n giver_n and_o he_o say_v you_o jew_n deceive_v yourselves_o by_o equivocal_a word_n or_o speech_n for_o where_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v say_v to_o be_v faultless_a you_o expound_v it_o not_o of_o that_o law_n which_o be_v to_o come_v after_o but_o of_o the_o law_n give_v by_o moses_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god_n loud_o say_v that_o he_o will_v make_v a_o new_a law_n and_o a_o new_a covenant_n thus_o do_v justin_n assert_v a_o new_a law_n above_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o for_o he_o write_v his_o apology_n for_o the_o christian_n and_o christian_a religion_n to_o antoninus_n p●●_n the_o emperor_n in_o the_o year_n 150_o and_o about_o the_o year_n 163_o he_o seal_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n with_o his_o blood_n our_o next_o witness_n be_v cyprian_a 1617._o operum_fw-la cypriani_fw-la tomo_fw-la 1._o e●ist_o 11_o ma._n edit_n pamel_n anno_fw-la 1617._o who_o also_o seal_v the_o truth_n with_o his_o blood_n about_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o three_o century_n that_o be_v above_o fourteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o this_o holy_a martyr_n in_o his_o 11_o epistle_n to_o the_o martyr_n and_o confessor_n several_a time_n call_v it_o evangelii_n lex_n the_o law_n of_o the_o gospel_n again_o in_o the_o first_o of_o his_o three_o book_n of_o testimony_n against_o the_o jew_n to_o quirinus_n his_o 10_o chapter_n be_v quod_fw-la lex_fw-la nova_fw-la dari_fw-la haberet_fw-la that_o a_o new_a law_n be_v to_o be_v give_v 201.202_o ibid._n tom._n 2._o pag._n 201.202_o which_o he_o prove_v by_o these_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n mic._n 4.2_o isa_n 2.3_o matth._n 17.5_o his_o 11_o chapter_n be_v quod_fw-la dispositio_fw-la alia_fw-la &_o testamentum_fw-la novum_fw-la dari_fw-la haberet_fw-la that_o another_o administration_n and_o a_o new_a testament_n or_o covenant_n be_v to_o be_v give_v which_o he_o prove_v from_o jer._n 31.31_o 32_o 33_o 34._o his_o 13_o chapter_n be_v quod_fw-la jugum_fw-la vetus_fw-la evacuaretur_fw-la &_o jugum_fw-la novum_fw-la daretur_fw-la that_o the_o old_a yoke_n shall_v be_v make_v null_n and_o void_a and_o that_o a_o new_a yoke_n shall_v be_v give_v which_o he_o prove_v from_o psal_n 2.1_o 2_o 3._o matth._n 11.28_o 29_o 30_o etc._n etc._n these_o passage_n cite_v out_o of_o cyprian_n work_n manifest_o show_v that_o as_o he_o express_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o law_n and_o a_o new_a law_n so_o he_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n for_o he_o say_v that_o though_o it_o be_v a_o new_a yoke_n lay_v upon_o we_o yet_o it_o be_v a_o light_a yoke_n and_o a_o easy_a burden_n after_o cyprian_a his_o countryman_n augustin_n that_o famous_a light_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o africa_n shall_v appear_v to_o give_v in_o his_o testimony_n to_o the_o foresay_a matter_n of_o fact_n thus_o than_o he_o write_v in_o the_o 18_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n concern_v grace_n and_o freewill_n haec_fw-la praecepta_fw-la charitatis_fw-la inaniter_fw-la darentur_fw-la hominibus_fw-la 18._o lib._n de_fw-fr grat._n &_o lib._n arbit_n cap._n 18._o non_fw-la habentibus_fw-la liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la sed_fw-la quia_fw-la per_fw-la legem_fw-la dantur_fw-la &_o veterem_fw-la &_o novam_fw-la etc._n etc._n these_o commandment_n of_o love_n say_v augustin_n will_v be_v give_v in_o vain_a to_o man_n if_o they_o have_v not_o free_a will_n but_o because_o they_o be_v give_v both_o by_o the_o old_a and_o new_a law_n although_o the_o grace_n be_v come_v in_o the_o new_a which_o be_v promise_v in_o the_o old_a but_o the_o law_n without_o grace_n be_v a_o kill_a letter_n whereas_o in_o or_o with_o grace_n it_o be_v a_o quicken_a spirit_n whence_o be_v in_o man_n the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n but_o from_o god_n himself_o this_o passage_n out_o of_o augustin_n we_o have_v faithful_o transcribe_v and_o true_o translate_v now_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o augustin_n live_v and_o die_v above_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o he_o say_v express_o that_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n which_o we_o be_v under_o be_v the_o new_a law_n and_o he_o prove_v this_o new_a law_n to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n so_o that_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o new_a word_n of_o a_o old_a but_o ill_a meaning_n that_o it_o be_v a_o considerable_a time_n above_o 1200_o hundred_o year_n ago_o since_o the_o learned_a and_o holy_a augustin_n use_v the_o word_n in_o a_o very_a good_a sense_n and_o meaning_n again_o the_o same_o father_n in_o his_o book_n to_o marcellinus_n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la &_o litera_fw-la cap._n 14._o say_v 14._o de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la &_o lit._n cap._n 14._o the_o letter_n of_o the_o law_n forbid_v sin_n do_v not_o justify_v any_o man_n but_o rather_o kill_v he_o by_o increase_a concupiscence_n and_o accumulate_a iniquity_n through_o prevarication_n nisi_fw-la liberet_fw-la gratia_n per_fw-la legem_fw-la fidei_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la jesus_n
vnle_v grace_n deliver_v he_o or_o set_v he_o free_a by_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n here_o again_o augustin_n say_v that_o we_o be_v free_v from_o death_n by_o a_o law_n that_o that_o law_n be_v the_o law_n of_o faith_n that_o that_o law_n of_o faith_n be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n for_o by_o that_o law_n grace_n free_v we_o from_o death_n and_o he_o likewise_o give_v we_o plain_o to_o understand_v that_o that_o gracious_a law_n be_v a_o new_a law_n for_o he_o say_v it_o be_v the_o law_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n now_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n in_o christ_n already_o exhibit_v in_o the_o flesh_n crucify_v dead_a and_o bury_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a glorify_v and_o appoint_v to_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o and_o judge_n of_o quick_a and_o dead_a make_v perfect_a and_o become_v the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n to_o all_o they_o that_o obey_v he_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o new_a law_n if_o we_o compare_v it_o with_o any_o law_n that_o go_v before_o it_o for_o before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n no_o man_n be_v or_o can_v be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v in_o he_o as_o already_o incarnate_a crucify_a and_o glorify_v otherwise_o man_n have_v be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v a_o falsehood_n in_o the_o same_o five_o century_n salvian_n of_o marseilles_n write_v his_o eight_o book_n of_o the_o government_n of_o god_n where_o he_o call_v the_o gospel_n the_o christian_a law_n 1633._o book_n four_o pag._n 140._o edit_fw-la ox._n 1633._o in_o nobis_fw-la christus_fw-la p●●itur_fw-la opprobrium_fw-la in_fw-la ●nobis_fw-la patitur_fw-la lex_fw-la christiana_n maledictum_fw-la say_v he_o christ_n suffer_v reproach_n by_o reason_n of_o we_o wicked_a christian_n the_o christian_a law_n be_v evil_a speak_v of_o by_o reason_n of_o we_o we_o may_v bring_v other_o of_o the_o father_n for_o witness_n in_o this_o cause_n but_o for_o the_o present_a we_o will_v content_v ourselves_o with_o these_o especial_o the_o first_o three_o justin_n the_o martyr_n cyprian_a end_n augustin_n who_o all_o call_v the_o gospel_n a_o new_a law_n our_o next_o witness_n be_v bradwardin_n who_o though_o he_o be_v none_o of_o the_o father_n yet_o he_o live_v above_o three_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o our_o author_n can_v in_o reason_n except_o against_o he_o because_o he_o say_v in_o the_o 13_o page_z of_o the_o letter_n that_o he_o be_v a_o blessing_n to_o england_n and_o he_o will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o he_o be_v for_o he_o against_o we_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o he_o say_v in_o this_o cause_n deus_fw-la dedit_fw-la hominibus_fw-la talem_fw-la legem_fw-la 29._o de_fw-fr causâ_fw-la dei_fw-la contra_fw-la pelagiam_fw-la cap._n 1._o pag._n 29._o &_o quam_fw-la legem_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la legem_fw-la sanctissimam_fw-la christianam_fw-la god_n give_v unto_o man_n such_o a_o law_n and_o what_o law_n but_o the_o most_o holy_a christian_a law_n again_o he_o thus_o argue_v si_fw-la sola_fw-la lex_fw-la naturae_fw-la sufficeret_fw-la homini_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n alone_o be_v sufficient_a for_o a_o man_n unto_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o 64._o ibid_fw-la p._n 63_o 64._o wherefore_o have_v god_n who_o do_v nothing_o in_o vain_a even_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n give_v another_o law_n yea_o other_o law_n the_o old_a and_o the_o new_a as_o what_o w●●_n say_v before_o do_v testify_v especial_o since_o both_o these_o law_n to_o wit_n old_a and_o new_a of_o moses_n and_o of_o christ_n be_v more_o difficult_a to_o know_v and_o hard_o to_o keep_v than_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n for_o who_o that_o be_v wise_a do_v any_o thing_n by_o more_o mean_n which_o may_v be_v sufficient_o do_v by_o few_o as_o natural_a reason_n and_o all_o philosopher_n unanimous_o testify_v unless_o perhaps_o it_o may_v be_v do_v more_o decent_o or_o neat_o more_o profitable_o and_o better_a by_o many_o mean_n than_o by_o few_o which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a of_o positive_a law_n and_o especial_o of_o the_o christian_a law_n why_o do_v you_o not_o receive_v it_o and_o hold_v it_o here_o bradwardin_n express_o call_v our_o christian_a law_n a_o positive_a new_a law_n as_o distinct_a both_o from_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o moses_n and_o in_o the_o same_o page_n 64._o he_o maintain_v that_o it_o be_v a_o law_n with_o a_o sanction_n of_o the_o great_a reward_n and_o punishment_n imaginable_a sic_fw-la &_o deus_fw-la summus_n oeconomus_fw-la in_o maxima_fw-la domo_fw-la sva_fw-la etc._n etc._n so_o also_o god_n be_v the_o high_a ruler_n in_o his_o most_o great_a house_n the_o high_a prince_n in_o his_o most_o great_a principality_n and_o the_o high_a king_n of_o king_n in_o his_o most_o great_a kingdom_n wherefore_o than_o can_v he_o enact_v or_o ordain_v that_o whosoever_o shall_v keep_v the_o christian_a law_n shall_v receive_v eternal_a glory_n and_o that_o they_o who_o shall_v not_o keep_v but_o contemn_v it_o shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o glory_n and_o shall_v inour_v eternal_a damnation_n sure_o he_o can_v do_v it_o and_o he_o have_v do_v it_o as_o be_v manifest_a by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v before_o by_o this_o passage_n it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n that_o bradwardin_n hold_v that_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o law_n with_o a_o sanction_n of_o reward_n and_o punishment_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o its_o sanction_n of_o punishment_n as_o well_o as_o reward_v he_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n as_o augustin_n do_v before_o he_o and_o as_o manifest_o appear_v from_o the_o main_a scope_n of_o his_o book_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n against_o the_o pelagian_o and_o therefore_o we_o forbear_v to_o quote_v any_o more_o out_o of_o it_o at_o present_a from_o the_o premise_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o above_o 300_o year_n ago_o the_o profound_a doctor_n bradwardin_n express_o affirm_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v a_o positive_a new_a law_n with_o a_o sanction_n of_o reward_n and_o punishment_n and_o the_o scope_n of_o his_o book_n be_v to_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v a_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o by_o all_o this_o we_o think_v the_o world_n may_v now_o see_v that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o letter_n tell_v a_o great_a untruth_n when_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n be_v a_o new_a word_n but_o of_o a_o old_a and_o ill_a meaning_n and_o hence_o also_o people_n may_v learn_v what_o credit_n to_o give_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o that_o man._n from_o father_n and_o ancient_a writer_n we_o will_v come_v low_o down_o and_o see_v what_o some_o of_o our_o modern_a divine_n since_o the_o reformation_n have_v say_v in_o this_o cause_n and_o first_o when_o we_o look_v abroad_o we_o find_v that_o the_o professor_n of_o leyden_n in_o their_o synopsis_n of_o pure_a divinity_n say_v express_o 32._o disp_n 22._o thesi_fw-la 32._o that_o evangelium_fw-la aliquando_fw-la legis_fw-la titulo_fw-la insignitur_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o gospel_n be_v sometime_o call_v a_o law_n because_o it_o also_o have_v its_o own_o commandment_n and_o its_o own_o promise_n and_o threaten_n we_o find_v also_o that_o the_o learned_a gomarus_n not_o only_o allow_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v call_v the_o law_n of_o grace_n but_o likewise_o give_v the_o reason_n why_o it_o be_v so_o call_v in_o these_o word_n beneficii_fw-la ratione_fw-la evangelium_fw-la 30._o gomari_fw-la operum_fw-la par_fw-fr 3._o disp_n 14._o thesi_fw-la 30._o etc._n etc._n with_o respect_n unto_o and_o because_o of_o the_o benefit_n promise_v in_o it_o the_o gospel_n in_o holy_a scripture_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n grace_n acts._n 14.3_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n act_n 20.24_o the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n eph._n 6.15_o isa_n 52.7_o rom._n 10.15_o and_o the_o testament_n or_o covenant_n 2_o cor._n 3.6_o and_o from_o the_o prescription_n 〈◊〉_d evang._n est_fw-la lex_fw-la dei_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o appointment_n of_o the_o condition_n and_o duty_n contain_v in_o it_o it_o be_v call_v the_o law_n of_o faith_n rom._n 3.27_o and_o the_o law_n of_o god_n by_o way_n of_o eminency_n or_o excellency_n isa_n 2.3_o and_o true_o this_o be_v excellent_o say_v by_o gomatus_n no_o man_n we_o think_v can_v give_v a_o better_a account_n why_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v the_o law_n of_o grace_n and_o next_o when_o we_o look_v homeward_o again_o and_o cast_v our_o eye_n upon_o our_o own_o british_a divine_n we_o find_v the_o great_a of_o they_o clear_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law_n in_o the_o sense_n before_o explain_v it_o be_v the_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n we_o will_v instance_n in_o two_o only_a at_o present_a the_o first_o be_v bishop_n andrews_n no_o popish_a bishop_n such_o as_o bradwardin_n be_v who_o our_o author_n quote_v with_o such_o a_o elogium_fw-la against_o we_o
but_o a_o protestant_a bishop_n and_o a_o zealous_a protestant_n who_o hold_v rome_n to_o be_v mystical_a babylon_n and_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n as_o appear_v from_o what_o he_o write_v in_o tortura_fw-la torti_n pag._n 183_o 184_o 185_o 186_o 187._o now_o this_o zealous_a protestant_n in_o his_o 17_o sermon_n of_o the_o nativity_n on_o psal_n 2.7_o write_v thus_o we_o have_v well_o hope_v christ_n will_v have_v preach_v no_o law_n all_o gospel_n he_o 161._o bp._n andrews_n volume_n of_o sermon_n pag._n 161._o that_o he_o will_v have_v preach_v down_o the_o old_a law_n but_o not_o have_v preach_v up_o any_o new_a we_o see_v it_o be_v otherwise_o a_o law_n he_o have_v to_o preach_v and_o preach_v it_o he_o will_v he_o say_v himself_o praedicabo_fw-la legem_fw-la so_o if_o we_o will_v be_v his_o auditor_n he_o tell_v we_o plain_o we_o must_v receive_v a_o law_n from_o his_o mouth_n if_o we_o love_v not_o to_o hear_v of_o a_o law_n we_o must_v go_v to_o some_o other_o church_n for_o in_o christ_n church_n there_o a_o law_n be_v preach_v christ_n begin_v we_o must_v follow_v and_o say_v every_o one_o of_o we_o as_o he_o say_v praedicabo_fw-la legem_fw-la christ_n will_v preach_v a_o law_n and_o they_o that_o be_v not_o for_o the_o law_n be_v not_o for_o christ_n it_o be_v their_o quarrel_n above_o at_o the_o 3d._a verse_n they_o will_v none_o of_o christ_n for_o this_o very_a cause_n that_o christ_n come_v preach_v a_o law_n and_o they_o will_v live_v lawless_a they_o will_v endure_v no_o yoke_n that_o be_v the_o son_n of_o belial_n belial_n that_o be_v no_o yoke_n but_o what_o agreement_n have_v christ_n with_o belial_n 2_o cor._n 6.15_o the_o very_a gospel_n have_v she_o law_n a_o law_n evangelical_n there_o be_v which_o christ_n preach_v and_o as_o he_o do_v we_o to_o do_v the_o like_a look_v but_o into_o the_o grand_a commission_n by_o which_o we_o all_o preach_v which_o christ_n give_v at_o his_o go_v out_o of_o the_o world_n go_v say_v he_o mar._n 28.19_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o all_o nation_n teach_v they_o what_o to_o observe_v the_o thing_n that_o i_o have_v command_v you_o lo_o here_o be_v command_v and_o here_o be_v observe_v 162._o page_n 162._o so_o the_o gospel_n consist_v not_o only_o of_o certain_a article_n to_o be_v believe_v but_o of_o certain_a commandment_n and_o they_o to_o be_v observe_v now_o i_o know_v not_o how_o but_o we_o be_v fall_v clean_o from_o the_o term_n law_n nay_o we_o be_v even_o fall_v out_o with_o it_o nothing_o but_o gospel_n now_o the_o name_n of_o law_n we_o look_v strange_o at_o we_o shun_v it_o in_o our_o common_a talk_n to_o this_o it_o be_v come_v while_o man_n seek_v to_o live_v as_o they_o listen_v preach_v they_o gospel_n as_o much_o as_o you_o will_v but_o hear_v you_o no_o law_n to_o be_v preach_v to_o hold_v or_o keep_v they_o in_o and_o we_o have_v gospel_v it_o so_o long_o that_o the_o christian_a law_n be_v clean_o go_v with_o we_o i_o speak_v it_o to_o this_o end_n to_o have_v the_o one_o term_v retain_v as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o to_o have_v neither_o term_v abolish_v but_o with_o equal_a regard_n both_o keep_v on_o foot_n they_o be_v not_o so_o well_o advise_v that_o seek_v to_o suppress_v either_o name_n if_o the_o name_n once_o be_v lose_v the_o thing_n itself_o will_v not_o long_o stay_v but_o go_v after_o it_o and_o be_v lose_v too_o the_o christian_a religion_n in_o the_o very_o best_a time_n of_o it_o be_v call_v christiana_n lex_n the_o christian_a law_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n like_v the_o term_n well_o and_o take_v it_o upon_o they_o to_o conclude_v gospel_n it_o how_o you_o will_v if_o the_o gospel_n have_v not_o the_o legalia_fw-la of_o it_o acknowledge_v allow_v and_o preserve_v to_o it_o if_o once_o it_o lose_v the_o force_n and_o vigour_n of_o a_o law_n it_o be_v a_o sign_n it_o decline_v it_o grow_v weak_a and_o unprofitable_a and_o that_o be_v a_o sign_n it_o will_v not_o long_o last_v and_o page_n 165._o he_o say_v 1._o there_o be_v the_o benefit_n of_o this_o law_n what_o he_o do_v for_o we_o 2._o and_o than_o what_o we_o be_v to_o do_v for_o he_o our_o duty_n out_o of_o this_o law_n the_o benefit_n be_v the_o gospel_n of_o this_o law_n the_o duty_n be_v the_o law_n of_o this_o gospel_n and_o page_n 166_o they_o speak_v of_o law_n of_o grace_n this_o be_v indeed_o a_o law_n of_o grace_n nay_o it_o be_v the_o law_n of_o grace_n not_o only_o as_o it_o be_v opposite_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n but_o even_o because_o it_o offer_v grace_n the_o great_a grace_n that_o ever_o be_v this_o be_v print_v and_o publish_v in_o the_o year_n 1624._o and_o that_o be_v before_o most_o of_o we_o be_v bear_v and_o yet_o even_o then_o the_o gospel_n be_v express_o call_v the_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n by_o bishop_n andrews_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o new_a word_n which_o we_o have_v late_o invent_v and_o not_o only_a bishop_n andrews_n who_o be_v every_o whit_n as_o expert_a as_o our_o author_n can_v be_v in_o make_v a_o jingle_a noise_n with_o word_n which_o be_v more_o in_o fashion_n then_o than_o it_o be_v now_o but_o the_o famous_a dr._n twiss_n who_o be_v use_v to_o a_o scholastic_a close_a way_n of_o reason_v both_o say_v and_o prove_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o law._n therefore_o he_o shall_v be_v our_o last_o witness_n in_o this_o cause_n now_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o a_o arminian_n book_n call_v the_o synod_n of_o dort_n and_o arles_n reduce_v to_o practice_n he_o plain_o assert_n as_o we_o do_v that_o god_n deal_v with_o man_n not_o mere_o as_o a_o absolute_a sovereign_a arbitrary_a lord_n but_o as_o a_o ruler_n and_o governor_n according_a to_o a_o know_a law_n in_o give_v unto_o they_o or_o withhold_a from_o they_o the_o subsequent_a blessing_n and_o benefit_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n his_o word_n be_v these_o now_o like_a as_o the_o act_n of_o god_n decree_n 42._o pag._n 40.41_o 42._o be_v of_o the_o mere_a pleasure_n of_o god_n no_o temporal_a thing_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o eternal_a decree_n of_o god_n in_o like_a sort_n the_o give_v of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n proceed_v mere_o of_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n according_a to_o that_o god_n have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v rom._n 9.18_o and_o to_o obtain_v mercy_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n be_v to_o obtain_v faith_n rom._n 11.30_o but_o as_o for_o glory_n and_o salvation_n we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o god_n in_o confer_v it_o proceed_v according_a to_o the_o mere_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n but_o according_a to_o a_o law_n which_o be_v this_o whosoever_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v which_o law_n we_o willing_o profess_v he_o make_v according_a to_o the_o mere_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n but_o have_v make_v such_o a_o law_n he_o proceed_v according_a to_o it_o no_o such_o law_n have_v he_o make_v according_a whereunto_o to_o proceed_v in_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o dr._n there_o distinguish_v between_o the_o denial_n of_o special_a grace_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o the_o denial_n of_o glory_n as_o for_o the_o first_o the_o denial_n of_o special_a grace_n to_o some_o when_o god_n give_v it_o to_o other_o the_o doctor_n say_v that_o god_n proceed_v therein_o according_a to_o the_o mere_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n but_o as_o to_o the_o second_o his_o own_o word_n be_v these_o as_o touch_v the_o denial_n of_o glory_n and_o inflict_a damnation_n god_n do_v not_o proceed_v according_a to_o the_o mere_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n but_o according_a to_o a_o law_n which_o be_v this_o whosoever_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v and_o albeit_o god_n make_v that_o law_n according_a to_o the_o mere_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n yet_o no_o wise_a man_n will_v say_v that_o he_o deny_v glory_n and_o inflict_v damnation_n on_o man_n according_a to_o the_o mere_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n the_o case_n be_v clear_a that_o god_n deny_v the_o one_o and_o inflict_v the_o other_o mere_o for_o their_o sin_n who_o be_v thus_o deal_v withal_o and_o in_o the_o next_o page_n like_a as_o god_n inflict_v not_o damnation_n but_o by_o way_n of_o punishment_n so_o he_o do_v not_o bestow_v salvation_n on_o any_o of_o ripe_a year_n but_o by_o way_n of_o reward_n yet_o here_o also_o be_v a_o difference_n for_o damnation_n be_v inflict_v by_o way_n of_o punishment_n for_o the_o evil_a work_n sake_n which_o be_v commit_v but_o salvation_n be_v not_o confer_v by_o way_n of_o reward_n for_o the_o good_a work_n sake_n which_o be_v perform_v but_o mere_o for_o christ_n sake_n thus_o
the_o doctor_n in_o that_o book_n and_o that_o you_o may_v see_v that_o this_o passage_n do_v not_o drop_v inconsiderate_o from_o his_o pen_n we_o will_v show_v from_o another_o book_n which_o he_o write_v afterward_o that_o this_o be_v his_o settle_a judgement_n and_o that_o he_o be_v firm_o and_o full_o persuade_v of_o this_o great_a gospel-truth_n it_o be_v dr._n twiss_n his_o answer_n to_o mr._n hoard_n book_n call_v god_n love_n to_o mankind_n 37.38_o pag._n 37.38_o as_o touch_v the_o confer_v of_o glory_n god_n do_v not_o bestow_v this_o on_o who_o he_o will_v find_v man_n equal_a without_o any_o move_a cause_n thereunto_o even_o in_o man_n for_o though_o there_o be_v no_o move_a cause_n thereunto_o in_o man_n of_o its_o own_o nature_n yet_o there_o be_v to_o be_v find_v a_o move_a cause_n in_o man_n by_o constitution_n divine_a whereby_o god_n be_v as_o it_o be_v move_v to_o bestow_v salvation_n on_o some_o and_o not_o on_o other_o for_o god_n have_v make_v a_o gracious_a promise_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v and_o repent_v and_o continue_v in_o faith_n and_o repentance_n unto_o death_n shall_v be_v save_v and_o whosoever_o believe_v not_o and_o repent_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v so_o then_o though_o man_n be_v equal_a in_o original_a sin_n and_o in_o natural_a corruption_n and_o god_n bestow_v faith_n and_o repentance_n on_o who_o of_o they_o he_o will_v cure_v their_o corruption_n in_o who_o he_o will_v yet_o when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o confer_v of_o glory_n man_n be_v not_o find_v equal_a in_o moral_a condition_n and_o according_o god_n can_v be_v say_v in_o like_a manner_n to_o bestow_v glory_n and_o salvation_n on_o who_o he_o will_n for_o he_o have_v tie_v himself_o by_o his_o own_o constitution_n to_o bestow_v salvation_n on_o none_o but_o such_o as_o die_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n yet_o i_o confess_v some_o say_v that_o god_n bestow_v salvation_n on_o who_o he_o will_v inasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o bestow_v these_o grace_n on_o who_o he_o will_v yet_o certain_o there_o be_v a_o different_a manner_n in_o the_o use_n of_o this_o phrase_n of_o bestow_v this_o or_o that_o on_o who_o he_o will_n for_o when_o god_n bestow_v faith_n and_o repentance_n he_o find_v they_o on_o who_o he_o will_v bestow_v it_o no_o better_a than_o other_o but_o when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o bestow_n of_o glory_n he_o find_v they_o on_o who_o he_o bestow_v that_o far_o better_o than_o other_o and_o a_o little_a after_o albeit_o say_v he_o god_n harden_v who_o he_o will_v by_o deny_v unto_o they_o the_o grace_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n yet_o notwithstanding_o like_a as_o it_o be_v just_a with_o god_n to_o inflict_v damnasion_n upon_o they_o for_o that_o sin_n whether_o original_a or_o actual_a wherein_o he_o find_v they_o when_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v offer_v they_o so_o likewise_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v to_o be_v just_a with_o god_n to_o leave_v their_o infidelity_n and_o impenitence_n wherein_o he_o find_v they_o uncured_a but_o yet_o because_o god_n have_v not_o make_v any_o such_o constitution_n namely_o that_o whosoever_o be_v find_v in_o infidelity_n and_o impenitence_n shall_v be_v so_o leave_v and_o abandon_v by_o he_o therefore_o he_o be_v proper_o say_v as_o to_o cure_v it_o in_o who_o he_o will_v so_o to_o leave_v it_o unour_v in_o who_o he_o will_v find_v they_o all_o equal_a in_o original_a sin_n and_o consequent_o lie_v equal_o in_o this_o their_o natural_a infidelity_n and_o impenitence_n so_o we_o may_v just_o say_v there_o be_v no_o cause_n at_o all_o in_o man_n of_o this_o difference_n to_o wit_n why_o god_n cure_v infidelity_n and_o impenitency_n in_o one_o and_o not_o in_o another_o but_o it_o be_v the_o mere_a pleasure_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o difference_n but_o 2._o as_o touch_v the_o denial_n of_o glory_n and_o inflict_v of_o damnation_n which_o be_v the_o second_o thing_n decree_v in_o reprobation_n there_o be_v always_o find_v a_o cause_n motive_n yea_o and_o meritorious_a hereof_o to_o wit_n both_o of_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o one_o and_o inflict_v of_o the_o other_o and_o god_n do_v not_o proceed_v herein_o according_a to_o the_o mere_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n and_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o own_o constitution_n have_v ordain_v that_o whosoever_o continue_v final_o in_o infidelity_n in_o profane_a course_n and_o impenitency_n shall_v be_v damn_v and_o albeit_o on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o may_v be_v say_v in_o some_o sense_n as_o i_o former_o show_v that_o god_n save_v who_o he_o will_v in_o as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o faith_n which_o he_o bestow_v on_o who_o he_o will_v yet_o in_o no_o congruous_a sense_n can_v he_o be_v say_v to_o damn_v who_o he_o will_v for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n as_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o faith_n for_o every_o good_a thing_n he_o work_v but_o sin_n and_o the_o evil_a thereof_o he_o only_o permit_v not_o cause_v and_o last_o as_o god_n do_v not_o damn_v who_o he_o will_v but_o those_o only_o who_o he_o find_v final_o to_o have_v persevere_v in_o sin_n without_o repentance_n so_o neither_o do_v he_o decree_v to_o damn_v or_o reprobate_a to_o damnation_n who_o he_o will_v but_o only_o those_o who_o shall_v be_v find_v final_o to_o persevere_v in_o sin_n without_o repentance_n again_o in_o the_o same_o book_n pag._n 106._o but_o i_o say_v twiss_n shall_v tell_v you_o the_o chief_a flourish_n whereupon_o this_o author_n and_o usual_o the_o arminian_o do_v insist_v in_o this_o his_o loose_a argumentation_n i_o conceive_v it_o to_o be_v this_o they_o hope_v their_o credulous_a reader_n unexpert_a in_o distinguish_v between_o god_n eternal_a decree_n and_o the_o temporal_a execution_n thereof_o will_v be_v apt_a hereupon_o to_o conceit_n that_o we_o maintain_v that_o god_n do_v not_o only_o of_o mere_a pleasure_n decree_n whatsoever_o he_o decree_v but_o also_o that_o he_o do_v decree_n of_o mere_a pleasure_n to_o damn_v man_n which_o yet_o be_v utter_o contrary_a if_o i_o be_v not_o deceive_v to_o the_o tenet_n of_o all_o our_o divine_n all_o concur_v in_o this_o that_o god_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o damnation_n proceed_v according_a to_o a_o law_n and_o not_o in_o the_o execution_n of_o reprobation_n only_o but_o also_o in_o the_o execution_n of_o election_n and_o the_o law_n be_v this_o whosoever_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v whosoever_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v and_o like_a as_o he_o inflict_v not_o damnation_n but_o by_o way_n of_o punishment_n so_o he_o confer_v not_o salvation_n but_o by_o way_n of_o reward_n again_o pag._n 184._o god_n have_v not_o wish_v but_o ordain_v and_o make_v it_o a_o positive_a law_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v and_o here_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o if_o all_o and_o every_o man_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o end_n shall_v believe_v in_o christ_n all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o pag._n 229._o as_o for_o salvation_n that_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v bestow_v only_o by_o way_n of_o reward_n of_o forego_v faith_n repentance_n and_o good_a work_n and_o a_o little_a after_o in_o the_o same_o page_n indeed_o our_o profession_n be_v that_o god_n purpose_n be_v to_o bestow_v salvation_n by_o way_n of_o reward_n of_o faith_n repentance_n and_o good_a work_n and_o according_o there_o be_v no_o other_o assurance_n of_o election_n than_o by_o faith_n and_o holiness_n ●_o thess_n 1.3_o 4_o remember_v the_o work_n of_o your_o faith_n the_o labour_n of_o your_o love_n and_o the_o patience_n of_o your_o hope_n know_v belove_a brethren_n that_o you_o be_v elect_v of_o god_n and_o st._n peter_n exhort_v christian_n to_o make_v their_o election_n and_o vocation_n sure_a by_o join_v virtue_n with_o their_o faith_n and_o with_o virtue_n knowledge_n and_o with_o knowledge_n temperance_n and_o with_o temperance_n patience_n and_o with_o patience_n godliness_n and_o with_o godliness_n brotherly_a kindness_n and_o with_o brotherly_a kindness_n love_n 2_o p●t_n 1.5_o 6_o 7_o 10._o thus_o dr._n twiss_n speak_v our_o sense_n according_a to_o our_o heart_n desire_v and_o maintain_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v a_o law_n as_o much_o as_o we_o do_v but_o now_o it_o may_v be_v our_o author_n will_v object_v that_o in_o all_o this_o dr._n twiss_n speak_v only_o of_o a_o law_n according_a to_o which_o god_n proceed_v in_o bestow_v or_o not_o bestow_v eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n upon_o man_n but_o not_o of_o a_o law_n according_a to_o which_o he_o justify_v and_o pardon_n man_n we_o answer_v 1._o the_o reason_n of_o that_o be_v because_o the_o doctor_n be_v adversary_n give_v
he_o occasion_n to_o speak_v there_o of_o god_n law_n according_a to_o which_o he_o glorify_v or_o damn_v man_n eternal_o and_o not_o of_o the_o gospel-law_n according_a to_o which_o he_o either_o justify_v or_o not_o justify_v men._n but_o 2._o we_o say_v that_o the_o doctor_n be_v judgement_n be_v the_o same_o as_o to_o both_o to_o wit_n as_o to_o justification_n as_o well_o as_o to_o glorification_n and_o that_o 1._o because_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o foresay_a arminian_n book_n call_v the_o synod_n of_o dort_n and_o arles_n reduce_v to_o practice_n pag._n 16._o these_o be_v his_o express_a word_n we_o say_v that_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o salvation_n of_o soul_n be_v benefit_n purchase_v by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v enjoy_v by_o man_n but_o how_o not_o absolute_o but_o conditional_o to_o wit_n in_o case_n and_o only_o in_o case_n they_o believe_v and_o pag._n 28._o man_n be_v call_v upon_o to_o believe_v and_o promise_v that_o upon_o their_o faith_n they_o shall_v obtain_v the_o grace_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o salvation_n and_o these_o grace_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v offer_v unto_o all_o upon_o condition_n of_o faith_n and_o pag._n 189._o the_o promise_v assure_v by_o baptism_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n i_o find_v to_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n some_o be_v of_o benefit_n procure_v unto_o we_o by_o christ_n which_o be_v to_o be_v confer_v on_o we_o conditional_o they_o of_o this_o first_o sort_n be_v justification_n and_o salvation_n and_o pag._n 190._o justification_n and_o salvation_n be_v promise_v in_o the_o word_n and_o assure_v in_o the_o sacrament_n upon_o performance_n of_o a_o condition_n on_o man_n part_n now_o the_o condition_n of_o justification_n and_o salvation_n we_o all_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v faith_n and_o in_o his_o other_o book_n against_o hoard_n some_o benefit_n say_v the_o doctor_n be_v bestow_v upon_o man_n only_o conditional_o though_o for_o christ_n sake_n and_o they_o be_v the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o soul_n 154._o twiss_n against_o hoard_n p._n 154._o and_o these_o god_n do_v confer_v only_o upon_o the_o condition_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n all_o these_o be_v the_o doctor_n be_v own_o express_a word_n by_o which_o it_o plain_o appear_v that_o his_o judgement_n be_v the_o same_o with_o respect_n both_o to_o justification_n and_o glorification_n and_o that_o he_o hold_v that_o god_n dispense_v to_o we_o both_o these_o benefit_n for_o christ_n sake_n according_a to_o a_o law_n 2._o we_o say_v that_o the_o doctor_n be_v judgement_n be_v the_o same_o as_o to_o both_o because_o there_o be_v the_o like_a reason_n for_o both_o and_o the_o doctor_n be_v own_o argument_n hold_v for_o the_o law_n of_o justification_n as_o strong_o as_o for_o the_o law_n of_o glorification_n since_o god_n have_v as_o much_o constitute_v and_o ordain_v that_o all_o penitent_a believer_n and_o none_o of_o ripe_a year_n but_o penitent_a believer_n shall_v be_v justify_v as_o that_o all_o penitent_a persevere_v believer_n and_o no_o other_o shall_v be_v glorify_v as_o it_o be_v write_v john_n 3.18_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o condemn_v but_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v condemn_v already_o 26.18_o act_n 3.19_o &_o 26.18_o because_o he_o have_v not_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n luke_n 13.3_o 5._o except_o you_o repent_v you_o shall_v all_o likewise_o perish_v act_n 2.38_o repent_v and_o be_v baptise_a every_o one_o of_o you_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n act_n 10.43_o to_o he_o give_v all_o the_o prophet_n witness_n that_o through_o his_o name_n whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n act_n 13.39_o by_o he_o all_o that_o believe_v be_v justify_v etc._n etc._n rom._n 3.25_o god_n have_v set_v he_o forth_o to_o be_v a_o propitation_n through_o faith_n in_o his_o blood_n rom._n 4.24_o it_o shall_v be_v impute_v to_o we_o if_o we_o believe_v these_o testimony_n of_o holy_a writ_n do_v as_o certain_o and_o evident_o show_v that_o god_n proceed_v according_a to_o a_o state_v rule_n and_o stand_a law_n of_o his_o own_o make_n in_o justify_v or_o not_o justify_v man_n as_o any_o other_o testimony_n do_v show_v that_o he_o proceed_v according_a to_o a_o state_v rule_n and_o stand_a law_n in_o glorify_v or_o not_o glorify_v men._n 3._o we_o answer_v that_o our_o wise_a accuser_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 18_o and_o beginning_n of_o the_o 19_o page_n of_o his_o letter_n seem_v plain_o to_o be_v as_o much_o against_o god_n proceed_v according_o to_o a_o law_n in_o glorify_v man_n or_o not_o glorify_v they_o at_o death_n as_o he_o be_v against_o god_n proceed_v according_o to_o a_o law_n in_o justify_v they_o or_o not_o justify_v they_o before_o death_n otherwise_o we_o will_v fain_o know_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o condition_n qualification_n and_o rectoral_a government_n and_o the_o distribution_n of_o reward_n and_o punishment_n according_a to_o the_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n will_v make_v but_o a_o uneasy_a bed_n to_o a_o die_a man_n conscience_n and_o will_v leave_v he_o in_o a_o very_a bad_a condition_n at_o present_a and_o in_o dread_n of_o worse_a when_o he_o be_v feel_v in_o his_o last_o agony_n that_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n if_o he_o can_v by_o faith_n add_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v eternal_a life_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n we_o profess_v we_o can_v see_v what_o our_o author_n shall_v design_v by_o this_o passage_n but_o to_o reflect_v upon_o we_o as_o subverter_n of_o the_o true_a ground_n of_o christian_a comfort_n and_o as_o drive_v people_n to_o despair_v by_o our_o doctrine_n of_o god_n be_v a_o governor_n and_o judge_n who_o distribute_v eternal_a reward_n and_o punishment_n unto_o man_n 11.18_o see_v rev._n 11.18_o who_o live_v in_o the_o visible_a church_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o evangelical_n law_n and_o as_o he_o find_v they_o to_o be_v qualify_v through_o grace_n or_o not_o qualify_v to_o have_v perform_v the_o condition_n or_o not_o to_o have_v perform_v the_o condition_n to_o have_v comply_v with_o the_o term_n of_o the_o evangelical_n law_n or_o not_o to_o have_v comply_v with_o they_o we_o say_v we_o can_v see_v what_o other_o design_n he_o shall_v have_v therein_o but_o thus_o to_o reflect_v upon_o we_o and_o if_o this_o be_v real_o his_o design_n than_o he_o deny_v that_o god_n proceed_v according_a to_o a_o law_n as_o well_o in_o glorify_v or_o not_o glorify_v as_o in_o justify_v or_o not_o justify_v man_n and_o therein_o he_o oppose_v dr._n twiss_n and_o all_o our_o other_o divine_n that_o he_o know_v of_o as_o well_o as_o we_o and_o further_o upon_o that_o principle_n that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o state_v rule_n and_o know_v stand_v law_n according_a to_o which_o god_n have_v assure_v we_o that_o he_o will_v either_o give_v eternal_a life_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n or_o inflict_v eternal_a death_n we_o challenge_v our_o author_n to_o show_v we_o how_o in_o a_o ordinary_a way_n without_o a_o miracle_n the_o die_a disconsolate_a man_n can_v be_v assure_v by_o faith_n that_o god_n for_o christ_n sake_n will_v give_v eternal_a life_n to_o he_o in_o particular_a and_o not_o inflict_v upon_o he_o eternal_a death_n for_o his_o sin_n for_o if_o god_n have_v not_o reveal_v in_o his_o write_v word_n to_o man_n that_o through_o christ_n he_o will_v give_v eternal_a life_n unto_o all_o penitent_a believer_n and_o consequent_o to_o that_o die_a man_n in_o particular_a if_o he_o be_v real_o a_o true_a penitent_a believer_n we_o say_v if_o god_n have_v not_o reveal_v this_o in_o his_o write_v word_n but_o keep_v it_o secret_a within_o himself_o as_o a_o thing_n which_o he_o will_v give_v arbitrary_o as_o he_o please_v without_o regard_n to_o any_o state_v rule_n or_o know_v law_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o the_o poor_a die_a man_n without_o a_o immediate_a extraordinary_a revelation_n to_o know_v but_o that_o eternal_a death_n which_o he_o know_n he_o have_v deserve_v and_o not_o eternal_a life_n which_o he_o can_v possible_o deserve_v shall_v be_v his_o everlasting_a portion_n what_o depend_v upon_o the_o mere_a arbitrary_a will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n can_v never_o be_v know_v by_o man_n unless_o god_n reveal_v it_o either_o by_o his_o write_v word_n alone_o or_o by_o his_o word_n and_o spirit_n conjunct_a or_o by_o his_o spirit_n immediate_o without_o the_o word_n but_o the_o poor_a disconsolate_a man_n can_v have_v no_o hope_n that_o god_n will_v reveal_v it_o to_o he_o by_o his_o write_a word_n alone_o or_o by_o his_o write_a word_n and_o
declare_v to_o the_o world_n what_o our_o faith_n be_v in_o this_o matter_n and_o first_o we_o do_v not_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v any_o antecedent_n condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n our_o meaning_n be_v plain_o this_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o require_v to_o be_v necessary_o perform_v by_o we_o as_o a_o condition_n before_o the_o lord_n will_v make_v we_o partaker_n of_o any_o grace_n even_o of_o the_o first_o grace_n of_o the_o covenant_n for_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o first_o grace_n be_v give_v absolute_o and_o the_o lord_n give_v of_o it_o be_v not_o suspend_v on_o our_o perform_n of_o some_o antecedent_n condition_n by_o our_o mere_a natural_a strength_n this_o indeed_o will_v be_v pelagianism_n or_o rather_o semipelagianism_a condemn_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o we_o condemn_v it_o as_o much_o as_o the_o ancient_n do_v we_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v absolute_a promise_n promise_v of_o regenerate_a grace_n of_o the_o new_a heart_n the_o heart_n of_o flesh_n of_o special_a grace_n through_o which_o the_o elect_n believe_v and_o repent_v this_o be_v the_o grace_n whereby_o we_o perform_v the_o condition_n require_v of_o we_o in_o the_o covenant_n and_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v promise_v and_o give_v antecedent_o to_o our_o perform_v those_o condition_n forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o performance_n of_o those_o condition_n and_o the_o cause_n must_v always_o be_v in_o order_n of_o nature_n and_o causality_n before_o the_o effect_n there_o have_v be_v and_o be_v some_o difference_n of_o opinion_n among_o orthodox_n minister_n about_o the_o person_n or_o person_n to_o who_o god_n have_v make_v those_o absolute_a promise_n some_o think_v they_o be_v make_v only_o to_o christ_n for_o the_o church_n according_a to_o these_o scripture_n isai_n 49.6_o compare_v with_o act_n 13.47_o 48._o and_o isai_n 53.11_o psal_n 22.30_o and_o 110.3_o other_o think_v they_o be_v make_v through_o christ_n only_o to_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o god_n for_o christ_n sake_n will_v show_v special_a mercy_n unto_o his_o select_a people_n in_o all_o age_n and_o add_v they_o to_o the_o church_n mystical_a by_o save_v illumination_n regeneration_n and_o conversion_n and_o so_o that_o god_n through_o christ_n have_v promise_v unto_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o she_o shall_v be_v a_o fruitful_a mother_n that_o shall_v still_o bring_v forth_o child_n unto_o god_n which_o shall_v continue_v the_o succession_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o in_o isa_n 54.1_o sing_v o_o barren_a etc._n etc._n ver_fw-la 5._o for_o thy_o maker_n be_v thy_o husband_n etc._n etc._n see_v also_o ver_fw-la 8_o 10._o and_o then_o consider_v the_o promise_n ver_fw-la 13._o that_o all_o her_o child_n shall_v be_v teach_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o compare_v that_o place_n with_o gal._n 4.26_o 27_o 28_o 29._o we_o humble_o conceive_v that_o the_o absolute_a promise_n of_o the_o first_o save_v grace_n be_v not_o make_v immediate_o to_o individual_a person_n but_o to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o mother_n in_o behalf_n of_o her_o child_n such_o be_v the_o promise_v record_v isa_n 44.3_o 4_o 5._o isa_n 59.21_o ezek._n 36.22_o compare_v with_o ver_fw-la 26_o 27._o and_o with_o heb._n 8.10_o these_o and_o all_o absolute_a promise_n of_o the_o first_o save_v grace_n seem_v not_o to_o be_v make_v immediate_o unto_o nor_o to_o be_v immediate_o pleadable_a in_o faith_n by_o any_o individual_a person_n before_o their_o first_o conversion_n but_o to_o be_v make_v unto_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n as_o the_o text_n express_v it_o that_o be_v unto_o the_o true_a church_n which_o be_v the_o mystical_a live_a body_n of_o christ_n in_o behalf_n of_o all_o the_o child_n which_o she_o as_o a_o spiritual_a mother_n be_v to_o bring_v forth_o unto_o god_n or_o 3_o to_o reconcile_v these_o two_o opinion_n and_o to_o reduce_v they_o into_o one_o it_o may_v be_v some_o judge_n it_o best_o to_o say_v that_o the_o aforesaid_a absolute_a promise_n be_v make_v both_o to_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n as_o one_o mystical_a body_n consist_v of_o head_n and_o member_n which_o be_v to_o be_v fill_v up_o from_o time_n to_o time_n by_o add_v new_a member_n to_o it_o and_o that_o continual_a addition_n of_o new_a member_n be_v make_v by_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o foresay_a absolute_a promise_n and_o for_o this_o may_v be_v allege_v gal._n 3.16_o and_o this_o way_n we_o oppose_v not_o thus_o it_o be_v confess_v that_o there_o be_v some_o difference_n of_o opinion_n about_o the_o person_n to_o who_o the_o absolute_a promise_n of_o the_o first_o save_v grace_n be_v make_v and_o we_o can_v help_v it_o for_o it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o power_n to_o make_v all_o good_a man_n to_o be_v of_o one_o mind_n in_o lesser_a matter_n and_o we_o think_v we_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o bear_v with_o one_o another_o in_o love_n notwithstanding_o such_o little_a difference_n but_o we_o thank_v god_n that_o we_o be_v all_o agree_v that_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o first_o grace_n be_v absolute_a so_o as_o to_o exclude_v the_o necessity_n of_o our_o perform_v any_o antecedent_n condition_n to_o make_v we_o capable_a of_o that_o first_o grace_n and_o we_o desire_v it_o may_v be_v well_o remember_v that_o we_o say_v those_o promise_n be_v absolute_a so_o as_o to_o exclude_v any_o antecedent_n condition_n but_o not_o so_o as_o to_o exclude_v the_o use_n of_o god_n appoint_v mean_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o that_o promise_a grace_n we_o plain_o distinguish_v between_o a_o antecedent_n condition_n which_o be_v always_o and_o in_o all_o case_n necessary_a to_o obtain_v the_o promise_a grace_n and_o the_o use_n of_o god_n mean_n appoint_v for_o the_o obtain_n of_o the_o promise_a grace_n which_o use_n of_o mean_n be_v indeed_o ordinary_o necessary_a unto_o man_n so_o that_o they_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o expect_v that_o ever_o god_n shall_v give_v they_o the_o aforesaid_a grace_n without_o their_o attend_v upon_o he_o in_o the_o use_n of_o those_o mean_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o use_n of_o they_o so_o absolute_o necessary_a as_o that_o grace_n at_o no_o time_n and_o in_o no_o case_n can_v be_v have_v without_o they_o for_o though_o god_n have_v tie_v we_o to_o the_o mean_n he_o have_v not_o tie_v himself_o to_o they_o by_o any_o law_n or_o constitution_n so_o that_o he_o can_v never_o give_v the_o first_o save_v grace_n to_o any_o without_o the_o use_n of_o they_o we_o know_v god_n have_v be_v find_v of_o they_o that_o seek_v he_o not_o so_o he_o be_v find_v of_o paul_n and_o other_o and_o so_o he_o may_v be_v again_o in_o these_o latter_a day_n if_o he_o please_v god_n may_v give_v faith_n and_o repentance_n to_o a_o man_n absolute_o in_o what_o way_n he_o please_v he_o may_v do_v it_o in_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n or_o out_o of_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n which_o be_v his_o ordinary_a way_n because_o he_o have_v not_o make_v the_o use_n of_o mean_n the_o condition_n upon_o the_o performance_n of_o which_o he_o have_v declare_v that_o he_o will_v always_o give_v it_o and_o never_o in_o any_o case_n without_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o thus_o indeed_o it_o be_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n and_o glorification_n it_o be_v not_o consistent_a with_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n and_o perfection_n of_o his_o nature_n to_o justify_v or_o glorify_v a_o impenitent_a unbeliever_n remain_v such_o because_o he_o have_v declare_v that_o he_o will_v not_o and_o it_o be_v not_o consistent_a with_o his_o own_o honour_n that_o he_o shall_v do_v it_o but_o upon_o the_o performance_n of_o the_o duty_n and_o condition_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n but_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o regeneration_n and_o give_v faith_n and_o repentance_n in_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n god_n have_v not_o so_o tie_v up_o himself_o by_o any_o declaration_n of_o his_o will_n that_o we_o know_v of_o but_o that_o he_o have_v leave_v himself_o at_o free_a liberty_n as_o a_o gracious_a lord_n and_o merciful_a benefactor_n to_o give_v the_o grace_n of_o regeneration_n faith_n and_o repentance_n when_o and_o how_o he_o please_v ordinary_o in_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n and_o extraordinary_o without_o the_o antecedent_n use_v of_o mean_n this_o we_o learn_v of_o doctor_n twisse_n who_o as_o he_o affirm_v frequent_o that_o the_o first_o grace_n and_o particular_o the_o new_a heart_n i'faith_o and_o repentance_n be_v promise_v and_o give_v absolute_o and_o not_o upon_o the_o performance_n of_o any_o antecedent_n condition_n so_o he_o positive_o assert_n that_o the_o say_v new_a heart_n i'faith_o and_o repentance_n be_v usual_o give_v in_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n and_o not_o otherwise_o ordinary_o you_o shall_v have_v it_o in_o his_o own_o word_n thus_o than_o he_o write_v in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o
insist_v long_o upon_o this_o that_o all_o may_v see_v how_o sound_a and_o orthodox_n our_o principle_n be_v in_o the_o point_n of_o justification_n and_o how_o we_o have_v be_v abuse_v and_o misrepresent_v to_o the_o people_n by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o letter_n whether_o he_o do_v it_o ignorant_o or_o malicious_o he_o know_v best_o himself_o but_o which_o way_n soever_o he_o do_v it_o it_o be_v certain_o very_o ill_o do_v 5th_o and_o last_o we_o believe_v that_o as_o the_o faith_n of_o god_n elect_n be_v a_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o uncertain_a but_o a_o most_o certain_a condition_n our_o meaning_n be_v that_o before_o the_o elect_n believe_v it_o be_v not_o uncertain_a whether_o ever_o they_o will_v believe_v or_o not_o it_o be_v indeed_o uncertain_a to_o the_o person_n themselves_o but_o it_o be_v not_o objective_o uncertain_a the_o thing_n be_v not_o uncertain_a in_o itself_o nor_o be_v it_o uncertain_a unto_o god_n whether_o ever_o his_o elect_n shall_v believe_v no_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a in_o itself_o and_o unto_o god_n that_o all_o the_o elect_n shall_v believe_v for_o god_n have_v choose_v they_o through_o christ_n unto_o faith_n christ_n have_v merit_v special_a grace_n for_o they_o whereby_o they_o shall_v believe_v god_n through_o christ_n have_v promise_v that_o special_a grace_n and_o god_n by_o his_o spirit_n for_o christ_n sake_n give_v they_o that_o special_a grace_n whereby_o they_o do_v all_o certain_o and_o infallible_o believe_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n to_o this_o be_v by_o our_o divine_n general_o charge_v upon_o the_o arminian_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o arminian_o hold_v that_o it_o be_v so_o far_o leave_v to_o man_n will_n assist_v by_o universal_a sufficient_a grace_n whether_o they_o will_v make_v that_o grace_n effectual_a and_o so_o whether_o they_o will_v believe_v or_o not_o that_o it_o may_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o not_o one_o man_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v ever_o eventual_o believe_v and_o consequent_o that_o christ_n blood_n may_v have_v be_v shed_v in_o vain_a and_o not_o one_o soul_n have_v be_v effectual_o redeem_v and_o save_v by_o it_o this_o opinion_n whoever_o they_o be_v that_o hold_v it_o we_o utter_o detest_v and_o abhor_v and_o declare_v to_o the_o world_n that_o as_o we_o be_v infallible_o sure_a that_o many_o of_o the_o elect_n have_v believe_v already_o and_o do_v at_o present_a believe_v so_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o in_o their_o several_a time_n shall_v by_o the_o special_a and_o effectual_a grace_n of_o god_n believe_v to_o the_o save_n of_o their_o soul_n we_o also_o believe_v that_o this_o certainty_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o god_n elect_n do_v not_o at_o all_o hinder_v their_o faith_n from_o be_v a_o condition_n but_o rather_o that_o it_o make_v it_o to_o be_v a_o certain_a condition_n the_o arminian_o pretend_v they_o can_v understand_v how_o faith_n can_v be_v a_o duty_n require_v of_o we_o and_o a_o condition_n to_o be_v free_o perform_v by_o we_o and_o that_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n we_o be_v so_o excite_v to_o it_o and_o assist_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o the_o do_n of_o it_o that_o it_o be_v do_v with_o a_o infallible_a certainty_n and_o therefore_o they_o say_v that_o if_o we_o do_v believe_v by_o such_o a_o special_a effectual_a grace_n as_o that_o we_o can_v not_o but_o believe_v at_o the_o time_n we_o be_v influence_v by_o that_o grace_n than_o our_o believe_v will_v neither_o be_v a_o duty_n nor_o condition_n of_o the_o gospel_n thus_o the_o arminian_o argue_v against_o special_a effectual_a grace_n but_o what_o say_v our_o antinomian_o to_o this_o argument_n why_o true_o they_o say_v it_o be_v a_o very_a good_a argument_n that_o the_o arminian_o have_v reason_n on_o their_o side_n and_o that_o they_o do_v effectual_o prove_v that_o faith_n can_v be_v a_o condition_n of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n now_o we_o desire_v the_o world_n to_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o antinomian_o join_v with_o the_o arminian_o against_o we_o and_o take_v up_o their_o very_a argument_n to_o prove_v that_o faith_n neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v a_o condition_n of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n and_o since_o they_o account_v this_o their_o chief_a argument_n we_o desire_v they_o will_v be_v so_o just_a and_o honest_a as_o to_o take_v the_o whole_a argument_n and_o not_o only_o a_o part_n of_o it_o and_o consider_v that_o the_o whole_a argument_n prove_v that_o upon_o supposition_n of_o special_a effectual_a grace_n faith_n can_v neither_o be_v a_o duty_n nor_o a_o condition_n and_o it_o prove_v as_o strong_o that_o faith_n can_v be_v a_o duty_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o that_o it_o can_v be_v a_o condition_n of_o the_o gospel_n either_o then_o our_o antinomian_o must_v say_v that_o faith_n be_v no_o duty_n because_o of_o this_o argument_n or_o if_o it_o may_v be_v still_o a_o duty_n so_o may_v it_o also_o be_v still_o a_o condition_n notwithstanding_o the_o force_n of_o this_o argument_n for_o aught_o we_o know_v the_o right_a antinomian_o may_v be_v willing_a enough_o to_o grant_v the_o consequence_n of_o the_o argument_n to_o be_v good_a as_o to_o both_o part_n of_o it_o for_o we_o be_v afraid_a they_o care_v as_o little_a for_o duty_n as_o they_o do_v for_o condition_n and_o some_o of_o they_o have_v plain_o renounce_v faith_n be_v their_o duty_n and_o have_v put_v it_o over_o upon_o christ_n as_o his_o duty_n and_o not_o they_o but_o we_o hope_v the_o author_n of_o thy_o ●etter_n be_v not_o yet_o so_o far_o go_v and_o that_o he_o still_o retain_v some_o respect_n for_o rutherfond_n examen_fw-la arminianismi_fw-la which_o he_o have_v a_o hand_n in_o publish_v and_o where_o he_o will_v find_v these_o word_n follow_v page_z 270._o quaeritur_fw-la a_o fides_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la esse_fw-la conditio_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o question_n be_v whether_o faith_n can_v be_v a_o condition_n require_v of_o the_o elect_a by_o way_n of_o duty_n and_o free_a obedience_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v a_o thing_n promise_v by_o god_n and_o unavoidable_o wrought_v by_o god_n in_o we_o the_o remonstrant_n deny_v it_o we_o affirm_v it_o we_o likewise_o be_v for_o the_o affirmative_a against_o the_o remonstrant_n who_o hold_v the_o negative_a of_o the_o question_n but_o how_o to_o reconcile_v the_o efficacy_n of_o god_n grace_n with_o our_o free_a will_n in_o do_v the_o duty_n incumbent_a upon_o we_o be_v no_o easy_a matter_n s._n augustin_n lib._n de●praedest_v sanct._n cap._n 14._o say_v that_o it_o be_v difficilis_fw-la ad_fw-la solvendum_fw-la quaestio_fw-la a_o question_n difficult_a to_o be_v resolve_v hontem_fw-la erkstra_fw-la blasphemas_fw-la &_o ignorantium_fw-la auribus_fw-la ingeris_fw-la nos_fw-la lib._n arb_n condemnare_fw-la damnetur_fw-la ille_fw-la qui_fw-la damnat_fw-la hieron_n epist_n ad_fw-la ●tisi_fw-la hontem_fw-la and_o epist_n 46._o ad_fw-la valentinum_n he_o say_v it_o be_v difficillima_fw-la quaestio_fw-la &_o paucis_fw-la intelligibilis_fw-la a_o most_o difficult_a question_n and_o such_o as_o few_o can_v understand_v and_o again_o lib._n de_fw-fr gratiâ_fw-la christi_fw-la contra_fw-la pelagium_fw-la &_o caelestium_fw-la cap._n 47._o ista_fw-la quaestio_fw-la ubi_fw-la de_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la &_o dei_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la disputatur_fw-la ita_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la discernendum_fw-la difficilis_fw-la ut_fw-la quando_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o question_n where_o man_n dispute_v about_o free_a will_n and_o god_n grace_n be_v so_o hard_a to_o discern_v or_o understand_v that_o when_o man_n defend_v free_a will_n they_o seem_v to_o deny_v god_n grace_n and_o when_o they_o assert_v god_n grace_n they_o seem_v to_o take_v away_o or_o destroy_v free_a will._n what_o must_v we_o do_v then_o in_o this_o case_n must_v we_o deny_v freewill_n altogether_o no_o not_o altogether_o for_o as_o augustin_n say_v epist_n 47._o ad_fw-la valentinum_n fides_n catholica_fw-la neque_fw-la liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la negate_fw-la sive_fw-la in_o vitam_fw-la malam_fw-la sive_fw-la in_o bonam_fw-la neque_fw-la tantum_fw-la ei_fw-la tribuit_fw-la ut_fw-la sine_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la dei_fw-la valeat_fw-la aliquid_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o catholic_n faith_n neither_o deny_v freewill_n whether_o in_o order_n to_o a_o bad_a life_n or_o a_o good_a neither_o do_v it_o ascribe_v so_o much_o to_o freewill_n as_o that_o without_o god_n grave_n it_o can_v do_v any_o good_a etc._n etc._n we_o must_v not_o then_o altogether_o deny_v freewill_n the_o catholic_n faith_n will_v not_o allow_v we_o so_o to_o do_v nor_o will_v the_o inward_a sense_n and_o experience_n that_o we_o have_v of_o our_o own_o soul_n and_o its_o act_n suffer_v we_o to_o do_v it_o for_o as_o augustin_n say_v lib._n 83._o quaest_n 98._o moveri_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la animam_fw-la sentit_fw-la qui_fw-la sentit_fw-la in_o se_fw-la esse_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la he_o feel_v his_o soul_n to_o be_v move_v by_o itself_o who_o feel_v that_o
he_o have_v a_o will_n in_o himself_o and_o if_o we_o must_v not_o altogether_o deny_v all_o freewill_n against_o faith_n and_o experience_n much_o less_o must_v we_o deny_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o as_o augustin_n say_v in_o the_o foresay_a 46_o epist_n ad_fw-la valent._n si_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la gratia_n dei_fw-la quomodo_fw-la deus_fw-la falvat_fw-la mundum_fw-la &_o si_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la quomodo_fw-la judicat_fw-la mundum_fw-la if_o there_o be_v no_o grace_n of_o god_n how_o do_v god_n save_o the_o world_n and_o if_o there_o be_v no._n freewill_n how_o do_v god_n judge_v the_o world_n the_o occasion_n of_o augustin_n writing_n thus_o be_v observable_a two_o young_a man_n cresconius_n and_o felix_n come_v to_o augustin_n from_o another_o congregation_n and_o tell_v he_o that_o there_o be_v a_o controversy_n among_o they_o in_o the_o manage_n whereof_o some_o have_v so_o preach_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o to_o deny_v that_o man_n have_v any_o freewill_n and_o which_o be_v worse_o they_o say_v that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n god_n will_v not_o render_v unto_o every_o one_o according_a to_o their_o work_n this_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o augustin_n writing_n both_o that_o 46._o and_o the_o follow_v 47._o epistle_n to_o valentinus_n and_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 46._o epistle_n he_o give_v this_o prudent_a and_o wholesome_a advice_n vbi_fw-la sentitis_fw-la vos_fw-la non_fw-la intelligere_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v where_o you_o perceive_v that_o you_o do_v not_o understand_v how_o grace_n and_o freewill_n consist_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n believe_v the_o divine_a oracle_n for_o there_o both_o be_v a_o freewill_n in_o man_n and_o also_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n without_o who_o help_n freewill_n can_v neither_o be_v convert_v unto_o god_n nor_o yet_o grow_v up_o in_o god_n and_o what_o you_o pious_o believe_v pray_v that_o you_o may_v also_o wise_o understand_v this_o be_v the_o advice_n which_o st._n augustin_n give_v unto_o the_o disputer_n of_o his_o time_n and_o it_o be_v very_o good_a advice_n for_o certain_o where_o two_o thing_n be_v both_o clear_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n and_o yet_o we_o find_v it_o very_o difficult_a to_o understand_v and_o explain_v the_o way_n and_o manner_n how_o they_o do_v consist_v and_o agree_v with_o one_o another_o we_o ought_v firm_o to_o believe_v they_o both_o upon_o the_o authority_n and_o veracity_n of_o god_n reveal_v though_o the_o mode_n and_o manner_n of_o their_o consistence_n in_o the_o same_o subject_n we_o do_v not_o understand_v yet_o what_o we_o do_v believe_v we_o may_v and_o aught_o humble_o and_o reverent_o to_o pray_v that_o if_o it_o be_v god_n will_n we_o may_v also_o more_o thorough_o understand_v so_o in_o the_o present_a case_n before_o we_o we_o ought_v firm_o to_o believe_v that_o god_n elect_n when_o they_o be_v effectual_o call_v and_o convert_v have_v freewill_n actual_o to_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o also_o that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o special_a effectual_a grace_n of_o god_n that_o they_o do_v actual_o believe_v though_o we_o do_v not_o thorough_o understand_v how_o these_o two_o hang_v together_o how_o man_n freewill_n and_o god_n effectual_a grace_n consist_v and_o agree_v with_o respect_n to_o the_o act_n of_o believe_v for_o both_o be_v clear_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n as_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o demonstrate_v 8.36_o see_v joh._n 8.36_o but_o the_o mode_n and_o manner_n of_o their_o consistence_n and_o agreement_n be_v not_o clear_o reveal_v and_o therefore_o not_o so_o necessary_a to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v yet_o may_v we_o humble_o pray_v and_o endeavour_n if_o the_o lord_n will_v so_o far_o to_o understand_v their_o consistence_n and_o concord_n as_o to_o be_v able_a in_o some_o measure_n to_o answer_v the_o objection_n of_o those_o who_o deny_v either_o one_o or_o other_o of_o they_o upon_o pretence_n that_o they_o can_v both_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n because_o they_o contradict_v and_o destroy_v each_o other_o and_o so_o if_o one_o be_v true_a the_o other_o must_v be_v false_a now_o we_o humble_o conceive_v that_o the_o great_a difficulty_n about_o the_o concord_n of_o the_o freedom_n of_o man_n will_n and_o of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o the_o act_n of_o believe_v arise_v from_o the_o false_a notion_n of_o freewill_n which_o the_o remonstrant_n have_v learn_v from_o the_o schoolman_n and_o from_o some_o of_o the_o greek_a father_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o formal_a nature_n and_o essence_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o will_n of_o man_n consist_v in_o a_o absolute_a indifferency_n to_o act_v this_o or_o that_o or_o not_o to_o act_v at_o all_o as_o a_o man_n please_v and_o that_o even_o when_o all_o thing_n be_v put_v together_o which_o be_v pre-required_n to_o his_o act_n we_o must_v ingenuous_o confess_v that_o we_o do_v not_o see_v how_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o reconcile_v this_o notion_n of_o freewill_n with_o the_o powerful_a efficacy_n of_o special_a grace_n but_o we_o take_v this_o to_o be_v a_o false_a notion_n of_o liberty_n and_o that_o therefore_o we_o be_v no_o way_n concern_v to_o trouble_v ourselves_o about_o the_o reconcile_n of_o such_o a_o false_a notion_n of_o liberty_n with_o the_o efficacy_n of_o god_n grace_n but_o rather_o we_o be_v concern_v to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a notion_n of_o liberty_n of_o will_n and_o to_o show_v its_o consistency_n with_o the_o efficacy_n of_o grace_n and_o we_o take_v this_o to_o be_v the_o formal_a nature_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o man_n will_n that_o it_o be_v a_o power_n with_o which_o god_n have_v endue_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n whereby_o he_o be_v enable_v to_o consider_v of_o and_o weigh_v the_o several_a thing_n propose_v to_o he_o and_o upon_o the_o reason_n and_o motive_n that_o do_v or_o may_v appear_v to_o he_o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o thing_n willing_o to_o choose_v or_o not_o choose_v or_o refuse_v one_o thing_n and_o to_o choose_v or_o embrace_v another_o now_o this_o notion_n of_o freewill_n be_v well_o enough_o consistent_a with_o the_o efficacy_n of_o grace_n for_o the_o effectual_a grace_n of_o god_n be_v so_o far_o from_o hinder_v a_o man_n from_o use_v this_o sort_n of_o freewill_n that_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o mighty_o help_v he_o to_o use_v it_o aright_o for_o 1._o the_o grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n enlighten_v man_n mind_n and_o enable_v he_o to_o understand_v the_o thing_n propose_v by_o the_o word_n unto_o his_o choice_n and_o to_o see_v the_o great_a reason_n he_o have_v to_o choose_v they_o 2._o grace_n incline_v the_o will_n of_o man_n to_o follow_v the_o conduct_n of_o his_o enlighten_v understanding_n and_o willing_o to_o choose_v the_o best_a thing_n upon_o the_o best_a reason_n and_o motive_n thus_o god_n deal_v with_o man_n as_o a_o rational_a creature_n capable_a of_o moral_a government_n by_o law_n and_o exhortation_n promise_n and_o threaten_n god_n offer_v no_o violence_n to_o his_o faculty_n but_o influence_n he_o in_o a_o way_n suitable_a to_o his_o reasonable_a nature_n and_o help_v he_o to_o bring_v his_o judge_n and_o choose_v power_n into_o act_n so_o as_o not_o at_o all_o to_o hinder_v but_o rather_o further_o and_o promote_v his_o true_a liberty_n according_a to_o that_o of_o our_o saviour_n john_n 8.36_o often_o use_v by_o holy_a augustin_n in_o this_o controversy_n if_o the_o son_n shall_v make_v you_o free_a you_o shall_v be_v free_a indeed_o and_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 3.17_o where_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v there_o be_v liberty_n there_o be_v liberty_n and_o freedom_n both_o from_o the_o do_n of_o evil_a and_o to_o the_o do_v of_o good_n this_o be_v visible_a in_o our_o bless_a lord_n himself_o when_o he_o be_v here_o upon_o earth_n in_o his_o state_n of_o humiliation_n undoubted_o he_o be_v a_o true_a man_n and_o have_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o humane_a nature_n in_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o possible_a perfection_n consequent_o he_o have_v freewill_n so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v a_o essential_a property_n and_o perfection_n of_o humane_a nature_n but_o he_o have_v not_o nay_o he_o can_v not_o possible_o have_v any_o indifferency_n or_o undeterminedness_n of_o will_n to_o good_a or_o evil_a his_o mind_n do_v not_o hang_v in_o aequilibrio_fw-la in_o a_o even_a balance_n between_o good_a and_o evil_a so_o as_o to_o have_v a_o power_n to_o determine_v and_o incline_v himself_o to_o choose_v either_o therefore_o it_o be_v demonstrative_o evident_a that_o the_o formal_a essential_a nature_n of_o man_n freewill_n do_v not_o can_v consist_v in_o the_o foresay_a indifferency_n to_o good_a or_o evil._n but_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n the_o most_o noble_a soul_n of_o our_o bless_a lord_n be_v certain_o endue_v with_o power_n to_o consider_v and_o judge_v of_o the_o several_a thing_n propose_v
thing_n mean_v by_o condition_n as_o real_o as_o if_o it_o be_v express_v for_o say_v the_o apostle_n if_o thou_o shall_v confess_v with_o thy_o mouth_n the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o shall_v believe_v in_o thy_o h●●rt_n that_o god_n have_v raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a thou_o shall_v be_v save_v this_o evangelical_n pronsise_n and_o proposition_n be_v as_o conditional_a as_o be_v that_o legal_a one_o rom._n 10.5_o the_o man_n that_o do_v those_o thing_n shall_v live_v by_o they_o but_o that_o legal_a promise_n and_o proposition_n be_v conditional_a and_o confess_v so_o to_o be_v therefore_o be_v this_o conditional_a also_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o condition_n be_v not_o the_o same_o nor_o do_v it_o serve_v to_o the_o same_o end_n and_o purpose_n we_o grant_v that_o for_o we_o never_o say_v nor_o thought_n that_o the_o condition_n be_v the_o same_o and_o for_o the_o same_o end_n and_o purpose_n for_o the_o one_o be_v a_o legal_a condition_n the_o other_o be_v evangelical_n and_o so_o they_o differ_v specisical_o and_o in_o kind_n but_o what_o then_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o both_o condition_n we_o deny_v the_o consequence_n for_o though_o they_o differ_v in_o the_o specisical_a yet_o they_o agree_v in_o the_o generical_a nature_n of_o condition_n and_o faith_n be_v as_o proper_o a_o condition_n in_o genere_fw-la conditionis_fw-la evangelicae_fw-la as_o personal_a perfect_a sinless_a obedience_n be_v a_o condition_n in_o genere_fw-la conditionis_fw-la legalis_fw-la that_o be_v faith_n be_v as_o proper_o a_o evangelical_n condition_n as_o perfect_a sinless_a obedience_n be_v proper_o a_o legal_a condition_n we_o remember_v that_o the_o pelagian_o of_o old_a object_v against_o the_o orthodox_n that_o either_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o special_a grace_n of_o god_n or_o else_o it_o can_v be_v a_o duty_n and_o so_o it_o can_v be_v a_o condition_n but_o we_o know_v also_o how_o st._n augustin_n answer_v their_o objection_n lib._n the_o praedestin_a sanct._n cap._n 11._o their_o objection_n be_v this_o cum_fw-la dicitur_fw-la si_fw-la credideris_fw-la salvus_fw-la eris_fw-la etc._n etc._n when_o it_o be_v say_v if_o thou_o believe_v thou_o shall_v be_v save_v the_o one_o of_o these_o to_o wit_n faith_n be_v require_v of_o we_o by_o a_o command_n the_o other_o to_o wit_n salvation_n be_v offer_v we_o by_o promise_n then_o that_o which_o be_v require_v be_v in_o man_n power_n as_o that_o which_o be_v promise_v be_v in_o god_n power_n to_o this_o pelagian_a objection_n augustin_n answer_v thus_o sic_fw-la dicitur_fw-la si_fw-la credideris_fw-la salvus_fw-la eris_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la dicitur_fw-la si_fw-la spiritu_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v so_o it_o be_v say_v if_o thou_o believe_v thou_o shall_v be_v save_v as_o it_o be_v say_v if_o you_o through_o the_o spirit_n do_v mortify_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o body_n you_o shall_v live_v rom._n 8.13_o for_o here_o also_o the_o one_o of_o these_o two_o be_v require_v and_o the_o other_o be_v promise_v as_o than_o although_o it_o be_v the_o gist_n of_o god_n to_o mortify_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o flesh_n yet_o it_o be_v require_v of_o we_o with_o a_o offer_n of_o the_o reward_n of_o life_n for_o our_o encour_n agement_n thereunto_o just_o so_o faith_n be_v also_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n although_o it_o be_v require_v of_o we_o with_o a_o offer_n of_o the_o reward_n of_o salvation_n for_o our_o encouragement_n to_o believe_v when_o it_o be_v say_v if_o thou_o believe_v thou_o shall_v be_v save_v for_o those_o thing_n be_v therefore_o both_o command_v we_o and_o also_o show_v to_o be_v the_o gist_n of_o god_n that_o it_o may_v be_v know_v that_o both_o we_o do_v they_o and_o also_o that_o god_n cause_v we_o to_o do_v they_o thus_o augustin_n we_o find_v the_o like_a objection_n with_o the_o like_a answer_n to_o it_o in_o bradwardin_n de_fw-fr causâ_fw-la dei_fw-la lib._n 2._o cap._n 28._o p._n 567_o 569._o the_o objection_n si_fw-mi deus_fw-la necessario_fw-la requiratur_fw-la ad_fw-la agendum_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o god_n concur_v to_o the_o proper_a production_n of_o every_o act_n of_o the_o creature_n will_v since_o god_n concur_v or_o act_v be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o creature_n than_o no_o act_n of_o the_o creature_n will_v be_v in_o its_o own_o power_n the_o answer_n be_v in_o rerum_fw-la temporalium_fw-la &_o spiritualium_fw-la administratione_fw-la videmus_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o the_o administration_n both_o of_o temporal_a and_o spiritual_a thing_n we_o see_v that_o there_o be_v more_o power_n and_o dominion_n over_o the_o same_o thing_n subordinate_a to_o one_o another_o as_o inferior_a and_o superior_a wherefore_o not_o man_n ought_v to_o doubt_v but_o that_o though_o the_o will_n of_o the_o creature_n have_v power_n and_o dominion_n over_o its_o own_o act_n yet_o thereby_o be_v not_o exclude_v a_o superior_a power_n and_o lord_n to_o wit_n god_n himself_o from_o a_o superior_a power_n dominion_n and_o efficiency_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o same_o act._n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o say_v out_o of_o thomas_n aquinas_n the_o will_n be_v say_v to_o have_v dominion_n over_o its_o own_o act_n not_o by_o exclude_v the_o first_o cause_n but_o the_o first_o cause_n do_v not_o so_o act_v on_o the_o will_n as_o to_o determine_v it_o necessary_o to_o one_o thing_n as_o he_o determine_v nature_n or_o natural_a agent_n and_o therefore_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o act_n be_v lest_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o understanding_n and_o will._n we_o mention_v both_o these_o objection_n with_o answer_n to_o they_o out_o of_o st._n augustin_n and_o bradwardin_n to_o show_v that_o though_o we_o can_v believe_v without_o but_o do_v believe_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n yet_o that_o no_o way_n hinder_v our_o faith_n from_o be_v a_o duty_n require_v of_o we_o and_o also_o a_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n to_o be_v perform_v by_o we_o and_o we_o know_v our_o author_n can_v bring_v any_o appearance_n of_o a_o argument_n against_o this_o but_o that_o which_o be_v bring_v by_o the_o pelagian_o in_o the_o time_n of_o st._n augustin_n and_o which_o he_o answer_v as_o for_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n we_o be_v argue_v from_o we_o have_v calvin_n on_o our_o side_n acknowledge_v that_o it_o contain_v a_o conditional_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n a_o promise_n of_o righteousness_n and_o salvation_n to_o all_o that_o sincere_o believe_v in_o christ_n with_o their_o heart_n and_o confess_v he_o with_o their_o mouth_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v instit_fw-la lib._n 2._o cap._n 5._o sect._n 12._o speak_v of_o this_o very_a place_n of_o scripture_n to_o wit_n rom._n 10.5_o 8_o 9_o id_fw-la reputans_fw-la paulus_n etc._n etc._n i._n e._n paul_n consider_v this_o that_o salvation_n be_v offer_v in_o the_o gospel_n not_o upon_o that_o hard_a difficult_a impossible_a condition_n which_o the_o law_n require_v of_o we_o to_o wit_n that_o they_o only_o shall_v obtain_v salvation_n who_o have_v full_o keep_v all_o the_o commandment_n but_o upon_o a_o condition_n that_o be_v easy_a ready_a and_o soon_o attain_v unto_o to_o wit_n the_o condition_n of_o faith_n he_o confirm_v it_o with_o this_o testimony_n to_o wit_v the_o testimony_n of_o moses_n which_o paul_n quote_v out_o of_o deuteronomy_n chap._n 30._o ver_fw-la 11_o 12_o 13_o 14._o and_o interpret_v it_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o gospel_n let_v any_o read_v and_o compare_v rom._n 10.6_o 7_o 8._o with_o deut._n 30.11_o 12_o 13_o 14._o and_o they_o will_v see_v that_o calvin_n do_v right_o conclude_v from_o those_o place_n that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o st._n paul_n salvation_n be_v promise_v we_o here_o in_o the_o gospel_n upon_o a_o much_o easy_a condition_n than_o it_o be_v in_o and_o by_o the_o law_n this_o conditionality_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v clear_o prove_v also_o by_o all_o those_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o assure_v we_o 1._o that_o all_o who_o believe_v shall_v be_v justify_v and_o save_v john_n 3.16_o 18_o 36._o john_n 6.40_o john_n 20.31_o mark_v 16.16_o act_n 10.43_o and_o 13.39_o rom._n 4.24_o gal._n 2.16_o and_o 3.9_o 11._o 2._o that_o they_o who_o believe_v not_o whilst_o they_o continue_v in_o unbelief_n shall_v not_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v john_n 3.18.36_o and_o 8.24_o mark_v 16.16_o revel_v 21.8_o these_o scripture_n plain_o show_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n because_o the_o definition_n and_o nature_n of_o a_o condition_n agree_v to_o it_o for_o 1._o faith_n be_v a_o duty_n which_o god_n require_v of_o we_o for_o obtain_v the_o promise_a benefit_n of_o justification_n and_o salvation_n 1_o john_n 3.23_o rom._n 10.9_o 2._o god_n have_v suspend_v his_o give_v we_o the_o promise_a benefit_n of_o justification_n and_o salvation_n upon_o our_o perform_v the_o require_a duty_n of_o
truth_n that_o repentance_n be_v before_o justification_n at_o least_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n they_o object_n further_o if_o repentance_n be_v before_o justification_n than_o it_o be_v either_o before_o or_o after_o faith_n but_o it_o can_v be_v before_o faith_n for_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o a_o man_n shall_v sincere_o repent_v before_o he_o believe_v nor_o can_v it_o be_v after_o faith_n if_o it_o be_v before_o justification_n for_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n and_o that_o assoon_o as_o he_o believe_v we_o answer_v that_o man_n need_v not_o to_o be_v delude_v by_o such_o a_o silly_a sophism_n if_o they_o will_v distinguish_v 1._o between_o the_o abide_a seed_n and_o principle_n and_o the_o transient_a act_n of_o faith_n 2._o between_o the_o assent_v act_n of_o faith_n and_o it_o be_v fiducial_o consent_v act_n for_o though_o faith_n in_o the_o principle_n of_o it_o be_v but_o one_o single_a grace_n yet_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o it_o have_v several_a act_n successive_o follow_v one_o another_o and_o yet_o not_o so_o close_o neither_o but_o that_o the_o act_n of_o repentance_n may_v come_v between_o they_o now_o to_o apply_v these_o distinction_n we_o say_v that_o from_o repentance_n be_v before_o justification_n it_o do_v by_o no_o mean_n follow_v that_o it_o be_v altogether_o and_o in_o all_o respect_n before_o faith_n for_o 1._o the_o seed_n and_o principle_n of_o faith_n be_v before_o the_o act_n of_o repentance_n 2._o the_o assent_v act_n of_o faith_n be_v also_o before_o the_o act_n of_o repentance_n and_o thus_o from_o a_o principle_n of_o faith_n and_o by_o the_o help_n of_o a_o act_n of_o faith_n the_o soul_n sincere_o repent_v in_o order_n to_o justification_n and_o pardon_n of_o sin_n then_o after_o the_o say_a act_n of_o repentance_n there_o come_v another_o act_n of_o faith_n to_o wit_v the_o act_n of_o fiducial_a consent_n to_o receive_v christ_n as_o he_o be_v offer_v in_o the_o gospel_n whereupon_o the_o penitent_a believe_a soul_n be_v immediate_o justify_v and_o pardon_v this_o we_o learn_v of_o calvin_n who_o in_o his_o institution_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 3._o sect._n 19_o write_v thus_o sic_fw-la &_o christus_fw-la svas_fw-la conciones_fw-la auspicatus_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n so_o also_o christ_n begin_v his_o sermon_n mark_v 1.15_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v at_o hand_n repent_v you_o and_o believe_v the_o gospel_n first_o he_o declare_v that_o the_o treasure_n of_o god_n mercy_n be_v open_v in_o he_o then_o 2._o he_o require_v repentance_n and_o 3._o and_o last_o he_o require_v a_o trust_n or_o reliance_n on_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n here_o we_o have_v the_o lord_n order_n of_o thing_n judicious_o set_v forth_o 1._o he_o declare_v that_o the_o treasure_n of_o god_n mercy_n be_v open_v in_o he_o this_o declaration_n of_o god_n infinite_a mercy_n in_o christ_n hold_v forth_o to_o lose_v sinner_n of_o mankind_n be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o faith_n of_o assent_n and_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o assent_v to_o it_o as_o a_o infallible_a truth_n and_o to_o be_v firm_o persuade_v of_o it_o 2._o he_o require_v our_o repentance_n he_o require_v that_o assent_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o be_v firm_o persuade_v that_o god_n be_v upon_o term_n of_o mercy_n with_o we_o through_o he_o we_o shall_v repent_v and_o be_v hearty_o sorry_a that_o by_o our_o sin_n we_o have_v offend_v so_o merciful_a a_o god_n and_o resolve_v in_o god_n strength_n to_o do_v so_o no_o more_o 3._o and_o last_o that_o suppose_v we_o so_o repent_v from_o a_o principle_n of_o faith_n assent_v to_o the_o revelation_n of_o god_n great_a mercy_n in_o christ_n to_o lose_v sinner_n indefinite_o he_o require_v that_o we_o trust_v and_o rely_v on_o god_n promise_n and_o on_o christ_n as_o hold_v forth_o to_o we_o in_o the_o promise_n that_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n he_o will_v for_o christ_n sake_n be_v merciful_a to_o we_o in_o pardon_v we_o all_o our_o sin_n when_o we_o be_v through_o grace_n arrive_v at_o this_o act_n of_o faith_n whereby_o we_o trust_v and_o rely_v on_o god_n promise_n and_o on_o christ_n as_o hold_v forth_o to_o we_o in_o the_o promise_n than_o we_o be_v instant_o pardon_v accept_v as_o righteous_a and_o get_v a_o right_n to_o life_n for_o the_o alone_a satisfactory_a meritorious_a righteousness_n of_o our_o lord_n redeemer_n but_o we_o can_v never_o attain_v to_o this_o act_n of_o faith_n and_o thereby_o to_o pardon_v of_o sin_n for_o christ_n sake_n if_o we_o do_v not_o first_o believe_v with_o the_o faith_n of_o assent_n that_o god_n through_o christ_n be_v upon_o term_n of_o mercy_n and_o peace_n with_o we_o that_o be_v the_o first_o act_n of_o faith_n and_o when_o it_o be_v of_o the_o right_a kind_n and_o proceed_v from_o the_o right_a principle_n the_o supernatural_a seed_n of_o faith_n put_v into_o the_o heart_n it_o be_v through_o the_o influence_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o mighty_a force_n and_o efficacy_n 1._o to_o make_v we_o repent_v to_o make_v we_o through_o grace_n hearty_o sorry_a for_o have_v displease_v and_o dishonour_v so_o good_a and_o merciful_a a_o god_n by_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o make_v we_o resolve_v through_o grace_n to_o do_v so_o no_o more_o 2._o it_o be_v of_o as_o great_a force_n and_o efficacy_n to_o make_v we_o trust_v and_o rely_v on_o god_n promise_n and_o on_o christ_n reveal_v in_o the_o promise_n that_o god_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n will_v for_o christ_n sake_n justify_v and_o pardon_v we_o thus_o we_o have_v answer_v that_o frivolous_a objection_n and_o clear_o show_v how_o true_a repentance_n be_v in_o order_n before_o justification_n and_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o yet_o not_o altogether_o and_o in_o all_o respect_n before_o faith_n but_o partly_o after_o and_o partly_o before_o faith_n after_o the_o principle_n and_o assent_v act_n of_o faith_n but_o before_o the_o fiducial_o consent_v and_o trust_v act_n of_o faith_n and_o what_o though_o no_o man_n can_v give_v a_o clear_a account_n of_o the_o exact_a order_n observe_v by_o our_o soul_n in_o the_o act_n of_o their_o several_a grace_n yet_o that_o shall_v hinder_v no_o christian_a from_o believe_v that_o true_a repentance_n be_v in_o order_n before_o pardon_n of_o sin_n because_o god_n who_o can_v he_o have_v plain_o tell_v we_o in_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n that_o it_o be_v in_o order_n before_o pardon_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v if_o then_o we_o have_v any_o faith_n in_o god_n and_o his_o word_n we_o shall_v say_v let_v god_n be_v true_a who_o ever_o prove_v a_o lyar._n certain_o it_o be_v very_o unreasonable_a foolish_a and_o dangerous_a too_o to_o deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o that_o which_o be_v clear_a because_o we_o can_v thorough_o understand_v that_o which_o be_v obscure_a to_o wit_n the_o precise_a order_n of_o the_o soul_n act_v its_o grace_n this_o may_v suffice_v at_o present_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o gospel-promise_n of_o justification_n and_o pardon_n of_o sin_n be_v conditional_a and_o that_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o it_o 2._o in_o the_o second_o and_o last_o place_n we_o shall_v brief_o prove_v by_o scripture_n that_o the_o gospel-promise_n of_o glorification_n and_o eternal_a salvation_n be_v conditional_a and_o that_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o it_o for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o our_o meaning_n in_o this_o matter_n we_o premise_v a_o few_o thing_n as_o 1._o that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v upon_o supposition_n that_o a_o man_n live_v some_o considerable_a time_n after_o that_o he_o be_v effectual_o call_v and_o justify_v and_o pardon_v upon_o his_o first_o believe_v and_o repent_v and_o that_o he_o have_v space_n and_o opportunity_n to_o perform_v his_o covenant_n engagement_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n meet_v for_o repentance_n if_o the_o man_n die_v present_o after_o his_o justification_n and_o pardon_n there_o be_v no_o more_o require_v on_o his_o part_n the_o spirit_n perfect_v his_o begin_a sanctification_n and_o god_n through_o christ_n consummate_v his_o salvation_n without_o require_v any_o more_o of_o he_o than_o what_o he_o be_v enable_v to_o do_v as_o he_o be_v a_o die_a but_o if_o god_n give_v he_o time_n and_o opportunity_n and_o he_o live_v it_o be_v require_v that_o proportionable_o to_o his_o talent_n and_o time_n he_o serve_v the_o lord_n in_o faith_n and_o holy_a obedience_n that_o he_o renew_v his_o faith_n and_o repentance_n for_o pardon_n as_o often_o as_o he_o find_v that_o he_o have_v fall_v into_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o return_v to_o his_o duty_n again_o serve_v the_o lord_n all_o his_o day_n in_o faith_n hope_n love_n fear_v patience_n meekness_n humility_n and_o heavenly-mindedness_a etc._n etc._n 2._o the_o obedience_n that_o be_v require_v as_o aforesaid_a must_v
a_o certain_a order_n and_o also_o that_o he_o do_v orderly_o dispense_v they_o unto_o his_o people_n according_a to_o his_o promise●_n but_o we_o utter_o deny_v that_o god_n order_n of_o grace_n do_v hinder_v one_o thing_n in_o that_o order_n from_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o another_o and_o on_o the_o contrary_n we_o affirm_v that_o it_o rather_o make_v one_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o another_o and_o that_o for_o this_o renson_n because_o the_o order_n of_o grace_n which_o the_o brethren_n speak_v of_o either_o 1_o it_o be_v a_o order_n in_o the_o promise_n of_o justification_n and_o pardon_n of_o which_o alone_o our_o question_n now_o be_v to_o wit_n in_o the_o promise_n if_o you_o sinceroly_a believe_v with_o a_o faith_n work_v by_o love_n you_o shall_v be_v justify_v and_o pardon_v through_o christ_n or_o 2._o it_o be_v a_o order_n out_o of_o the_o promise_n but_o in_o god_n will_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o promise_n if_o the_o first_o that_o be_v if_o it_o be_v a_o order_n of_o grac●_n in_o the_o promise_n than_o it_o be_v plain_o a_o conditional_a order_n of_o grace_n for_o the_o promise_n be_v conditional_a as_o we_o have_v prove_v and_o the_o gracious_a order_n of_o it_o be_v this_o that_o whoever_o perform_v the_o condition_n of_o it_o that_o be_v believe_v sincere_o with_o a_o faith_n work_v by_o love_n shall_v have_v the_o blessing_n and_o benefit_n of_o it_o shall_v be_v justify_v and_o pardon_v thus_o the_o order_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o conditional_a promise_n be_v plain_o a_o conditional_a order_n we_o be_v but_o just_a where_o we_o be_v for_o the_o order_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o promise_n be_v but_o conditional_a it_o do_v not_o help_v we_o one_o jot_n to_o avoid_v the_o conditionality_n of_o the_o promise_n and_o covenant_n 2._o but_o if_o they_o choose_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o second_o to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v a_o order_n of_o grace_n out_o of_o the_o promise_n but_o in_o god_n will_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o promise_n and_o so_o it_o be_v a_o absolute_a order_n of_o god_n will_n that_o if_o people_n sincere_o believe_v they_o shall_v be_v justify_v and_o pardon_v we_o hearty_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v so_o there_o be_v such_o a_o gracious_a order_n or_o ordination_n in_o and_o of_o god_n will_n and_o it_o be_v plain_o reveal_v also_o in_o his_o write_a gospel_n but_o what_o then_o this_o real_o make_v against_o our_o brethren_n and_o for_o we_o and_o that_o because_o this_o absolute_a order_n of_o grace_n in_o god_n will_n concern_v the_o promise_n be_v so_o far_o from_o overthrow_v that_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o most_o strong_o establish_v and_o confirm_v the_o conditionality_n of_o the_o promise_n for_o be_v not_o this_o a_o good_a strong_a unavoidable_a consequence_n god_n of_o his_o free_a grace_n have_v absolute_o ordain_v that_o faith_n shall_v be_v a_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_z that_o this_o shall_v be_v a_o true_a conditional_a gospel-promise_n if_o people_n sincere_o believe_v in_o christ_n they_o shall_v be_v justify_v and_o pardon_v therefore_o it_o be_v a_o true_a conditional_a gospel-promise_n and_o can_v be_v otherwise_o all_o this_o be_v to_o we_o very_o certain_a and_o evident_a and_o therefore_o must_v conclude_v that_o we_o have_v prove_v by_o reason_n agreeable_a to_o scripture_n that_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v conditional_a as_o aforesaid_a and_o without_o go_v upon_o this_o ground_n and_o principle_n we_o do_v not_o conceive_v how_o minister_n can_v preach_v the_o gospel_n honest_o and_o faithful_o to_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n they_o meet_v with_o as_o by_o our_o commission_n we_o be_v oblige_v to_o do_v mark_v 16.15_o 16._o rom._n 10.8_o 9_o reason_n 2._o the_o covenant_n promise_v of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n be_v conditional_a therefore_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v conditional_a with_o respect_n to_o its_o subsequent_a blessing_n and_o benefit_n the_o consequence_n be_v self-evident_a because_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n be_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a subsequent_a blessing_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n we_o prove_v the_o antecedent_n against_o mr._n marshal_n book_n and_o against_o our_o author_n who_o high_o approve_v and_o commend_v it_o if_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n promise_v of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n than_o the_o covenant_n promise_v of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n be_v real_o conditional_a but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant-promise_a of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n therefore_o that_o covenant-promise_a be_v conditional_a the_o consequence_n of_o the_o first_o proposition_n be_v self-evident_a we_o prove_v the_o second_o proposition_n to_o wit_n that_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant-promise_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n because_o whatsoever_o be_v so_o require_v of_o we_o as_o a_o duty_n in_o order_n to_o the_o obtain_n of_o the_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n promise_v that_o our_o obtain_n thereof_o be_v by_o the_o promise_n suspend_v on_o our_o perform_v that_o duty_n and_o we_o be_v assure_v by_o the_o lord_n that_o if_o we_o perform_v that_o duty_n we_o shall_v obtain_v but_o if_o we_o perform_v not_o that_o duty_n we_o shall_v not_o obtain_v the_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n promise_v that_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n promise_v of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n it_o be_v the_o very_a definition_n and_o essential_a nature_n of_o a_o gospel-condition_n that_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n require_v as_o aforesaid_a but_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o duty_n so_o require_v in_o order_n to_o the_o obtain_n of_o the_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n promise_v as_o most_o evident_o appear_v by_o the_o many_o plain_a testimony_n of_o god_n word_n whereby_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v sincere_a obedience_n to_o be_v a_o duty_n so_o require_v therefore_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o lord_n be_v and_o must_v be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n promise_v of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n if_o our_o author_n or_o any_o for_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o it_o be_v true_a sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o lord_n command_n of_o believe_v be_v require_v as_o aforesaid_a but_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o any_o other_o command_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o necessary_o require_v as_o aforesaid_a in_o order_n to_o the_o obtain_n of_o the_o promise_a blessing_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n we_o reply_v 1._o that_o if_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o lord_n command_n of_o believe_v be_v require_v as_o necessary_a in_o the_o way_n aforesaid_a to_o the_o obtain_n of_o the_o promise_a blessing_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n than_o even_o according_a to_o that_o answer_n the_o covenant-promise_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n be_v still_o conditional_a and_o faith_n continue_v and_o persevere_v in_o to_o the_o end_n which_o be_v that_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o lord_n command_n of_o believe_v be_v the_o condition_n of_o it_o for_o the_o definition_n and_o essential_a nature_n of_o a_o gospel-condition_n agree_v to_o faith_n under_o that_o consideration_n 2._o we_o reply_v that_o the_o sincere_a obedience_n which_o consist_v in_o the_o formal_a elicit_v act_n or_o act_n of_o believe_v be_v not_o all_o the_o sincere_a obedience_n which_o be_v require_v as_o aforesaid_a and_o we_o thus_o prove_v it_o if_o it_o be_v false_a that_o no_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v require_v as_o aforesaid_a but_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n than_o it_o be_v true_a that_o some_o obedience_n be_v require_v as_o aforesaid_a beside_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n this_o proposition_n be_v self-evident_a because_o no_o obedience_n but_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n and_o some_o obedience_n beside_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n be_v manifest_a contradictory_n and_o two_o contradictory_n can_v possible_o be_v both_o true_a nor_o both_o false_a but_o one_o of_o they_o must_v always_o be_v true_a and_o the_o other_o false_a and_o it_o can_v possible_o be_v otherwise_o this_o be_v clear_a and_o undeniable_a we_o proceed_v to_o the_o next_o proposition_n and_o subsume_v but_o it_o be_v false_a that_o no_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v require_v as_o aforesaid_a but_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n for_o if_o no_o sincere_a obedience_n but_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n be_v require_v as_o aforesaid_a that_o be_v be_v require_v as_o indispensable_o necessary_a to_o obtain_v the_o promise_a blessing_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n than_o it_o follow_v by_o necessary_a consequence_n that_o a_o christian_n our_o author_n may_v instance_n in_o and_o apply_v it_o to_o himself_o or_o any_o other_o as_o he_o please_v we_o say_v it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o a_o christian_n if_o he_o do_v but_o keep_v faith_n and_o now_o and_o
through_o grace_n we_o be_v sincere_o obedient_a we_o shall_v be_v save_v but_o if_o not_o we_o shall_v be_v damn_v now_o this_o faith_n act_v upon_o the_o several_a part_n of_o god_n word_n according_a to_o their_o respective_a nature_n be_v of_o great_a force_n and_o efficacy_n to_o determine_v we_o unto_o the_o practice_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n 1._o the_o faith_n of_o god_n word_n command_v sincere_a obedience_n as_o indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n make_v our_o conscience_n how_o down_o to_o god_n authority_n in_o the_o command_n and_o make_v we_o endeavour_v to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o it_o 2._o the_o faith_n of_o god_n word_n of_o threaten_v against_o the_o disobedient_a rebel_n work_v upon_o our_o fear_n 4.1_o 2_o cor._n 5.10_o 11._o heb._n 4.1_o and_o fear_n restrain_v we_o from_o disobedience_n lest_o thereby_o we_o shall_v bring_v upon_o ourselves_o the_o everlasting_a punishment_n threaten_v 3._o the_o faith_n of_o god_n word_n of_o promise_n to_o obedient_a believer_n work_n upon_o our_o hope_n and_o hope_n quicken_v we_o unto_o obedience_n as_o the_o necessary_a mean_n to_o obtain_v the_o eternal_a reward_n promise_v it_o make_v we_o follow_v after_o holiness_n in_o expectation_n of_o happiness_n 1_o john_n 3.2_o 3._o it_o be_v essential_a to_o save_v faith_n to_o act_v thus_o different_o on_o the_o several_a part_n of_o the_o word_n according_a to_o their_o respective_a nature_n make_v we_o tremble_v at_o the_o threaten_n embrace_v the_o promise_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n obey_v the_o command_n of_o god_n as_o our_o confession_n of_o faith_n intimate_v in_o chap._n 14._o art_n 2._o now_o our_o faith_n its_o be_v thus_o natural_o fit_v to_o make_v we_o sincere_o obedient_a unto_o the_o lord_n in_o all_o his_o command_n and_o institution_n arise_v partly_o from_o hence_o that_o the_o indispensable_a necessity_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n in_o order_n to_o the_o obtain_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n be_v one_o of_o the_o object_n of_o a_o sound_a faith_n which_o it_o firm_o assent_v to_o and_o be_v strong_o persuade_v of_o for_o this_o firm_a assent_n and_o strong_a persuasion_n that_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v so_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n will_v not_o let_v we_o rest_n but_o will_v be_v still_o put_v we_o on_o to_o yield_v sincere_a obedience_n unto_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n as_o that_o which_o must_v be_v do_v or_o we_o shall_v be_v undo_v for_o ever_o but_o if_o a_o man_n be_v once_o firm_o persuade_v in_o his_o own_o mind_n that_o no_o sincere_a obedience_n but_o only_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n in_o way_n of_o obedience_n be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n his_o faith_n will_v not_o have_v so_o much_o power_n over_o he_o to_o make_v he_o sincere_o obedient_a unto_o the_o lord_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n indeed_o it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v doubt_v whether_o that_o man_n have_v a_o sincere_a faith_n at_o all_o who_o be_v under_o the_o power_n of_o this_o erroneous_a opinion_n that_o no_o sincere_a obedience_n distinct_a from_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o a_o sincere_a sound_a faith_n among_o other_o of_o its_o object_n it_o believe_v this_o for_o one_o that_o as_o first_o faith_n so_o next_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n thus_o we_o have_v prove_v our_o second_o proposition_n to_o wit_n it_o be_v false_a that_o no_o sincere_a obedience_n but_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n be_v require_v as_o indispensable_o necessary_a to_o the_o obtain_v the_o promise_a blessing_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n now_o both_o the_o premise_n be_v certain_o and_o evident_o true_a the_o conclusion_n follow_v avoidable_a which_o be_v this_o that_o it_o be_v true_a that_o some_o obedience_n beside_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n be_v require_v as_o indispensable_o necessary_a to_o the_o obtain_n of_o the_o promise_a blessing_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n for_o who_o be_v so_o stark_o blind_a as_o not_o to_o see_v that_o if_o it_o be_v false_a that_o no_o obedience_n but_o faith_n be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v it_o to_o be_v false_a then_o its_o contradictory_n be_v true_a that_o some_o obedience_n beside_o faith_n be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n we_o proceed_v then_o and_o thus_o argue_v if_o some_o obedience_n beside_o faith_n be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n then_o that_o some_o obedience_n beside_o faith_n must_v be_v either_o a_o most_o perfect_a personal_a sinless_a obedience_n or_o a_o imperfect_a personal_a sincere_a obedience_n there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o personal_a obedience_n but_o one_o of_o these_o two_o think_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o it_o be_v not_o it_o can_v be_v a_o most_o perfect_a personal_a sinless_a obedience_n for_o if_o such_o a_o obedience_n be_v require_v as_o indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n then_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v because_o no_o mere_a man_n ever_o perform_v such_o obedience_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o this_o life_n no_o man_n ever_o live_v so_o holy_o as_o never_o to_o sin_v in_o thought_n word_n or_o deed_n after_o his_o conversion_n and_o 〈…〉_o and_o so_o if_o such_o sinless_a personal_a obedience_n be_v require_v of_o all_o as_o indispensable_o ●●●●●sary_a to_o salvation_n no_o flesh_n can_v be_v save_v but_o all_o will_v be_v damn_v notwithstanding_o all_o that_o christ_n have_v do_v and_o suffer_v to_o purchase_v salvation_n for_o his_o people_n christ_n blood_n will_v have_v be_v so_o far_o shed_v in_o vain_a that_o not_o one_o soul_n will_v be_v save_v by_o it_o which_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o affirm_v and_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v that_o now_o under_o the_o gospel-covenant_n a_o most_o perfect_a personal_a sinless_a obedience_n be_v require_v of_o we_o as_o indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n since_o therefore_o some_o personal_a obedience_n beside_o faith_n be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o it_o be_v not_o a_o most_o perfect_a personal_a sinless_a obedience_n that_o be_v so_o necessary_a we_o must_v of_o necessity_n conclude_v that_o it_o be_v a_o imperfect_a personal_a sincere_a obedience_n which_o beside_o faith_n be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o other_o most_o perfect_a personal_a sinless_a obedience_n be_v not_o attainable_a in_o this_o life_n by_o the_o ordinary_a assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n but_o this_o personal_a imperfect_a yet_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v attainable_a in_o this_o life_n by_o the_o ordinary_a help_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o grace_n for_o christ_n yoke_n be_v easy_a and_o his_o burden_n be_v light_a mat._n 11.30_o and_o god_n commandment_n be_v not_o grievous_a 1_o john_n 5.3_o the_o spirit_n help_v our_o infirmity_n rom._n 8.26_o through_o the_o spirit_n we_o mortify_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o body_n rom._n 8.13_o we_o purify_v our_o soul_n in_o obey_v the_o truth_n through_o the_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n 1_o pet._n 1.22_o in_o short_a though_o without_o christ_n we_o can_v do_v nothing_o john_n 15.5_o yet_o through_o christ_n strengthen_v we_o we_o can_v do_v all_o thing_n phil._n 4.13_o that_o be_v we_o can_v do_v all_o thing_n which_o christ_n require_v of_o we_o as_o indispensable_o necessary_a to_o our_o obtain_v the_o promise_a blessing_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o salvation_n if_o any_o shall_v object_v against_o this_o and_o say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v although_o he_o do_v not_o perform_v that_o obedience_n which_o be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n because_o though_o he_o fall_v into_o very_o great_a sin_n yet_o he_o may_v repent_v of_o they_o and_o so_o be_v save_v through_o christ_n upon_o his_o repentance_n we_o answer_v 1._o that_o it_o be_v contradictious_a nonsense_n to_o say_v a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o that_o sincere_a obedience_n which_o god_n have_v make_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o his_o salvation_n 2._o we_o answer_v with_o rutherford_n and_o other_o as_o aforesaid_a that_o when_o a_o regenerate_v justify_v man_n full_n into_o gross_a sin_n against_o knowledge_n and_o conscience_n he_o can_v be_v save_v whilst_o he_o continue_v in_o those_o sin_n without_o repentance_n for_o than_o he_o do_v not_o walk_v after_o the_o spirit_n but_o rather_o after_o the_o flesh_n then_o he_o be_v go_v astray_o from_o the_o way_n that_o lead_v to_o life_n and_o salvation_n and_o be_v walk_v in_o the_o broad_a way_n that_o lead_v to_o destruction_n and_o therefore_o if_o he_o do_v not_o turn_v back_o and_o return_v again_o into_o the_o narrow_a way_n that_o lead_v to_o life_n and_o salvation_n he_o will_v certain_o be_v undo_v he_o will_v perish_v everlasting_o rom._n 8.13_o if_o you_o live_v after_o the_o flesh_n you_o shall_v die_v but_o when_o a_o justify_v man_n that_o have_v fall_v as_o be_v say_v rise_v again_o by_o repentance_n he_o return_v to_o his_o obedience_n and_o we_o desire_v it_o
may_v be_v observe_v and_o remember_v that_o when_o we_o say_v sincere_a obedience_n be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n we_o do_v not_o mean_v that_o it_o be_v require_v as_o absolute_o and_o indispensable_o necessary_a to_o our_o salvation_n that_o our_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v never_o at_o all_o interrupt_v by_o any_o act_n of_o disobedience_n but_o that_o if_o it_o happen_v that_o our_o obedience_n be_v at_o any_o time_n notable_o interrupt_v by_o act_n of_o wilful_a presumptuous_a sin_n it_o be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o our_o salvation_n that_o we_o renew_v our_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o return_v to_o our_o obedience_n again_o and_o that_o we_o die_v in_o faith_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o reveal_v will_n of_o god_n as_o for_o they_o who_o be_v call_v at_o the_o last_o hour_n who_o be_v first_o convert_v and_o justify_v a_o little_a before_o their_o death_n actual_a faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v require_v of_o they_o in_o their_o own_o person_n and_o as_o much_o more_o sincere_a obedience_n as_o they_o have_v time_n and_o strength_n to_o perform_v as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o penitent_a thief_n he_o perform_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o obedience_n in_o a_o little_a time_n he_o not_o only_o believe_v in_o christ_n with_o his_o heart_n but_o confess_v he_o with_o his_o mouth_n plead_v for_o he_o and_o vindicate_v he_o from_o the_o blasphemous_a aspersion_n that_o be_v cast_v upon_o he_o he_o likewise_o take_v shame_n to_o himself_o and_o give_v glory_n to_o god_n by_o confess_v his_o own_o sin_n and_o withal_o he_o express_v his_o love_n to_o his_o fellow-thief_n by_o rebuke_v and_o admonish_v he_o last_o he_o trust_v in_o and_o pray_v unto_o christ_n as_o a_o lord_n and_o king_n who_o have_v a_o kingdom_n in_o another_o world_n and_o who_o can_v help_v and_o save_v he_o after_o this_o life_n luke_n 22.40_o 41_o 42._o this_o that_o penitent_a malefactor_n do_v at_o his_o death_n and_o true_o this_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n for_o he_o to_o do_v at_o such_o a_o time_n and_o when_o christ_n his_o lord_n and_o saviour_n be_v before_o his_o face_n in_o so_o low_a and_o miserable_a a_o condition_n to_o the_o eye_n of_o sense_n and_o reason_n the_o obedience_n which_o that_o poor_a penitent_a believer_n yield_v to_o the_o lord_n in_o such_o circumstance_n may_v well_o be_v esteem_v equivalent_a to_o all_o that_o sincere_a obedience_n which_o in_o the_o space_n of_o many_o year_n other_o in_o better_a circumstance_n perform_v unto_o the_o lord_n thus_o we_o have_v at_o large_a prosecute_v and_o clear_v this_o argument_n for_o the_o indispensable_a necessity_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o obtain_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o salvation_n and_o consequent_o for_o the_o conditionality_n of_o the_o covenant-promise_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o salvation_n and_o the_o argument_n seem_v to_o we_o so_o clear_a and_o cogent_a that_o we_o do_v not_o see_v any_o thing_n of_o weight_n that_o can_v be_v object_v against_o it_o if_o any_o shall_v say_v that_o sincere_a evangelical_n obedience_n be_v not_o only_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o the_o condition_n to_o be_v perform_v on_o our_o part_n but_o upon_o other_o account_n also_o we_o hearty_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v so_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o express_v our_o love_n and_o thankfulness_n to_o god_n and_o christ_n for_o their_o wonderful_a goodness_n and_o grace_n mercy_n and_o love_n to_o we_o as_o also_o it_o be_v necessary_a in_o order_n to_o the_o please_a and_o glorify_v our_o god_n creator_n redeemer_n and_o sanctifier_n and_o that_o thereby_o we_o may_v profit_v and_o edify_v our_o neighbour_n but_o this_o do_v by_o no_o mean_n hinder_v its_o be_v likewise_o indispensable_o necessary_a to_o our_o own_o salvation_n nay_o all_o this_o be_v a_o part_n of_o that_o obedience_n which_o be_v so_o necessary_a to_o our_o salvation_n if_o yet_o any_o shall_v further_o object_v and_o say_v that_o beside_o faith_n sincere_a obedience_n may_v be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o yet_o not_o be_v a_o condition_n of_o obtain_v salvation_n we_o answer_v that_o we_o do_v not_o love_v to_o contend_v with_o any_o about_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n condition_n if_o they_o will_v grant_v we_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o the_o word_n now_o by_o the_o word_n condition_n in_o this_o matter_n of_o obedience_n we_o mean_v no_o more_o but_o that_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v so_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o god_n by_o his_o promise_n have_v suspend_v our_o obtain_n of_o salvation_n consummate_a salvation_n in_o heavenly_a glory_n till_o we_o have_v perform_v sincere_a obedience_n unto_o he_o assure_v we_o that_o if_o through_o grace_n we_o perform_v sincere_a obedience_n unto_o he_o we_o shall_v certain_o be_v save_v but_o if_o not_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v save_v this_o be_v all_o we_o mean_v by_o sincere_a obedience_n its_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant-promise_n of_o salvation_n if_o our_o brethren_n agree_v to_o this_o they_o yield_v we_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o contend_v for_o and_o there_o remain_v no_o more_o difference_n as_o to_o this_o matter_n but_o about_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n condition_n and_o if_o they_o do_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o use_v that_o word_n we_o leave_v they_o to_o their_o liberty_n not_o to_o use_v it_o as_o we_o desire_v they_o will_v leave_v we_o to_o our_o liberty_n to_o use_v it_o as_o we_o have_v occasion_n for_o though_o the_o word_n be_v not_o in_o scripture_n yet_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o the_o word_n be_v manifest_o there_o as_o we_o have_v prove_v it_o be_v also_o a_o word_n of_o ancient_a usage_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n even_o in_o the_o best_a reform_a church_n before_o ever_o we_o be_v bear_v why_o then_o shall_v we_o forbear_v the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n condition_n or_o why_o shall_v any_o be_v offend_v at_o our_o use_n of_o it_o indeed_o we_o can_v forbear_v the_o use_n of_o it_o for_o the_o reason_n give_v we_o by_o some_o well-meaning_a man_n because_o it_o be_v not_o a_o scriptural-word_n for_o if_o that_o reason_n prove_v any_o thing_n it_o will_v prove_v too_o much_o to_o wit_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o use_v the_o word_n trinity_n incarnation_n satisfaction_n merit_n of_o christ_n sacrament_n infant-baptism_n etc._n etc._n and_o which_o be_v more_o that_o we_o shall_v whole_o give_v over_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o hereafter_o only_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n without_o expound_v it_o for_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o no_o man_n do_v or_o can_v preach_v one_o sermon_n without_o use_v some_o word_n or_o word_n that_o be_v not_o express_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o as_o our_o sincere_a obedience_n may_v be_v and_o real_o be_v a_o condition_n of_o obtain_v eternal_a salvation_n though_o it_o be_v not_o express_o call_v by_o that_o name_n in_o scripture_n so_o may_v it_o be_v and_o real_o it_o be_v a_o condition_n though_o it_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n grace_n we_o know_v this_o be_v the_o main_a reason_n why_o our_o brethren_n think_v that_o neither_o our_o faith_n nor_o obedience_n can_v be_v a_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n because_o they_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o special_a and_o effectual_a grace_n of_o god_n but_o we_o know_v also_o that_o this_o be_v a_o very_a weak_a reason_n for_o 1._o we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o that_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n which_o be_v the_o work_n and_o effect_v of_o god_n grace_n alone_o such_o be_v effectual_a call_v on_o god_n part_n and_o the_o infusion_n of_o the_o seminal_a abide_a principle_n of_o supernatural_a spiritual_a life_n it_o be_v god_n only_o who_o call_v we_o effectual_o and_o who_o infuse_v the_o say_a principle_n of_o grace_n and_o life_n into_o our_o soul_n and_o we_o be_v mere_o passive_a in_o the_o reception_n of_o it_o we_o never_o say_v nor_o think_v that_o it_o be_v require_v of_o we_o by_o way_n of_o duty_n or_o condition_n that_o we_o shall_v effectual_o call_v ourselves_o and_o infuse_v a_o supernatural_a principle_n of_o grace_n and_o life_n into_o ourselves_o this_o indeed_o will_v be_v very_o absurd_a therefore_o we_o hold_v that_o our_o be_v effectual_o call_v and_o our_o have_v a_o abide_a principle_n of_o grace_n and_o life_n give_v in_o unto_o we_o be_v quid_fw-la praerequisitum_a something_a pre-required_n to_o our_o right_n perform_v the_o condition_n but_o not_o the_o condition_n itself_o that_o which_o be_v require_v of_o we_o by_o way_n of_o duty_n and_o condition_n on_o which_o god_n promise_v we_o the_o subsequent_a blessing_n of_o the_o covenant_n it_o be_v that_o we_o do_v not_o resist_v his_o spirit_n and_o that_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n we_o do_v actual_o believe_v and_o obey_v and_o persevere_v to_o the_o end_n now_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n whereby_o
we_o believe_v and_o obey_v be_v so_o far_o from_o hinder_v our_o actual_a faith_n and_o obedience_n from_o be_v the_o condition_n that_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o conduce_v very_o much_o to_o make_v they_o the_o condition_n the_o gracious_a evangelical_n condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o without_o it_o they_o can_v not_o be_v such_o a_o condition_n as_o to_o what_o they_o say_v that_o special_a grace_n necessary_o cause_v our_o faith_n and_o obedience_n we_o answer_v before_o that_o special_a grace_n do_v not_o cause_v our_o actual_a faith_n and_o obedience_n with_o any_o such_o kind_n of_o necessity_n as_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o or_o destructive_a of_o the_o true_a liberty_n of_o our_o soul_n in_o believe_v and_o obey_v augustin_n the_o great_a asserter_n of_o the_o necessity_n and_o efficacy_n of_o supernatural_a grace_n against_o the_o pelagian_o and_o semipelagian_o say_v in_o his_o 46_o epist._n to_o valentinus_n obedientiam_fw-la nostram_fw-la deus_fw-la requirit_fw-la quae_fw-la nulla_fw-la potest_fw-la esse_fw-la sine_fw-la libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la god_n require_v our_o obedience_n which_o without_o the_o liberty_n of_o our_o mind_n can_v be_v no_o obedience_n and_o our_o own_o westminster_n confession_n of_o faith_n in_o chap_n 19_o atr_n 7._o say_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n subdue_v and_o enable_v the_o will_n of_o man_n to_o do_v that_o free_o and_o cheerful_o which_o the_o will_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o the_o law_n require_v to_o be_v do_v dr._n twisse_n also_o say_v frequent_o that_o the_o effectual_a will_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n do_v not_o destroy_v but_o establish_v the_o freedom_n of_o our_o action_n particular_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o hoard_n his_o god_n love_n to_o mankind_n book_n 2._o page_n 103._o he_o write_v thus_o against_o mr._n mason_n when_o once_o god_n have_v plant_v in_o we_o a_o principle_n of_o new_a life_n of_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o regeneration_n etc._n see_v 127_o page_n of_o his_o desence_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n etc._n etc._n though_o all_o the_o power_n thereof_o do_v incline_v only_o to_o that_o which_o be_v good_a like_a as_o the_o power_n of_o natural_a corruption_n incline_v only_o unto_o evil_n yet_o the_o particular_a use_n and_o exercise_v of_o those_o be_v always_o free_a like_a as_o the_o particular_a use_n and_o exercise_v of_o the_o power_n of_o our_o corruption_n be_v always_o free_a to_o the_o commit_n of_o this_o or_o that_o sin_n according_a unto_o the_o emergent_a occasion_n stand_v in_o congruity_n to_o every_o man_n particular_a disposition_n and_o pag._n 104._o shall_v he_o mr._n mason_n have_v lay_v to_o our_o charge_n that_o we_o maintain_v that_o god_n necessitate_v the_o will_n to_o any_o good_a act_n and_o to_o over-rule_v the_o will_n therein_o we_o shall_v utter_o deny_v it_o without_o distinction_n it_o be_v true_a he_o overrule_v the_o will_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o not_o the_o will_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o regenerate_v part_n but_o move_v it_o agreeable_o to_o its_o nature_n and_o to_o work_v not_o only_o voluntary_o but_o free_o whatsoever_o it_o work_v for_o albeit_o the_o regenerate_v part_n be_v like_o a_o moral_a virtue_n though_o as_o much_o transcendent_a to_o it_o as_o a_o thing_n supernatural_a transcend_v a_o thing_n natural_a incline_v only_o to_o that_o which_o be_v good_a yet_o be_v it_o always_o move_v to_o this_o particular_a good_a rather_o than_o to_o another_o most_o free_o like_a as_o a_o man_n natural_a corruption_n incline_v a_o man_n only_o to_o evil_n yet_o to_o this_o kind_n of_o evil_n or_o to_o this_o particular_a evil_n rather_o than_o to_o that_o man_n be_v move_v most_o free_o so_o that_o if_o we_o maintain_v not_o that_o god_n work_v a_o man_n to_o every_o good_a act_n otherwise_o than_o free_o let_v the_o very_a conscience_n of_o our_o enemy_n judge_n whether_o we_o can_v maintain_v that_o god_n necessitate_v the_o will_n either_o of_o man_n or_o devil_n unto_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o next_o page_n 105_o he_o bring_v for_o confirmation_n of_o what_o he_o have_v say_v the_o 11_o article_n of_o the_o church_n in_o ireland_n where_o this_o position_n be_v first_o lay_v down_o that_o god_n from_o all_o eternity_n do_v by_o his_o unchangeable_a counsel_n ordain_v whatsoever_o in_o time_n shall_v come_v to_o pass_v and_o than_o it_o be_v forthwith_o add_v that_o hereby_o no_o violence_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o reasonable_a creature_n and_o neither_o the_o liberty_n nor_o the_o contingency_n of_o second_o cause_n be_v take_v away_o but_o establish_v rather_o then_o again_o in_o page_n 108._o this_o be_v clear_o our_o doctrine_n to_o wit_n that_o when_o god_n never_o so_o effectual_o work_v any_o creature_n to_o the_o produce_v of_o a_o act_n connatural_a to_o it_o yet_o he_o work_v the_o creature_n thereunto_o agreeable_o to_o its_o nature_n that_o be_v if_o it_o be_v a_o necessary_a agent_n move_v it_o to_o work_v necessary_o if_o it_o be_v a_o contingent_a agent_n move_v it_o to_o work_v contingent_o and_o if_o it_o be_v a_o free_a agent_n move_v it_o to_o work_v free_o and_o in_o effect_v it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o they_o who_o say_v that_o god_n determine_v the_o will_n as_o the_o dominican_n or_o that_o god_n necessitate_v the_o will_n as_o bradwardin_n for_o they_o acknowledge_v hereby_o that_o god_n move_v the_o creature_n to_o work_v free_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o work_v they_o may_v do_v otherwise_o if_o they_o will_v they_o confess_v this_o providence_n of_o god_n be_v a_o great_a mystery_n and_o not_o sufficient_o comprehensible_a by_o humane_a reason_n cajetan_n profess_v thus_o much_o as_o before_o allege_v and_o alvarez_n maintain_v it_o in_o a_o set_a disputation_n thus_o far_o twiss_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o he_o hold_v all_o the_o good_a we_o do_v to_o be_v act_n of_o free_a obedience_n notwithstanding_o that_o we_o produce_v they_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n effectual_a grace_n yea_o that_o they_o be_v so_o free_a that_o though_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la in_o some_o respect_n it_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o to_o be_v produce_v yet_o simpliciter_fw-la &_o absolutè_fw-la 120._o see_v page_n 116_o 117_o 118_o 119_o 120._o simple_o and_o absolute_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o not_o to_o be_v produce_v and_o if_o our_o actual_a faith_n and_o obedience_n be_v free_a act_n of_o we_o notwithstanding_o that_o they_o be_v also_o effect_n of_o god_n grace_n than_o they_o may_v be_v our_o duty_n also_o and_o indeed_o they_o be_v duty_n so_o necessary_o require_v of_o we_o as_o that_o the_o obtain_n of_o justification_n and_o glorification_n be_v suspend_v by_o the_o promise_n till_o the_o performance_n of_o they_o as_o be_v prove_v before_o and_o then_o it_o follow_v by_o necessary_a consequence_n that_o they_o be_v evangelical_n condition_n of_o the_o promise_n because_o they_o have_v the_o essential_a nature_n of_o a_o evangelical_n condition_n here_o we_o take_v notice_n by_o the_o way_n that_o there_o be_v some_o who_o distinguish_v between_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o it_o and_o they_o say_v themselves_o and_o will_v make_v all_o other_o say_v with_o they_o that_o the_o covenant_n itself_o be_v absolute_a to_o the_o elect_n but_o that_o the_o administration_n of_o it_o be_v conditional_a in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n 4._o gospel_n a_o brief_a account_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o difference_n now_o depend_v and_o agitate_a about_o justification_n page_n 4._o now_o we_o must_v declare_v that_o we_o can_v say_v without_o distinction_n as_o some_o will_v have_v we_o to_o do_v that_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v absolute_a to_o the_o elect._n we_o have_v already_o say_v and_o prove_v that_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n make_v with_o the_o church_n through_o christ_n be_v a_o complex_fw-la of_o many_o promise_n whereof_o some_o be_v indeed_o absolute_a yet_o not_o so_o absolute_a neither_o as_o to_o exclude_v all_o use_n of_o mean_n such_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o first_o grace_n of_o save_a faith_n and_o repentance_n etc._n etc._n but_o other_o of_o they_o be_v conditional_a even_o to_o the_o elect_n such_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o subsequent_a blessing_n of_o the_o covenant_n as_o of_o justification_n pardon_v of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o those_o subsequent_a blessing_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v ever_o promise_v to_o any_o of_o adam_n posterity_n but_o upon_o some_o condition_n express_v or_o employ_v and_o most_o frequent_o the_o condition_n be_v express_v with_o a_o plain_a declaration_n that_o as_o many_o as_o perform_v the_o condition_n shall_v have_v the_o promise_a blessing_n but_o they_o who_o never_o perform_v the_o condition_n shall_v never_o have_v the_o promise_a blessing_n this_o show_v plain_o that_o the_o covenant_n
sometime_o two_o as_o in_o act_n 20.20_o 21_o 27._o compare_v the_o apostle_n comprehend_v the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n under_o repentance_n and_o faith_n also_o in_o that_o of_o solomon_n fear_v god_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n for_o this_o be_v the_o whole_a of_o man_n eccles_n 12.13_o so_o that_o if_o you_o can_v suppose_v a_o man_n to_o be_v a_o believer_n and_o to_o be_v a_o believer_n alone_o it_o will_v not_o save_v he_o as_o the_o apostle_n james_n say_v chap._n 2.14_o what_o do_v it_o profit_v my_o brethren_n though_o a_o man_n say_v he_o have_v faith_n and_o have_v not_o work_n can_v faith_n save_v he_o no_o no_o more_o than_o say_v be_v you_o warm_v will_v warm_v any_o or_o be_v you_o fill_v will_v fill_v any_o for_o faith_n without_o work_n be_v dead_a and_o what_o be_v say_v of_o this_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o rest_n so_o that_o when_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o salvation_n as_o annex_v to_o any_o one_o thing_n it_o suppose_v that_o to_o contain_v the_o rest_n the_o reason_n be_v evident_a for_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o save_v be_v not_o part_v there_o be_v no_o believe_v to_o salvation_n without_o repentance_n nor_o no_o repentance_n to_o salvation_n without_o believe_v there_o be_v no_o call_n upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n will_v save_v without_o depart_v from_o iniquity_n nor_o can_v they_o save_o depart_v from_o iniquity_n that_o call_v not_o on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n it_o be_v not_o any_o one_o thing_n but_o thing_n that_o pertain_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n act_v 1.3_o it_o be_v not_o thing_n but_o thing_n that_o accompany_v or_o as_o it_o may_v be_v better_o read_v contain_v salvation_n heb._n 6.9_o and_o he_o that_o take_v one_o for_o all_o without_o all_o as_o our_o wise_a author_n do_v will_v find_v nothing_o at_o all_o a_o part_n be_v no_o portion_n the_o great_a fallacy_n with_o which_o satan_n delude_v many_o man_n be_v that_o which_o logician_n call_v à_fw-la benè_fw-la compositis_fw-la ad_fw-la malè_fw-la divisa_fw-la when_o he_o get_v they_o to_o take_v religion_n into_o piece_n and_o then_o take_v one_o piece_n for_o religion_n one_o cry_v up_o god_n another_o cry_v up_o christ_n another_o faith_n another_o love_n another_o good_a work_n but_o what_o be_v god_n without_o christ_n or_o christ_n without_o faith_n or_o faith_n without_o love_n or_o love_n without_o work_n but_o now_o take_v god_n in_o christ_n by_o faith_n which_o work_v by_o love_n to_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o this_o be_v pure_a religion_n it_o be_v the_o whole_a that_o be_v the_o whole_a of_o man._n yet_o again_o though_o i_o have_v speak_v thus_o much_o to_o it_o let_v i_o make_v it_o clear_a than_o a_o demonstration_n that_o one_o be_v put_v for_o all_o and_o as_o contain_v all_o by_o compare_v these_o place_n of_o scripture_n in_o 1_o cor._n 7.19_o you_o read_v that_o circumcision_n be_v nothing_o and_o uncircumcision_n be_v nothing_o but_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n what_o be_v that_o why_o that_o be_v all_o in_o all_o in_o gal._n 5.6_o it_o be_v neither_o circumcision_n avail_v any_o thing_n nor_o uncircumcision_n but_o faith_n which_o work_v by_o love_n that_o be_v that_o which_o avail_v or_o be_v all_o in_o all_o yet_o in_o gal._n 6.15_o he_o say_v neither_o circumcision_n avail_v any_o thing_n nor_o uncircumcision_n but_o a_o new_a creature_n that_o be_v all_o in_o all_o and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o as_o if_o all_o this_o be_v nothing_o he_o tell_v we_o in_o col._n 3.11_o that_o christ_n be_v all_o and_o in_o all_o cashier_v both_o circumcision_n and_o uncircumcision_n as_o former_o now_o my_o belove_a if_o you_o shall_v take_v any_o one_o of_o these_o though_o each_o be_v say_v to_o be_v avail_v i_o say_v if_o you_o shall_v take_v any_o one_o and_o lay_v the_o stress_n of_o your_o salvation_n upon_o it_o you_o be_v undo_v let_v our_o author_n and_o his_o proselyte_n look_v to_o themselves_o it_o be_v not_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n nor_o faith_n work_v by_o love_n nor_o the_o new_a creature_n no_o nor_o christ_n himself_o consider_v alone_o and_o apart_o that_o avail_v any_o thing_n but_o these_o in_o conjunction_n he_o name_v one_o only_o because_o where_o one_o be_v it_o be_v not_o only_o one_o there_o be_v more_o than_o one_o wherever_o one_o be_v saving_o there_o be_v all_o in_o their_o respective_a place_n as_o far_o as_o they_o be_v to_o be_v in_o relation_n to_o salvation_n thus_o you_o see_v that_o faith_n as_o well_o as_o work_n and_o work_v as_o well_o as_o faith_n every_o one_o in_o their_o own_o order_n be_v to_o be_v take_v in_o or_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v take_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n this_o rule_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n be_v one_o of_o venning_n thing_n that_o be_v well_o worth_a the_o think_n on_o and_o therefore_o we_o have_v set_v it_o down_o at_o large_a if_o it_o be_v due_o attend_v to_o it_o will_v give_v light_a sufficient_a to_o discover_v the_o darkness_n of_o our_o author_n ignorance_n or_o hypocrisy_n but_o he_o object_n further_o that_o no_o answer_n but_o this_o alone_a can_v right_o heal_v the_o wound_n of_o a_o awaken_v conscience_n pag._n 15._o we_o reply_v that_o what_o he_o say_v be_v false_a and_o delusive_a in_o his_o sense_n take_v faith_n for_o one_o single_a act_n of_o one_o grace_n and_o duty_n exclusive_a of_o repentance_n and_o all_o other_o grace_n and_o duty_n but_o take_v it_o according_a to_o god_n usual_a way_n of_o speak_v much_o in_o a_o little_a and_o in_o a_o complex_fw-la comprehensive_a sense_n as_o take_v in_o or_o not_o exclude_v but_o rather_o suppose_v repentance_n and_o it_o be_v most_o true_a for_o the_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n of_o christ_n blood_n apply_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o faith_n to_o the_o soul_n prepare_v by_o repentance_n be_v indeed_o the_o only_a remedy_n that_o can_v heal_v it_o but_o if_o our_o author_n will_v say_v that_o faith_n in_o christ_n alone_o and_o without_o repentance_n will_v heal_v the_o wound_n of_o awaken_v conscience_n in_o wicked_a man_n at_o their_o first_o conversion_n we_o can_v choose_v but_o rank_v he_o among_o those_o covetous_a deceitful_a prophet_n and_o priest_n who_o heal_v the_o hurt_n of_o the_o people_n slight_o say_v peace_n peace_n when_o there_o be_v no_o peace_n jerem._n 6.13_o 14._o we_o be_v infallible_o sure_a from_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n that_o the_o apostle_n commission_n be_v to_o preach_v repentance_n as_o well_o as_o faith_n in_o order_n to_o man_n justification_n and_o salvation_n and_o that_o they_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o command_v of_o their_o great_a and_o glorious_a lord_n and_o preach_v according_a to_o their_o commission_n for_o we_o read_v in_o god_n holy_a word_n that_o when_o the_o conscience_n of_o a_o multitude_n of_o unbelieve_a jew_n who_o have_v be_v accessary_a to_o the_o most_o barbarous_a murder_n of_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o saviour_n of_o man_n be_v thorough_o awaken_v and_o their_o spirit_n be_v deep_o wound_v by_o the_o arrow_n of_o conviction_n which_o almighty_a god_n by_o his_o word_n and_o spirit_n have_v shoot_v into_o their_o soul_n they_o feel_v themselves_o prick_v in_o their_o heart_n say_v unto_o peter_n and_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n man_n and_o brethren_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v act_n 2.37_o then_o as_o follow_v vers_n 38._o peter_n say_v unto_o they_o repent_v and_o be_v baptize_v every_o one_o of_o you_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n etc._n etc._n here_o we_o have_v a_o company_n of_o people_n in_o great_a distress_n of_o conscience_n as_o the_o gaoler_n be_v and_o in_o this_o their_o spiritual_a distress_n they_o do_v as_o the_o gaoler_n do_v as_o the_o gaoler_n seek_v advice_n of_o paul_n and_o silas_n and_o ask_v they_o what_o he_o shall_v do_v to_o be_v save_v just_o so_o the_o awaken_v convince_a jew_n seek_v advice_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o ask_v they_o what_o they_o shall_v do_v to_o who_o peter_n answer_v repent_v and_o be_v baptize_v etc._n etc._n whereupon_o we_o demand_v of_o our_o author_n be_v this_o answer_n of_o peter_n a_o right_a answer_n or_o not_o 1._o we_o hope_v he_o will_v not_o he_o dare_v not_o say_v it_o be_v not_o a_o right_a answer_n for_o peter_n be_v a_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o paul_n and_o at_o that_o very_a time_n he_o be_v full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o speak_v as_o he_o be_v inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o then_o he_o shall_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o say_v that_o peter_n do_v not_o give_v they_o a_o right_a answer_n because_o he_o do_v not_o say_v to_o they_o as_o paul_n say_v to_o the_o
be_v pardon_v and_o save_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n who_o shed_v his_o most_o precious_a blood_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n 3._o the_o very_a same_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v use_v in_o this_o same_o sense_n by_o origen_n in_o his_o three_o book_n against_o celsus_n cambridge_n edition_n pag._n 154._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god_n grant_v the_o grace_n of_o repentance_n i._n e._n the_o gracious_a blessing_n and_o privilege_n which_o be_v obtain_v by_o repentance_n to_o wit_n pardon_v of_o sin_n this_o be_v and_o must_v be_v the_o sense_n of_o origen_n word_n there_o and_o they_o can_v have_v no_o other_o for_o origen_n affirm_v there_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o calumny_n of_o celsus_n as_o shall_v be_v show_v by_o and_o by_o that_o man_n must_v first_o be_v true_o penitent_a they_o must_v be_v inward_o change_v and_o convert_v from_o evil_a to_o good_a before_o god_n be_v merciful_a to_o they_o so_o as_o to_o pardon_v their_o sin_n and_o when_o they_o be_v so_o wrought_v upon_o as_o to_o be_v real_o change_v convert_v and_o become_v true_o penitent_a than_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god_n grant_v they_o the_o grace_n of_o repentance_n that_o be_v the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n which_o be_v the_o gracious_a benefit_n annex_v to_o repentance_n and_o promise_v to_o all_o upon_o condition_n that_o they_o true_o repent_v to_o put_v another_o sense_n on_o origen_n word_n will_v be_v to_o make_v nonsense_n of_o they_o and_o to_o make_v he_o say_v that_o if_o man_n be_v first_o true_o penitent_a god_n will_v afterward_o give_v they_o grace_n whereby_o they_o may_v be_v or_o be_v make_v true_o penitent_a origen_n be_v not_o such_o a_o silly_a man_n as_o to_o write_v thus_o foolish_o for_o the_o christian_a religion_n against_o a_o learned_a and_o malicious_a heathen_a 4._o clement_n and_o origen_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d grace_n of_o repentance_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o tertullian_n fructus_fw-la paenitentiae_fw-la fruit_n of_o repentance_n but_o tertullian_n fruit_n of_o repentance_n be_v pardon_n of_o sin_n for_o so_o he_o write_v lib._n de_fw-fr pudicitiâ_fw-la cap._n 10._o ita_fw-la cessatio_fw-la delicti_fw-la radiae_fw-la est_fw-la veniae_fw-la ut_fw-la venia_fw-la sit_fw-la paenitentiae_fw-la fructus_fw-la cease_v from_o sin_n be_v so_o the_o root_n of_o pardon_n that_o pardon_n be_v the_o fruit_n of_o repentance_n 5._o and_o last_o the_o words-which_a immediate_o follow_v in_o clement_n show_v this_o to_o be_v his_o meaning_n for_o he_o add_v let_v we_o take_v a_o diligent_a view_n of_o all_o generation_n and_o learn_v that_o in_o every_o generation_n the_o lord_n have_v give_v place_n of_o repentance_n to_o such_o as_o be_v willing_a to_o turn_v unto_o he_o noah_n preach_v repentance_n and_o they_o that_o obey_v be_v save_v jonah_n preach_v destruction_n to_o the_o ninivites_n but_o they_o repent_v they_o of_o their_o sin_n appease_v god_n by_o their_o humble_a supplication_n and_o be_v preserve_v these_o word_n plain_o show_v that_o by_o say_v that_o through_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n shed_v for_o our_o salvation_n god_n have_v offer_v the_o grace_n of_o repentance_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n clement_n mean_v that_o god_n have_v admit_v all_o man_n to_o repentance_n as_o the_o way_n and_o mean_n to_o obtain_v pardon_n and_o have_v promise_v and_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n do_v give_v they_o pardon_n for_o christ_n sake_n upon_o their_o repentance_n but_o it_o may_v be_v some_o will_n object_n that_o yet_o the_o same_o clement_n in_o the_o same_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n say_v pag._n 67._o they_o the_o holy_a man_n before_o and_o under_o the_o law_n be_v all_o glorify_a and_o make_v great_a not_o by_o themselves_o or_o by_o their_o own_o work_n or_o by_o the_o just_a action_n which_o they_o do_v but_o by_o his_o will._n so_o we_o christian_n then_o be_v call_v in_o christ_n jesus_n by_o his_o will_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o ourselves_o nor_o by_o our_o own_o wisdom_n or_o knowledge_n or_o piety_n or_o by_o the_o work_n which_o we_o have_v do_v in_o holiness_n of_o heart_n but_o by_o faith_n whereby_o the_o almighty_a god_n have_v justify_v all_o man_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o who_o he_o glory_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n we_o answer_v that_o this_o make_v nothing_o against_o we_o for_o we_o have_v believe_v we_o do_v and_o through_o grace_n will_v always_o believe_v that_o god_n justisy_n we_o by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o any_o work_v distinct_a from_o faith_n in_o the_o sense_n before_o explain_v that_o be_v that_o god_n of_o his_o own_o gracious_a will_n and_o pleasure_n have_v ordain_v faith_n to_o be_v the_o only_a receptive_a applicative_a condition_n mean_n or_o federal_n moral_a instrument_n of_o justification_n upon_o our_o perform_n of_o which_o condition_n or_o use_v of_o which_o mean_n and_o instrument_n god_n do_v free_o justify_v we_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n satissactory_a meritorious_a righteousness_n only_o we_o do_v indeed_o with_o clement_n and_o with_o the_o holy_a prophet_n and_o apostle_n believe_v that_o sincere_a repentance_n be_v pre-required_n as_o a_o dispositive_a condition_n to_o our_o obtain_n of_o justification_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o say_v any_o more_o than_o they_o do_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o repentance_n but_o together_o with_o they_o we_o say_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n only_o because_o god_n have_v appoint_v faith_n only_o to_o that_o office_n of_o be_v the_o receptive_a condition_n and_o inward_a applicative_a mean_n of_o justifiaation_n through_o christ_n blood_n clemeut's_n say_v that_o god_n justify_v we_o by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o work_n must_v undoubted_o be_v understand_v in_o this_o sense_n as_o appear_v by_o what_o we_o have_v quote_v and_o shall_v now_o further_o quote_v out_o of_o he_o pag._n 102._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n let_v we_o speedy_o remove_v this_o evil_n from_o among_o we_o and_o let_v we_o fall_v down_o before_o the_o lord_n humble_o beseech_v he_o with_o tear_n that_o be_v become_v favourable_a he_o will_v be_v reconcile_v unto_o we_o by_o this_o passage_n we_o see_v that_o clement_n hold_v as_o we_o do_v that_o repent_v of_o mourn_v for_o and_o turn_v from_o our_o know_a sin_n and_o humble_a earnest_a prayer_n to_o god_n through_o christ_n be_v a_o mean_n indispensable_o necessary_a to_o be_v use_v by_o we_o before_o we_o can_v have_v ground_n to_o hope_v that_o god_n will_v have_v mercy_n on_o we_o in_o pardon_v our_o sin_n and_o as_o he_o hold_v faith_n and_o repentance_n together_o to_o be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o the_o obtain_n of_o justification_n and_o pardon_v of_o sin_n so_o he_o hold_v sincere_a obedience_n in_o a_o course_n of_o holy_a live_n to_o be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o the_o obtain_n of_o glorification_n and_o eternal_a salvation_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v pag._n 61_o 62._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n since_o therefore_o all_o thing_n be_v both_o see_v and_o hear_v by_o he_o let_v we_o fear_v he_o and_o forsake_v all_o foul_a desire_n of_o evil_a action_n that_o so_o we_o may_v be_v protect_v by_o his_o mercy_n from_o those_o judgement_n which_o be_v to_o come_v for_o whither_o can_v any_o one_o of_o we_o flee_v from_o his_o powerful_a hand_n and_o what_o world_n will_v entertain_v any_o of_o they_o who_o fall_v off_o from_o he_o or_o turn_v renegado_n let_v we_o come_v unto_o he_o therefore_o in_o the_o holiness_n of_o our_o soul_n lift_v up_o unto_o he_o pure_a and_o undefiled_a hand_n love_v this_o our_o gentle_a and_o merciful_a father_n who_o have_v make_v we_o unto_o himself_o the_o portion_n of_o his_o election_n and_o pag._n 73._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n let_v we_o therefore_o earnest_o strive_v to_o be_v sound_a in_o the_o number_n of_o they_o that_o wait_v on_o he_o that_o so_o we_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o those_o gift_n which_o be_v promise_v but_o beloved_n how_o shall_v this_o be_v do_v if_o our_o thought_n be_v steadfast_o fix_v upon_o god_n by_o faith_n if_o we_o inquire_v after_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v well-pleasing_a and_o acceptable_a unto_o he_o if_o we_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o his_o pure_a and_o irreproveable_a will_n and_o follow_v the_o way_n of_o truth_n cast_v away_o from_o we_o all_o injustice_n and_o iniquity_n covetousness_n contention_n malignity_n and_o deceit_n whisper_n and_o backbiting_n hatred_n of_o god_n pride_n and_o boast_v vainglory_n and_o ambition_n for_o they_o that_o do_v these_o thing_n be_v abominable_a unto_o god_n and_o not_o only_o the_o doer_n thereof_o but_o they_o also_o which_o consent_n thereunto_o for_o the_o scripture_n say_v etc._n etc._n as_o in_o psalm_n 50._o which_o clement_n quote_v from_o v._o 16._o
be_v bad_a counsel_n to_o tell_v a_o awaken_v sinner_n that_o he_o must_v repent_v of_o his_o know_a sin_n mourn_v for_o they_o leave_n and_o loathe_v they_o cyprian_n be_v more_o love_a and_o faithful_a to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n than_o so_o to_o betray_v they_o to_o the_o enemy_n of_o their_o salvation_n he_o will_v have_v lose_v his_o life_n before_o he_o will_v have_v do_v it_o and_o indeed_o he_o do_v at_o last_o lose_v his_o life_n for_o his_o faithfulness_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o his_o people_n he_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n for_o the_o brethren_n he_o seal_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n gospel_n with_o his_o blood_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 250_o and_o that_o be_v above_o fourteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o these_o five_o father_n flourish_v within_o the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n when_o the_o church_n be_v in_o its_o great_a purity_n and_o three_o of_o they_o to_o wit_n clement_n justin_n and_o cyprian_a be_v martyr_n we_o need_v say_v no_o more_o to_o vindicate_v our_o doctrine_n from_o the_o aspersion_n of_o novelty_n which_o be_v fulsty_n cast_v upon_o it_o yet_o we_o think_v fit_a to_o add_v further_o two_o or_o three_o testimony_n of_o those_o father_n who_o afterward_o be_v great_a asserter_n of_o the_o necessity_n and_o efficacy_n of_o god_n grace_n against_o the_o pe●ugians_n of_o which_o the_o chief_a be_v the_o famous_a augustin_n who_o they_o say_v be_v bear_v in_o africa_n the_o father_n day_n that_o pelagius_n be_v bear_v in_o britain_n the_o lord_n intimate_v by_o that_o providence_n that_o he_o have_v raise_v up_o augustin_n to_o be_v a_o instrument_n in_o his_o hand_n to_o mantain_n and_o defend_v the_o necessity_n and_o efficacy_n of_o his_o grace_n against_o pelagius_n who_o devy_v it_o now_o in_o his_o 105_o epistle_n to_o sixtus_n this_o great_a champion_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o time_n say_v that_o no_o man_n be_v deliver_v and_o justify_v from_o any_o sin_n original_a or_o actual_a of_o omission_n or_o commission_n nisi_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la dei_fw-la per_fw-la jesu●●_n christ●●●_n dominum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la 〈◊〉_d solùm_fw-la remissione_n peccatorum_fw-la sed_fw-la priùs_fw-la ipsius_fw-la inspiratione_n fidei_fw-la &_o timoris_fw-la dei_fw-la imparti●o_fw-la salubriter_fw-la orationis_fw-la affectu_fw-la &_o effectu_fw-la but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n not_o only_o by_o forgive_a him_z his_o sin_n but_o first_o by_o inspire_v into_o he_o faith_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n the_o affection_n and_o effect_n of_o prayer_n be_v save_o impairted_a unto_o he_o in_o this_o passuge_a of_o augustins_n we_o observe_v that_o 1._o he_o affirm_v that_o non_fw-la liberatur_fw-la &_o justificatur_fw-la quisquam_fw-la nisi_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la dei_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o no_o man_n be_v free_v and_o justify_v from_o any_o sin_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n 2._o that_o god_n grace_n in_o our_o justificution_n appeal_v not_o only_o in_o his_o forgive_n as_o our_o sin_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o in_o this_o that_o prin_n f●st_n before_o he_o justify_v we_o in_o forgive_a our_o sin_n he_o inspire_v into_o we_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o in_o that_o he_o give_v we_o a_o inclination_n and_o ability_n to_o pray_v and_o excite_v we_o to_o actual_a prayer_n for_o that_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o he_o mean_v by_o affectus_fw-la &_o effectus_fw-la erationis_fw-la salubriter_fw-la imparti●us_fw-la the_o affection_n of_o prayer_n be_v the_o fitness_n and_o disposition_n of_o the_o mind_n for_o the_o duty_n and_o we_o conceive_v that_o the_o effect_n of_o prayer_n in_o this_o place_n signi_fw-la 〈…〉_o p●aying_n of_o the_o soul_n its_o actual_a breathe_n after_o god_n for_o tho_o pardon_n of_o its_o sin_n these_o three_o thing_n faith_n fear_v and_o prayer_n in_o augustins_n judgement_n go_v before_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o so_o before_o justification_n of_o which_o according_a to_o our_o confession_n and_o catechism_n remission_n of_o sin_n be_v a_o essential_a part_n at_o least_o and_o the_o consequence_n of_o this_o be_v that_o according_a to_o austin_n there_o be_v some_o spiritual_a good_a wrought_v in_o we_o and_o do_v by_o we_o before_o our_o sin_n be_v pardon_v and_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o so_o we_o be_v qualify_v at_o least_o for_o pardon_n and_o that_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n the_o same_o author_n in_o another_o book_n say_v homines_fw-la non_fw-la intolligentes_fw-la quod_fw-la ait_fw-la ipse_fw-la apostolus_fw-la 7._o lib._n the_o great_a &_o lib._n urb_v cap._n 7._o 〈…〉_o hominem_fw-la per_fw-la ●idem_fw-la sine_fw-la operibus_fw-la legis_fw-la putarverunt_fw-la eum_fw-la dicere_fw-la sufficere_fw-la homini_fw-la fidem_fw-la etianise_v malè_fw-la vivat_fw-la &_o bona_fw-la opera_fw-la non_fw-la habeat_fw-la quod_fw-la absit_fw-la ut_fw-la sentiret_fw-la vas_fw-la electionis_fw-la etc._n etc._n man_n not_o understand_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n bimself_n say_v we_o judge_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n they_o have_v think_v that_o he_o say_v faith_n be_v sufficient_a to_o a_o man_n although_o he_o live_v a_o wicked_a life_n and_o have_v not_o good_a work_n which_o god_n forbid_v that_o that_o choose_v vessel_n shield_n have_v think_v or_o believe_v who_o when_o he_o have_v say_v in_o a_o certain_a place_n in_o christ_n cyesus_fw-la neither_o circumcision_n nor_o uncircumcision_n avail_v any_o thing_n immediate_o he_o idea_n but_o ●aith_n which_o work_v by_o love_n this_o be_v that_o faith_n which_o distinguish_v use_v separate_v god_n faithful_a people_n from_o the_o unclean_a devil_n for_o even_o they_o as_o the_o apostle_n james_n say_v believe_v and_o tremble_v but_o they_o do_v no_o good_a work_n therefore_o they_o have_v no●_n that_o faith_n by_o which_o the_o just_a do_v live_v that_o be_v which_o work_v by_o love_n that_o god_n may_v render_v unto_o he_o eternal_a life_n according_a to_o his_o work_n but_o because_o we_o have_v even_o good_a work_n themselves_o from_o that_o god_n from_o who_o we_o have_v faith_n and_o love_n therefore_o the_o same_o teacher_n of_o the_o gentile_n have_v call_v eternal_a life_n itself_o grace_n or_o gist_n and_o in_o the_o next_o and_o 8_o chapter_n he_o say_v that_o paul_n in_o ephes_n 2.8_o 9_o have_v write_v that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n through_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o of_o ourselves_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n not_o of_o work_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v host_n he_o see_v that_o man_n may_v think_v that_o this_o be_v so_o speak_v as_o if_o good_a work_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o believer_n but_o that_o faith_n alone_o be_v sufficient_a to_o they_o and_o again_o that_o man_n may_v be_v proud_a of_o their_o good_a work_n as_o if_o they_o be_v able_a of_o themselves_o to_o do_v they_o therefore_o he_o immediate_o add_v for_o we_o be_v his_o workmanship_n create_v in_o christ_n jesus_n unto_o good_a work_n which_o he_o have_v prepare_v that_o we_o shall_v walk_v in_o they_o audi_fw-la &_o intellige_fw-la non_fw-la ex_fw-la operibus_fw-la dictum_fw-la tanquam_fw-la tuis_fw-la ex_fw-la teipso_fw-la tibi_fw-la existentibus_fw-la hear_v and_o understand_v say_v austin_n it_o be_v say_v not_o of_o work_n as_o if_o they_o be_v thy_o own_o which_o thou_o have_v of_o and_o from_o thyself_o for_o thou_o be_v create_v in_o christ_n jesus_n unto_o they_o we_o have_v also_o a_o large_a confession_n of_o faith_n of_o fifteen_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o africa_n chr._n fulgent_n de_fw-fr incarn_n &_o gra._n j._n chr._n concern_v the_o incarnation_n and_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v indeed_o write_v by_o one_o of_o they_o to_o wit_n the_o famous_a fulgentius_n but_o all_o their_o naine_n be_v prefix_v to_o it_o and_o it_o be_v by_o they_o direct_v to_o petrus_n diaconus_fw-la in_o the_o 17_o chapter_n of_o that_o book_n they_o write_v thus_o ipse_fw-la salvator_n noster_fw-la etc._n etc._n our_o saviour_n himself_o with_o the_o command_a power_n of_o his_o own_o voice_n speak_v unto_o the_o will_n of_o man_n say_v repent_v and_o believe_v the_o gospel_n yet_o it_o be_v clear_v a_o man_n receive_v from_o god_n repentance_n unto_o life_n that_o he_o may_v begin_v to_o believe_v in_o god_n so_o that_o he_o can_v believe_v in_o god_n at_o all_o unless_o he_o receive_v repentance_n by_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n who_o show_v mercy_n but_o what_o be_v a_o man_n repentance_n but_o the_o change_n of_o his_o will_n 〈◊〉_d theresore_n god_n who_o give_v a_o man_n repentance_n do_v himself_o change_v man_n will_n now_o observe_v here_o 1._o that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o foresay_a fifteen_o father_n the_o lord_n both_o command_n and_o give_v repentance_n unto_o life_n 2._o that_o the_o lord_n give_v repentance_n before_o
we_o believe_v in_o god_n because_o he_o give_v we_o repentance_n that_o we_o may_v begin_v to_o believe_v in_o god_n 3._o that_o we_o can_v believe_v in_o god_n at_o all_o unless_o god_n first_o give_v we_o repentance_n which_o must_v be_v understand_v in_o this_o sense_n that_o we_o can_v believe_v at_o all_o with_o the_o faith_n of_o fiducial_a consent_n and_o recumbency_n unless_o it_o be_v first_o give_v we_o to_o repent_v for_o it_o be_v self-evident_a that_o we_o can_v and_o do_v believe_v with_o the_o faith_n of_o assent_n before_o we_o do_v repent_v and_o indeed_o we_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v repent_v till_o we_o first_o believe_v with_o the_o faith_n of_o assent_n as_o be_v show_v before_o and_o it_o be_v clear_a from_o their_o own_o word_n that_o they_o mean_v not_o that_o we_o can_v believe_v with_o the_o faith_n of_o assent_n but_o that_o we_o can_v believe_v with_o the_o faith_n of_o consent_n and_o fiducial_a recumbency_n unless_o it_o be_v first_o give_v we_o to_o repent_v their_o word_n be_v a_o man_n receive_v from_o god_n repentance_n unto_o life_n ut_fw-la in_fw-la deum_fw-la credere_fw-la incipiat_fw-la that_o he_o may_v begin_v to_o believe_v in_o god_n now_o by_o believe_v in_o god_n undoubted_o they_o mean_v believe_v in_o he_o so_o as_o to_o consent_v to_o have_v he_o for_o our_o god_n and_o so_o as_o to_o trust_v he_o as_o our_o god_n and_o can_v not_o mean_v only_o believe_v so_o far_o as_o to_o assent_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o that_o his_o word_n be_v true_a for_o they_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o holy_a austin_n and_o have_v learn_v of_o he_o to_o distinguish_v between_o credere_fw-la deum_fw-la credere_fw-la deo_fw-la &_o credere_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la believe_v a_o god_n and_o believe_v that_o all_o god_n say_v be_v true_a and_o believe_v in_o god_n so_o as_o to_o love_v he_o and_o take_v he_o for_o our_o god_n and_o trust_v he_o as_o our_o god_n it_o be_v this_o believe_v in_o god_n which_o they_o say_v can_v be_v begin_v till_o we_o have_v first_o repent_v through_o grace_n and_o this_o be_v a_o great_a truth_n as_o we_o show_v before_o out_o of_o calvin_n and_o since_o this_o believe_v with_o fiducial_a consent_n and_o recumbency_n be_v justify_v faith_n it_o follow_v evident_o that_o those_o fifteen_o father_n hold_v repentance_n to_o be_v before_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o before_o justification_n as_o it_o consist_v in_o remission_n of_o sin_n because_o they_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v before_o justify_v faith_n whereby_o we_o receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n act._n 10.43_o 4._o we_o observe_v they_o say_v that_o repentance_n be_v a_o change_n of_o our_o will_n and_o god_n himself_o by_o give_v we_o repentance_n change_v our_o wi_n therefore_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o those_o fifteen_o father_n there_o be_v and_o must_v be_v a_o real_a change_n in_o we_o before_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o pardon_v and_o we_o must_v let_v our_o author_n know_v that_o these_o father_n which_o be_v for_o we_o against_o he_o be_v burn_v and_o shine_a light_n in_o their_o day_n most_o of_o they_o if_o not_o all_o suffer_v banishment_n for_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o arian_n vandal_n in_o africa_n for_o we_o have_v a_o synodical_a epistle_n of_o they_o concern_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o will_n of_o man_n which_o be_v write_v by_o they_o in_o their_o exile_n in_o sardinia_n to_o which_o twelve_o of_o their_o name_n be_v prefix_v the_o selfsame_a name_n which_o be_v prefix_v to_o the_o foresay_a confession_n of_o faith_n concern_v the_o incarnation_n and_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n direct_v to_o petrus_n diaconus_fw-la and_o his_o brethren_n who_o be_v come_v from_o the_o eastern_a church_n to_o receive_v information_n concern_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o westorn_a church_n we_o will_v here_o cite_v one_o short_a passage_n out_o of_o the_o synodical_a epistle_n of_o those_o twelve_o banish_a pastor_n of_o christ_n church_n it_o be_v in_o the_o 10_o chapter_n quod_fw-la autem_fw-la vos_fw-la dicitis_fw-la etc._n etc._n as_o to_o what_o you_o who_o write_v to_o we_o say_v that_o man_n be_v save_v by_o the_o alone_a mercy_n of_o god_n but_o they_o say_v unless_o a_o man_n run_v and_o labour_n with_o his_o own_o will_n he_o can_v be_v save_v we_o answer_v that_o both_o be_v fit_o hold_v if_o the_o right_a order_n be_v keep_v between_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o will_v of_o man_n that_o mercy_n go_v before_o and_o the_o will_v follow_v that_o god_n mercy_n alone_o confer_v the_o beginning_n of_o salvation_n with_o which_o afterward_o the_o will_n of_o man_n may_v cooperate_v towards_o its_o own_o salvation_n that_o god_n mercy_n prevent_v or_o go_v before_o may_v direct_v the_o course_n of_o man_n will_n and_o that_o man_n will_n obey_v through_o the_o same_o mercy_n or_o grace_n follow_v it_o may_v according_a to_o its_o intention_n run_v towards_o the_o heavenly_a prize_n here_o we_o see_v that_o it_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o those_o twelve_o confessor_n that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o the_o alone_a mercy_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n if_o through_o grace_n prevent_v and_o assist_v we_o we_o yield_v obedience_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o run_v and_o labour_n to_o obtain_v the_o prize_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n and_o that_o if_o we_o do_v not_o this_o we_o can_v be_v save_v this_o be_v what_o we_o say_v that_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v so_o indispensable_o necessary_a that_o without_o it_o we_o can_v be_v save_v it_o shall_v suffice_v at_o present_a to_o have_v demonstrate_v by_o the_o testimony_n aforesaid_a that_o we_o be_v no_o innovator_n no_o preacher_n of_o a_o new_a gospel_n and_o divinity_n in_o this_o matter_n since_o we_o have_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o the_o father_n of_o the_o best_a and_o pure_a age_n on_o our_o side_n all_z giving_z in_o testimony_n for_o we_o and_o against_o our_o author_n it_o will_v not_o consist_v with_o our_o design_a brevity_n to_o allege_v more_o testimony_n of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o therefore_o we_o pass_v from_o they_o to_o the_o modern_a divine_n the_o doctor_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n we_o begin_v with_o the_o augustan_n confession_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o edition_n we_o make_v use_v of_o be_v that_o which_o be_v print_v at_o wittenbergh_n in_o the_o year_n 1540_o in_o the_o 20_o divine_n testimony_n of_o modern_a divine_n article_n concern_v faith_n these_o be_v its_o word_n primum_fw-la igitur_fw-la de_fw-la fide_fw-la &_o justificatione_n sic_fw-la docent_fw-la christus_fw-la apt_a complexus_fw-la est_fw-la summam_fw-la evangelii_n etc._n etc._n first_o therefore_o they_o the_o protestant_n minister_n and_o church_n thus_o teach_v concern_v faith_n and_o justification_n christ_n have_v fit_o comprehend_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n when_o in_o the_o last_o chapter_n of_o luke_n he_o command_v repentance_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n to_o be_v preach_v in_o his_o name_n for_o the_o gospel_n reprove_v sin_n and_o require_v repentance_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n offer_v remission_n of_o sin_n free_o for_o christ_n sake_n and_o not_o for_o our_o own_o worthiness_n and_o as_o the_o preach_n of_o repentance_n be_v universal_a so_o also_o the_o promise_n of_o grace_n be_v universal_a and_o command_v all_o to_o believe_v and_o receive_v the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n as_o christ_n say_v come_v unto_o i_o all_o you_o that_o be_v heavy_a lade_v and_o paul_n say_v he_o be_v rich_a unto_o all_o that_o call_v upon_o he_o therefore_o though_o some_o contrition_n and_o repentance_n be_v necessary_a yet_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v give_v unto_o we_o and_o that_o of_o unjust_a we_o be_v make_v just_a that_o be_v reconcile_v or_o accept_v and_o make_v the_o child_n of_o god_n free_o for_o christ_n sake_n and_o not_o for_o the_o worth_n or_o merit_n of_o contrition_n or_o of_o other_o work_n that_o go_v before_o or_o follow_v after_o but_o this_o benefit_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v by_o faith_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o when_o we_o say_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n we_o do_v not_o understand_v this_o that_o we_o be_v just_a for_o the_o dignity_n worth_n or_o merit_n of_o the_o virtue_n of_o faith_n itself_o but_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n that_o we_o obtain_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o imputation_n of_o righteousness_n through_o mercy_n for_o christ_n sake_n but_o this_o mercy_n can_v be_v receive_v but_o by_o faith_n and_o here_o faith_n signify_v not_o mere_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n but_o it_o signify_v to_o believe_v the_o promise_n of_o mercy_n which_o we_o obtain_v for_o christ_n the_o mediator_n for_o what_o can_v be_v more_o acceptable_a to_o a_o afflict_a tremble_a conscience_n in_o its_o true_a
do_v justify_v we_o and_o deserve_v our_o justification_n unto_o we_o for_o that_o be_v to_o count_v ourselves_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o some_o act_n or_o virtue_n that_o be_v within_o ourselves_o but_o the_o true_a understanding_n and_o mean_v thereof_o be_v that_o although_o we_o hear_v god_n word_n and_o believe_v it_o although_o we_o have_v faith_n hope_n charity_n repentance_n dread_a and_o fear_v of_o god_n within_o we_o and_o do_v never_o so_o many_o work_v thereunto_o yet_o we_o must_v renounce_v the_o merit_n of_o all_o our_o say_a virtue_n of_o faith_n hope_n charity_n and_o all_o other_o virtue_n and_o good_a deed_n which_o we_o either_o have_v do_v shall_v do_v or_o can_v do_v as_o thing_n that_o be_v far_o too_o weak_a and_o insufficient_a and_o imperfect_a to_o deserve_v remission_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o our_o justification_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v trust_v only_o in_o god_n mercy_n and_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o our_o high_a priest_n and_o saviour_n christ_n jesus_n the_o son_n of_o god_n once_o offer_v for_o we_o upon_o the_o cross_n to_o obtain_v thereby_o god_n grace_n and_o remission_n as_o well_o of_o our_o original_a sin_n in_o baptism_n as_o of_o all_o actual_a sin_n commit_v by_o we_o after_o our_o baptism_n if_o we_o true_o repent_v and_o turn_v unfeigned_o to_o he_o again_o and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o 16._o and_o begin_v of_o 17._o page_z you_o see_v that_o the_o very_a true_a meaning_n of_o this_o proposition_n or_o say_v we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n only_o according_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o old_a ancient_a author_n i_o be_v this_o we_o put_v our_o faith_n in_o christ_n that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o he_o only_o that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o god_n free_a mercy_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n only_o and_o by_o no_o virtue_n or_o good_a work_n of_o our_o own_o that_o be_v in_o we_o or_o that_o we_o can_v be_v able_a to_o have_v or_o to_o do_v for_o to_o deserve_v the_o same_o christ_n himself_o only_o be_v the_o cause_n meritorious_a thereof_o all_o this_o we_o most_o hearty_o approve_v of_o but_o we_o doubt_v whether_o our_o author_n will_v join_v with_o we_o in_o it_o because_o he_o say_v the_o papist_n own_v this_o that_o christ_n only_o be_v the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o if_o it_o be_v so_o 6._o lett._n pag._n 6._o then_o according_a to_o his_o reckon_n the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o we_o may_v be_v both_o papist_n in_o the_o point_n of_o justification_n notwithstanding_o that_o the_o say_a homily_n be_v write_v purposely_o against_o the_o papist_n and_o we_o have_v all_o subscribe_v to_o it_o it_o may_v be_v our_o author_n have_v so_o accustom_v himself_o to_o call_v men_n papist_n when_o ever_o he_o be_v angry_a with_o they_o that_o he_o can_v forbear_v it_o and_o therefore_o as_o he_o use_v to_o call_v the_o church_n of_o england_n man_n papist_n so_o now_o be_v angry_a with_o we_o his_o passion_n may_v have_v excite_v he_o to_o bring_v his_o habit_n into_o act_n and_o to_o rank_v we_o also_o among_o papist_n in_o the_o point_n of_o justification_n but_o we_o leave_v this_o and_o proceed_v to_o what_o be_v more_o material_a and_o that_o be_v that_o if_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o work_n because_o they_o do_v not_o nor_o can_v merit_v justification_n than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o faith_n because_o faith_n can_v no_o more_o merit_n justification_n than_o work_v this_o objection_n the_o author_n or_o author_n of_o the_o homily_n foresee_v and_o answer_v it_o by_o confess_v that_o faith_n do_v not_o justify_v we_o on_o the_o account_n of_o its_o meritorious_a nature_n but_o on_o another_o account_n their_o word_n be_v these_o as_o great_a and_o as_o godly_a a_o virtue_n as_o the_o lively_a faith_n be_v yet_o it_o put_v we_o from_o itself_o and_o remit_v or_o appoint_v we_o unto_o christ_n for_o to_o have_v only_o by_o he_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n or_o justification_n so_o that_o our_o faith_n in_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o we_o thus_o it_o be_v not_o i_o that_o take_v away_o your_o sin_n but_o it_o be_v christ_n only_o and_o to_o he_o only_o i_o send_v you_o for_o that_o purpose_n forsake_v therein_o all_o your_o good_a virtue_n word_n thought_n and_o work_n and_o only_o put_v your_o trust_n in_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o three_o part_n pag._n 17._o nevertheless_o because_o faith_n do_v direct_o send_v we_o to_o christ_n for_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o that_o by_o faith_n give_v we_o of_o god_n we_o embrace_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n mercy_n and_o of_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n which_o thing_n none_n other_o of_o our_o virtue_n or_o work_n proper_o do_v therefore_o scripture_n use_v to_o say_v that_o faith_n without_o work_n do_v justify_v thus_o far_o that_o excellent_a sermon_n and_o this_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o we_o maintain_v that_o god_n have_v choose_v faith_n above_o all_o other_o grace_n and_o virtue_n to_o be_v the_o receptive_a applicative_a condition_n or_o moral_a instrument_n and_o mean_n of_o justification_n because_o it_o have_v a_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a aptitude_n and_o fitness_n for_o that_o use_n be_v both_o of_o a_o illuminative_a and_o receptive_a nature_n and_o as_o it_o be_v of_o a_o illuminative_a nature_n it_o assure_v we_o that_o we_o can_v be_v justify_v by_o no_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n but_o that_o of_o christ_n and_o so_o it_o send_v we_o to_o he_o alone_o for_o justification_n then_o as_o it_o be_v of_o a_o receptive_a nature_n it_o embrace_v the_o promise_n and_o take_v hold_v of_o he_o and_o his_o righteousness_n as_o hold_v forth_o to_o we_o in_o the_o promise_n that_o thereby_o and_o for_o the_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n thereof_o alone_o and_o for_o no_o other_o thing_n we_o may_v be_v justify_v in_o this_o sense_n we_o hold_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n only_o and_o that_o faith_n be_v the_o only_a receptive_a applicative_a condition_n of_o justification_n yet_o this_o hinder_v not_o but_o that_o repentance_n be_v the_o dispositive_a condition_n of_o justification_n the_o homily_n say_v express_o that_o faith_n do_v not_o shut_v out_o repentance_n but_o that_o they_o be_v present_a together_o and_o that_o by_o faith_n we_o trust_v only_o in_o god_n mercy_n and_o christ_n sacrifice_n to_o obtain_v thereby_o remission_n of_o all_o sin_n original_a and_o actual_a if_o we_o true_o repent_v and_o turn_v unfeigned_o to_o he_o again_o part_v 2._o pag._n 16._o which_o word_n manifest_o show_v that_o they_o hold_v repentance_n to_o be_v a_o condition_n of_o justification_n but_o it_o can_v be_v according_a to_o the_o author_n of_o the_o homily_n either_o a_o meritorious_a condition_n for_o there_o be_v none_o such_o at_o all_o possible_a nor_o a_o receptive_a applicative_a condition_n for_o that_o be_v the_o office_n of_o faith_n only_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v a_o dispositive_a condition_n and_o then_o after_o one_o be_v justify_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o hold_v sincere_a obedience_n to_o be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o his_o continue_v in_o a_o justify_v state_n and_o obtain_v eternal_a salvation_n for_o they_o say_v in_o part_n 3._o pag._n 17._o that_n if_o after_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o make_v member_n of_o christ_n we_o care_v not_o how_o we_o live_v whether_o we_o do_v good_a or_o avoid_v evil_a work_n we_o make_v ourselves_o member_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o sure_o that_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o a_o justify_v state_n therefore_o to_o prevent_v our_o become_a member_n of_o the_o devil_n again_o sincere_a obedience_n from_o a_o principle_n of_o faith_n and_o love_n be_v indispensable_o necessary_a and_o that_o this_o be_v their_o true_a meaning_n be_v further_a evident_a from_o the_o sermon_n of_o good_a work_n part_v i._n pag._n 29._o where_o they_o quote_v and_o approve_v the_o say_n of_o chrysostom_n concern_v the_o penitent_a thief_n the_o word_n be_v this_o i_o will_v sure_o affirm_v that_o faith_n only_o save_v he_o if_o he_o have_v live_v and_o not_o regard_v faith_n and_o the_o work_v thereof_o he_o shall_v have_v lose_v his_o salvation_n again_o indeed_o this_o be_v but_o a_o supposition_n and_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o think_v that_o if_o he_o have_v live_v long_a he_o will_v not_o have_v be_v careful_a to_o lead_v a_o life_n of_o faith_n and_o holy_a obedience_n yet_o if_o the_o antecedent_n be_v suppose_v the_o consequent_a necessary_o follow_v that_o he_o will_v have_v lose_v his_o salvation_n again_o for_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o sermon_n of_o faith_n to_o they_o that_o have_v evil_a work_n 24._o second_o part_v p._n 24._o and_o lead_v their_o life_n in_o disobedience_n and_o transgression_n or_o
break_v of_o god_n commandment_n without_o repentance_n pertain_v not_o everlasting_a life_n but_o everlasting_a death_n as_o christ_n himself_o say_v they_o that_o do_v evil_a shall_v go_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n mat._n 25._o these_o passage_n do_v manifest_o show_v that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o sincere_a repentance_n be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o obtain_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n so_o sincere_a obedience_n from_o a_o principle_n of_o faith_n and_o love_n and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n meet_v for_o repentance_n be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o the_o escape_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n and_o obtain_v of_o eternal_a salvation_n let_v any_o man_n read_v and_o consider_v the_o sermon_n of_o repentance_n in_o the_o same_o book_n tom._n 2._o pag._n 324._o and_o he_o will_v see_v this_o to_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n at_o noonday_n we_o will_v quote_v one_o short_a passage_n out_o of_o it_o in_o page_n 339._o they_o say_v the_o filihiness_n of_o sin_n be_v such_o that_o as_o long_o as_o we_o do_v abide_v in_o it_o god_n can_v but_o detest_v and_o abhor_v we_o neither_o can_v there_o be_v any_o hope_n that_o we_o shall_v enter_v into_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n except_o we_o be_v first_o make_v clean_o and_o purge_v from_o it_o but_o this_o will_v never_o be_v unless_o forsake_v our_o former_a life_n we_o do_v with_o our_o whole_a heart_n return_v unto_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n and_o with_o a_o full_a purpose_n of_o amendment_n of_o life_n flee_v unto_o his_o mercy_n take_v sure_o hold_v thereupon_o through_o faith_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n this_o excellent_a passage_n show_v clear_o that_o as_o faith_n be_v the_o receptive_a applicative_a condition_n so_o true_a repentance_n be_v the_o dispositive_a condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o pardon_n and_o life_n and_o that_o the_o one_o be_v as_o necessary_a in_o its_o kind_n as_o the_o other_o be_v and_o that_o unless_o through_o grace_n we_o do_v both_o we_o be_v undo_v for_o ever_o thus_o we_o have_v show_v at_o large_a what_o be_v the_o old_a gospel_n doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n at_o the_o reformation_n and_o that_o our_o doctrine_n be_v exact_o the_o same_o therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o most_o horrid_a we_o will_v not_o say_v lie_n but_o falsehood_n that_o we_o preach_v a_o new_a gospel_n and_o that_o we_o be_v to_o be_v blame_v for_o tell_v people_n that_o they_o must_v repent_v and_o mourn_v for_o their_o know_a sin_n leave_v and_o loathe_v they_o and_o god_n will_v have_v mercy_n upon_o they_o for_o christ_n sake_n from_o whole_a society_n of_o protestant_n we_o pass_v to_o the_o testimony_n of_o individual_a pastor_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n and_o we_o begin_v with_o calvin_n who_o in_o his_o commentary_n on_o ezek._n 18.23_o say_v deus_fw-la ergo_fw-la non_fw-la ita_fw-la vult_fw-la omnes_fw-la salvos_fw-la fieri_fw-la ut_fw-la discrimen_fw-la omne_fw-la tollat_fw-la boni_fw-la &_o mali_fw-la sed_fw-la praecedit_fw-la veniam_fw-la poenitentia_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la hîc_fw-la dicitur_fw-la therefore_o god_n do_v not_o so_o will_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v as_o to_o take_v away_o all_o difference_n between_o good_a and_o evil_a but_o repentance_n go_v before_o pardon_n as_o it_o be_v here_o say_v and_o again_o on_o the_o same_o text_n we_o hold_v therefore_o that_o god_n do_v not_o will_n now_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n because_o he_o call_v all_o to_o repentance_n without_o make_v a_o difference_n and_o promise_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v ready_a to_o receive_v they_o modo_fw-la seriò_fw-la resipiscant_fw-la if_o they_o or_o on_o condition_n that_o they_o earnest_o repent_v and_o in_o his_o institution_n he_o write_v thus_o 20._o lib._n 3._o cap._n 3._o sect._n 20._o quare_fw-la ubi_fw-la remissionem_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la offer_v deus_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o which_o reason_n where_o god_n offer_v remission_n of_o sin_n he_o likewise_o use_v to_o require_v on_o our_o part_n repentance_n signify_v thereby_o that_o his_o mercy_n offer_v aught_o to_o cause_n man_n to_o repent_v do_v say_v he_o judgement_n and_o justice_n because_o salvation_n be_v come_v near_o at_o band_n isa_n 56.1_o likewise_o the_o redeemer_n shall_v come_v to_o zion_n and_o to_o they_o who_o turn_v from_o transgression_n in_o jacob_n isa_n 59.20_o again_o seek_v the_o lord_n while_o he_o may_v be_v find_v call_v upon_o he_o while_o he_o be_v near_o let_v the_o wicked_a forsake_v his_o way_n and_o the_o unrighteousness_n of_o his_o thought_n and_o let_v he_o return_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n upon_o he_o isa_n 55.6_o 7._o again_o be_v convert_v and_o repent_v that_o your_o sin_n may_v be_v blot_v out_o act_n 3.19_o where_o yet_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o this_o condition_n to_o wit_n of_o repentance_n be_v not_o so_o annex_v to_o those_o promise_n as_o if_o our_o repentance_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o merit_v our_o pardon_n but_o rather_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v determine_v to_o show_v mercy_n unto_o man_n for_o this_o end_n that_o they_o may_v repent_v he_o show_v they_o whither_o they_o be_v to_o go_v to_o wit_n unto_o god_n by_o repentance_n if_o they_o will_v obtain_v favour_n in_o these_o passage_n we_o observe_v 1._o that_o calvin_n say_v express_o that_o repentance_n be_v a_o condition_n annex_v to_o the_o promise_n of_o pardon_n 2._o that_o the_o performance_n of_o that_o condition_n go_v before_o pardon_n and_o 3._o that_o therefore_o we_o be_v to_o repent_v and_o so_o perform_v the_o condition_n that_o we_o may_v obtain_v the_o grace_n of_o pardon_n 4._o that_o in_o calvin_n judgement_n repentance_n be_v a_o condition_n of_o justification_n and_o that_o because_o calvin_n believe_v justification_n and_o pardon_n of_o sin_n to_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n as_o be_v most_o evident_a from_o what_o he_o write_v against_o osiander_n instit_fw-la 3d._a book_n cap._n 11._o sect._n 4.11_o 21_o 22._o 5._o that_o in_o calvin_n judgement_n repentance_n be_v the_o dispositive_a condition_n of_o justification_n for_o it_o must_v be_v either_o the_o receptive_a or_o dispositive_a condition_n but_o it_o can_v be_v the_o receptive_a condition_n for_o in_o calvin_n judgement_n faith_n be_v the_o only_a receptive_a condition_n therefore_o it_o must_v be_v the_o dispositive_a condition_n and_o indeed_o calvin_n so_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v for_o in_o his_o three_o book_n of_o institution_n chap._n 3._o sect._n 18._o he_o say_v privatim_fw-la deo_fw-la confiteri_fw-la pars_fw-la est_fw-la verae_fw-la poenitentiae_fw-la quae_fw-la omitti_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la nihil_fw-la enim_fw-la minus_fw-la consentaneum_fw-la quam_fw-la ut_fw-la peccata_fw-la ignoscat_fw-la deus_fw-la in_fw-la quibus_fw-la nobis_fw-la ipsi_fw-la blandimur_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o confess_v our_o sin_n in_o secret_a to_o god_n be_v a_o part_n of_o true_a repentance_n which_o can_v be_v omit_v for_o nothing_o be_v less_o become_v or_o suitable_a than_o that_o god_n shall_v forgive_v we_o those_o sin_n in_o which_o we_o flatter_v or_o please_v ourselves_o on_o the_o contrary_a calvin_n write_v against_o pighius_fw-la say_v tamen_fw-la contra_fw-la pigh_n de_fw-fr lib._n arb_n lib._n 5._o sect._n adducit_fw-la tamen_fw-la sanè_fw-la humiles_fw-la deus_fw-la respicit_fw-la sicut_fw-la illi_fw-la acceptum_fw-la cordis_fw-la contriti_fw-la &_o afflicti_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la david_n canit_fw-la indeed_o god_n have_v regard_n unto_o the_o humble_a as_o david_n sing_v in_o his_o psalm_n that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o a_o contrite_a and_o afflict_a heart_n be_v acceptable_a and_o please_a unto_o he_o these_o passage_n show_v that_o in_o calvin_n judgement_n a_o impenitent_a sinner_n be_v by_o reason_n of_o his_o impenitence_n unfit_a for_o pardon_n but_o that_o the_o true_a penitent_n by_o his_o humiliation_n and_o brokenness_n of_o heart_n be_v dispose_v and_o fit_v for_o pardon_n so_o that_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o perfection_n of_o god_n nature_n to_o accept_v such_o a_o person_n in_o christ_n and_o to_o pardon_v his_o sin_n for_o christ_n sake_n and_o as_o calvin_n hold_v faith_n and_o repentance_n to_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o our_o justification_n so_o do_v he_o hold_v sincere_a obedience_n from_o a_o principle_n of_o faith_n and_o love_n to_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o our_o not_o fall_v from_o a_o justify_v state_n and_o of_o our_o obtain_v the_o possession_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v in_o his_o institution_n quoties_fw-la ergo_fw-la audimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n therefore_o as_o often_o as_o we_o hear_v 6._o lib._n 3._o cap._n 17._o sect._n 6._o that_o god_n bestow_v his_o benefit_n on_o they_o who_o keep_v his_o law_n we_o be_v to_o remember_v that_o god_n child_n be_v there_o design_v or_o describe_v by_o the_o duty_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v continual_o exercise_v in_o that_o we_o be_v for_o this_o reason_n adopt_v that_o we_o shall_v reverence_v and_o honour_v he_o for_o
be_v by_o obedience_n moreover_o when_o we_o say_v that_o justification_n be_v retain_v by_o work_n that_o be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v take_v as_o if_o it_o be_v do_v for_o the_o dignity_n or_o merit_n of_o our_o action_n but_o only_o for_o the_o redeemer_n sake_n for_o who_o sake_n the_o person_n be_v first_o accept_v and_o then_o the_o action_n also_o please_v god_n which_o otherwise_o of_o themselves_o will_v be_v impure_a and_o of_o no_o account_n but_o say_v they_o the_o perseverance_n or_o continuance_n of_o justification_n be_v lose_v by_o wicked_a work_n but_o we_o say_v evil_a work_n be_v two_o way_n to_o be_v consider_v in_o we_o either_o as_o they_o cleave_v to_o we_o or_o remain_v in_o we_o as_o in_o all_o the_o saint_n through_o infirmity_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o we_o by_o and_o by_o rise_v again_o by_o repentance_n and_o faith_n and_o such_o sin_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v shall_v not_o have_v dominion_n over_o we_o or_o again_o they_o may_v be_v consider_v as_o against_o our_o conscience_n we_o willing_o give_v up_o ourselves_o to_o sin_n that_o we_o may_v serve_v it_o with_o evil_a delight_n but_o this_o sort_n of_o sin_n can_v no_o wise_n consist_v with_o this_o faith_n of_o which_o paul_n speak_v which_o have_v place_n in_o none_o but_o in_o those_o who_o be_v turn_v from_o sin_n be_v convert_v unto_o god_n and_o in_o the_o same_o book_n pag._n 374._o love_n be_v necessary_a and_o it_o please_v god_n to_o wit_n in_o those_o who_o be_v reconcile_v and_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n for_o god_n natural_o rejoice_v in_o the_o obedience_n of_o those_o that_o be_v he_o which_o though_o it_o be_v imperfect_a yet_o endeavour_v such_o as_o they_o be_v he_o approve_v in_o those_o who_o he_o have_v reconcile_v to_o himself_o in_o christ_n so_o then_o faith_n that_o be_v christ_n apprehend_v by_o faith_n justify_v we_o free_o but_o we_o again_o ought_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o receive_v that_o grace_n in_o vain_a but_o he_o receive_v it_o in_o vain_a whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o do_v not_o yield_v himself_o obedient_a to_o the_o command_n and_o example_n of_o christ_n thus_o far_o mr._n fox_n where_o we_o see_v he_o plain_o grant_v that_o sincere_a obedience_n after_o we_o be_v justify_v be_v necessary_a that_o we_o may_v not_o lose_v the_o grace_n of_o justification_n and_o this_o be_v no_o more_o but_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o prevent_v our_o fall_n wilful_o under_o the_o guilt_n of_o new_a sin_n of_o omission_n and_o commission_n which_o without_o renew_v our_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o return_v to_o god_n and_o our_o obedience_n to_o he_o again_o will_v certain_o damn_v we_o and_o sink_v we_o into_o hell_n we_o mean_v no_o more_o by_o it_o and_o we_o believe_v that_o god_n for_o christ_n sake_n will_v keep_v all_o his_o justify_v once_o from_o so_o fall_v away_o but_o withal_o we_o hold_v that_o god_n keep_v we_o in_o a_o justify_v state_n partly_o by_o fear_n of_o fall_v into_o sin_n and_o partly_o by_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o indispensable_a necessity_n of_o obedience_n and_o repentance_n as_o mean_n to_o be_v use_v on_o our_o part_n to_o keep_v we_o from_o fall_v away_o the_o lord_n put_v his_o fear_n in_o our_o heart_n that_o we_o may_v not_o depart_v from_o he_o and_o he_o keep_v we_o by_o his_o power_n through_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n from_o fox_n we_o pass_v to_o rollock_n another_o good_a man_n unto_o who_o a_o famous_a and_o learned_a episcopal_a divine_a dr._n robert_n baron_n have_v give_v this_o testimony_n that_o he_o be_v sanctissimus_fw-la &_o doctissimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n a_o most_o holy_a and_o learned_a man_n and_o that_o the_o character_n of_o moses_n may_v be_v true_o attribute_v to_o he_o that_o he_o be_v very_o meek_a above_o all_o the_o man_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n this_o meek_a saint_n write_v a_o book_n of_o effectual_a call_v at_o edinburgh_n in_o the_o year_n 1597._o just_a about_o a_o hundred_o year_n ago_o in_o which_o he_o affirm_v positive_o that_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v conditional_a and_o that_o both_o faith_n and_o repentance_n go_v before_o justification_n in_o the_o first_o page_n of_o his_o book_n he_o say_v vocati_fw-la eâdem_fw-la dei_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la respondent_fw-la creduntque_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la per_fw-la jesunt_fw-la christum_fw-la responsio_fw-la haec_fw-la side_n est_fw-la quae_fw-la reipsâ_fw-la est_fw-la conditio_fw-la promissionis_fw-la 1618._o tract_n de_fw-fr vocat_fw-la efficaci_fw-la edit_fw-la herborn_n 1618._o etc._n etc._n they_o who_o be_v call_v effectual_o by_o the_o same_o grace_n whereby_o they_o be_v call_v answer_v the_o call_n and_o believe_v in_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n this_o answer_n be_v the_o act_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o very_a condition_n of_o the_o promise_n that_o be_v in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n wherefore_o effectual_a call_v consist_v in_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o covenant_n which_o be_v make_v on_o condition_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o faith_n quae_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la est_fw-la quàm_fw-la impletio_fw-la conditionis_fw-la which_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o condition_n and_o in_o the_o 24_o chapter_n pap_n 258._o he_o say_v resipiscontia_n justificationem_fw-la antecedit_fw-la etc._n etc._n repentance_n go_v before_o justification_n after_o the_o manner_n that_o faith_n and_o hope_n go_v before_o it_o for_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o baptist_n that_o he_o preach_v the_o baptism_n of_o repentance_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n mark_v 1.4_o and_o luke_n 3.3_o and_o if_o any_o will_v know_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o that_o repentance_n which_o he_o say_v go_v before_o justification_n after_o he_o have_v full_o and_o clear_o explain_v the_o nature_n of_o it_o in_o all_o its_o part_n and_o show_v it_o to_o be_v a_o evangelical_n repentance_n and_o distinguish_v it_o from_o that_o which_o be_v call_v legal_a he_o tell_v we_o in_o page_n 257._o what_o he_o mean_v by_o give_v a_o short_a but_o comprehensive_a definition_n of_o it_o thus_o resipiscentia_fw-la est_fw-la post_fw-la functum_fw-la &_o malum_fw-la jam_fw-la perpetratum_fw-la dolour_n propter_fw-la offensum_fw-la dèum_fw-la &_o ex_fw-la dolwe_n mutatio_fw-la quaedam_fw-la totius_fw-la animi_fw-la à_fw-la malo_fw-la in_o bonum_fw-la repentance_n be_v a_o grief_n or_o sorrow_n after_o the_o fact_n be_v do_v and_o the_o sin_n be_v commit_v for_o have_v thereby_o offend_v god_n and_o a_o change_n of_o the_o whole_a soul_n from_o evil_a to_o good_a arise_v from_o that_o grief_n or_o sorrow_n this_o be_v the_o repentance_n which_o rollock_n say_v go_v before_o justification_n and_o it_o be_v remarkable_a that_o he_o make_v a_o change_n of_o the_o whole_a soul_n from_o evil_a to_o good_a to_o be_v essential_a unto_o this_o repentance_n and_o consequent_o that_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n before_o justification_n there_o be_v a_o real_a change_n of_o the_o whole_a soul_n from_o evil_a to_o good_n this_o doctrine_n be_v preach_v and_o write_v at_o edinburgh_n a_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o then_o it_o be_v account_v good_a divinity_n and_o old_a gospel_n and_o the_o preacher_n of_o it_o be_v esteem_v and_o that_o deserve_o a_o great_a saint_n and_o a_o man_n of_o learning_n and_o judgement_n both_o at_o home_n and_o abroad_o how_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o be_v new_a divinity_n and_o a_o new_a gospel_n or_o part_n of_o a_o new_a gospel_n now_o be_v to_o we_o a_o mystery_n for_o sure_a it_o be_v a_o hundred_o year_n old_a now_o than_o it_o be_v then_o any_o body_n therefore_o may_v think_v in_o all_o reason_n that_o our_o author_n come_v too_o late_o to_o give_v it_o a_o new_a name_n there_o must_v be_v some_o mystery_n in_o this_o business_n whatever_o it_o be_v we_o with_o it_o be_v not_o a_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n from_o rollock_n we_o pass_v to_o zanchy_a because_o he_o live_v in_o those_o time_n and_o be_v one_o of_o those_o divine_n who_o our_o author_n will_v make_v the_o people_n believe_v to_o be_v for_o he_o and_o against_o we_o and_o that_o because_o he_o be_v against_o we_o therefore_o we_o be_v against_o he_o 27._o lett._n p._n 27._o and_o general_o neglect_v and_o despise_v he_o but_o what_o if_o after_o all_o this_o zanchy_a be_v clear_o for_o we_o in_o this_o matter_n than_o it_o be_v to_o be_v hope_v that_o people_n nor_o our_o author_n himself_o will_v not_o easy_o believe_v that_o we_o not_o only_o neglect_v but_o despise_v our_o good_a friend_n and_o that_o he_o be_v such_o we_o be_v content_a that_o his_o own_o word_n shall_v judge_v between_o we_o credimus_fw-la ad_fw-la veram_fw-la justitiae_fw-la christi_fw-la participationem_fw-la 1._o zanch._n de_fw-fr relig._n cap._n 18._o thes_n 1._o coque_fw-la ad_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cum_fw-la christo_fw-la necessariam_fw-la esse_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o believe_v that_o repentance_n be_v
neglect_n of_o faith_n and_o obedience_n can_v be_v culpable_a if_o they_o be_v not_o require_v 3._o because_o otherwise_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o in_o this_o covenant_n god_n be_v bind_v to_o man_n but_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o god_n which_o be_v most_o absurd_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o all_o covenant_n wherein_o there_o be_v a_o mutual_a agreement_n and_o reciprocal_a obligation_n whereby_o the_o party_n covenant_v be_v bind_v to_o one_o another_o afterward_o in_o page_n 204._o he_o come_v to_o answer_v the_o second_o branch_n of_o the_o question_n to_o wit_n which_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o say_v that_o as_o for_o faith_n there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o it_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n because_o the_o scripture_n so_o clear_o affirm_v it_o so_o to_o be_v joh._n 3.16_o rom._n 1.16_o 17._o and_o 10.9_o and_o he_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n as_o it_o have_v respect_n unto_o and_o be_v the_o instrumental_a mean_n of_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n yea_o he_o maintain_v as_o we_o do_v that_o in_o this_o sense_n faith_n be_v the_o only_a condition_n because_o there_o be_v no_o other_o condition_n that_o be_v of_o a_o receptive_a applicative_a nature_n as_o faith_n be_v no_o other_o that_o receive_v christ_n and_o apply_v his_o righteousness_n as_o faith_n do_v but_o in_o another_o sense_n there_o be_v other_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n beside_o faith_n that_o be_v if_o the_o word_n condition_n be_v take_v for_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o a_o man_n by_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v bind_v to_o do_v than_o nothing_o hinder_v but_o repentance_n and_o new_a obedience_n may_v be_v call_v a_o condition_n because_o they_o be_v comprehend_v among_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o covenant_n john_n 13.17_o 2_o cor._n 5.17_o rom._n 8.13_o moreover_o he_o hold_v that_o though_o new_a obedience_n be_v not_o the_o primary_n antecedent_n yet_o it_o be_v the_o secondary_a subsequent_a condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n because_o be_v by_o faith_n the_o primary_n condition_n actual_o bring_v into_o covenant_n now_o obedience_n be_v medium_n &_o via_fw-la per_fw-la quam_fw-la tendimus_fw-la ad_fw-la plenam_fw-la possessionem_fw-la bonorum_fw-la foederis_fw-la the_o mean_n and_o way_n by_o which_o we_o come_v to_o the_o full_a possession_n of_o the_o good_a thing_n of_o the_o covenant_n he_o say_v we_o shall_v distinguish_v between_o the_o condition_n of_o justification_n and_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n the_o promise_n of_o justification_n be_v not_o the_o whole_a of_o the_o covenant_n and_o therefore_o that_o which_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o justification_n be_v not_o the_o whole_a condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n which_o adequate_o consider_v be_v of_o large_a extent_n than_o the_o promise_n of_o justification_n he_o tell_v we_o last_o that_o we_o shall_v distinguish_v between_o the_o first_o accept_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o the_o after-keeping_a of_o the_o covenant_n faith_n accept_v the_o covenant_n by_o receive_v the_o promise_n obedience_n keep_v the_o covenant_n by_o fulfil_v the_o command_n be_v you_o holy_a for_o i_o be_o holy_a and_o yet_o this_o obedience_n be_v not_o legal_a but_o evangelical_n because_o it_o be_v not_o meritorious_a it_o be_v the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o a_o antecedent_n principle_n of_o spiritual_a life_n wrought_v in_o we_o and_o of_o the_o actual_a influence_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n upon_o we_o and_o it_o be_v not_o rigorous_o exact_v in_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o perfection_n as_o indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o though_o it_o be_v imperfect_a yet_o it_o be_v admit_v and_o accept_v through_o christ_n if_o it_o be_v sincere_a we_o have_v here_o give_v a_o true_a and_o faithful_a account_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o learned_a and_o judicious_a turretin_n concern_v the_o conditionality_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n with_o who_o we_o agree_v in_o this_o matter_n which_o contain_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o to_o man_n duty_n especial_o and_o therefore_o if_o turretin_n be_v no_o legal_a preacher_n no_o more_o be_v we_o and_o if_o he_o preach_v no_o new_a gospel_n no_o more_o do_v we_o for_o we_o preach_v the_o same_o gospel_n and_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o he_o do_v there_o be_v one_o thing_n more_o wherein_o this_o worthy_a divine_a and_o we_o do_v perfect_o agree_v and_o that_o be_v concern_v true_a believer_n fall_v into_o wilful_a sin_n against_o knowledge_n and_o conscience_n we_o say_v they_o can_v be_v save_v till_o they_o have_v first_o recover_v themselves_o through_o grace_n by_o renew_v their_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o return_v to_o their_o obedience_n again_o now_o he_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n witness_v what_o he_o write_v in_o the_o same_o book_n pag._n 671_o 672._o where_o he_o say_v that_o if_o a_o believer_n fall_v into_o gross_a sin_n against_o his_o conscience_n be_v consider_v in_o himself_o and_o as_o guilty_a of_o such_o sin_n not_o repent_v of_o verum_fw-la est_fw-la reum_fw-la esse_fw-la mortis_fw-la &_o si_fw-mi in_o eo_fw-la statu_fw-la moreretur_fw-la certo_fw-la damnandum_fw-la it_o be_v true_a that_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o death_n and_o if_o he_o die_v in_o that_o state_n he_o will_v be_v certain_o damn_v but_o if_o he_o be_v consider_v with_o respect_n to_o god_n decree_n of_o election_n he_o be_v right_o say_v to_o be_v one_o who_o be_v to_o be_v absolve_v or_o pardon_v and_o save_v god_n so_o order_v the_o matter_n by_o his_o immense_a love_n and_o wisdom_n that_o he_o never_o die_v in_o that_o state_n but_o by_o a_o renew_a act_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n he_o be_v first_o restore_v and_o return_n into_o the_o way_n before_o he_o come_v to_o the_o end_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o according_a to_o a_o twofold_a respect_n these_o two_o proposition_n although_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v contrary_a may_v be_v both_o together_o true_a it_o be_v impossible_a that_o david_n a_o person_n elect_v and_o a_o man_n according_a to_o god_n own_o heart_n shall_v perish_v it_o be_v impossible_a that_o david_n a_o adulterer_n and_o murderer_n if_o death_n seize_v on_o he_o before_o he_o have_v repent_v shall_v be_v save_v the_o first_o of_o these_o proposition_n be_v true_a in_o respect_n of_o god_n decree_n of_o election_n the_o second_o be_v true_a also_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o heinousness_n and_o demerit_n of_o david_n be_v sin_n but_o god_n providence_n and_o grace_n lose_v this_o knot_n by_o take_v care_n that_o neither_o david_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o elect_n die_v in_o that_o state_n in_o which_o for_o his_o impenitence_n he_o shall_v be_v exclude_v from_o salvation_n this_o passage_n show_v that_o turretin_n believe_v as_o we_o do_v that_o after_o justification_n sincere_a obedience_n be_v so_o indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o unless_o a_o believer_n continue_v in_o the_o practice_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n or_o if_o there_o happen_v to_o be_v any_o signal_n intermistion_n by_o gross_a wilful_a sin_n for_o a_o time_n unless_o he_o renew_v his_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o thereby_o return_v to_o his_o obedience_n he_o can_v be_v save_v and_o turretin_n a_o little_a before_o in_o page_n 669._o say_v very_o judicious_o that_o though_o god_n have_v promise_v perseverance_n to_o believer_n yet_o have_v he_o not_o promise_v it_o to_o be_v give_v absolute_o and_o without_o mean_n but_o by_o mean_n to_o be_v use_v by_o man_n himself_o so_o that_o whilst_o god_n keep_v man_n he_o be_v bind_v also_o to_o keep_v himself_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n 1_o john_n 5.18_o whence_o believer_n be_v sure_a of_o their_o perseverance_n through_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o promise_n not_o by_o any_o external_a force_n which_o retain_v they_o in_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n will_v they_o will_v they_o yea_o even_o whilst_o they_o be_v live_v in_o their_o sin_n but_o in_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n and_o practice_n of_o piety_n whilst_o work_v out_o their_o own_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a they_o be_v confident_a that_o it_o be_v god_n who_o work_v in_o they_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v and_o who_o gracious_o perfect_v the_o good_a work_n which_o he_o have_v begin_v so_o that_o a_o occasion_n of_o licentiousness_n and_o impiety_n be_v wrongful_o infer_v from_o this_o doctrine_n since_o to_o indulge_v wickedness_n and_o to_o have_v the_o grace_n which_o cause_v perseverance_n be_v utter_o inconsistent_a yea_o he_o that_o have_v this_o hope_n purify_v himself_o 1_o john_n 3.3_o and_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v certain_o persuade_v in_o himself_o that_o without_o holiness_n no_o man_n shall_v see_v god_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n to_o life_n but_o the_o way_n of_o piety_n and_o godliness_n a_o most_o excellent_a passage_n this_o be_v which_o
between_o he_o and_o those_o who_o do_v not_o love_v to_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o instrumental_a cause_n be_v more_o verbal_a than_o real_a for_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v the_o instrumental_a cause_n of_o our_o justification_n that_o indeed_o have_v be_v to_o ascribe_v too_o much_o unto_o faith_n but_o the_o instrumental_a cause_n receive_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n upon_o which_o follow_v justification_n now_o we_o all_o acknowledge_v faith_n to_o be_v of_o a_o apprehensive_a receptive_a nature_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o instrumental_a mean_n whereby_o we_o apprehend_v and_o receive_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v and_o our_o use_v that_o instrumental_a mean_n as_o the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v be_v the_o receptive_a condition_n to_o which_o the_o promise_n of_o justification_n be_v make_v here_o then_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o mere_a difference_n in_o word_n when_o we_o mean_v the_o same_o thing_n last_o for_o sincere_a obedience_n he_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v in_o some_o sense_n a_o cause_n of_o obtain_v eternal_a life_n which_o be_v more_o than_o we_o have_v ascribe_v to_o it_o in_o call_v it_o a_o condition_n for_o a_o condition_n as_o such_o have_v no_o causal_n influence_n 199._o ibid._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 1._o pag._n 199._o his_o own_o word_n in_o the_o say_a book_n be_v these_o our_o obedience_n indeed_o be_v not_o the_o principal_a or_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o eternal_a life_n for_o we_o receive_v the_o right_n of_o this_o life_n and_o the_o life_n also_o itself_o from_o the_o grace_n and_o gift_n of_o god_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n apprehend_v by_o faith_n rom_n 6.23_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v eternal_a life_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v a_o cause_n some_o way_n administer_a help_a and_o move_v forward_o towards_o the_o possession_n of_o this_o life_n whereof_o we_o have_v the_o right_a before_o for_o which_o reason_n it_o be_v call_v the_o way_n in_o which_o we_o walk_v to_o heaven_n eph._n 2.10_o and_o it_o promote_v our_o life_n both_o of_o its_o own_o nature_n because_o it_o be_v some_o degree_n of_o life_n itself_o still_o tend_v to_o perfection_n and_o also_o by_o virtue_n of_o god_n promise_n who_o have_v promise_v eternal_a life_n to_o those_o who_o walk_v in_o his_o commandment_n gal._n 6.8_o he_o that_o sow_v to_o the_o spirit_n shall_v of_o the_o spirit_n reap_v life_n everlasting_a for_o though_o all_o our_o obedience_n while_o we_o live_v here_o be_v imperfect_a and_o contaminate_v with_o some_o mixture_n of_o sin_n gal._n 5.17_o the_o flesh_n lust_n against_o the_o spirit_n yet_o through_o christ_n it_o be_v so_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n that_o it_o be_v crown_v with_o a_o most_o great_a reward_n the_o promise_v therefore_o make_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v not_o legal_a but_o evangelical_n although_o by_o some_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o a_o mix_a nature_n in_o all_o this_o ames_n ascribe_v as_o much_o to_o sincere_a obedience_n and_o make_v it_o as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o we_o do_v if_o we_o say_v it_o be_v a_o condition_n he_o say_v it_o be_v in_o some_o sort_n a_o cause_n of_o obtain_v the_o poffession_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o sure_o to_o be_v so_o a_o cause_n be_v as_o much_o at_o least_o as_o to_o be_v a_o condition_n next_o let_v we_o see_v what_o dr._n twiss_n faith_n to_o these_o thing_n indeed_o he_o be_v so_o clear_o on_o our_o side_n that_o if_o the_o author_n of_o the_o letter_n have_v be_v acquaint_v with_o his_o write_n he_o will_v have_v be_v wise_a than_o to_o have_v mention_v his_o name_n in_o this_o cause_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v we_o say_v that_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o salvation_n of_o soul_n be_v benefit_n purchase_v by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v enjoy_v by_o man_n but_o how_o 16._o answer_v to_o a_o book_n call_v the_o synod_n of_o dort_n and_o arles_n reduce_v to_o practice_n pag._n 16._o not_o absolute_o but_o conditional_o to_o wit_n in_o case_n and_o only_o in_o case_n they_o believe_v for_o like_a as_o god_n do_v not_o confer_v these_o on_o any_o of_o ripe_a year_n unless_o they_o believe_v so_o christ_n have_v not_o merit_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v confer_v on_o any_o but_o such_o as_o believe_v and_o according_o profess_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o all_o that_o be_v to_o obtain_v pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o salvation_n of_o soul_n for_o all_o but_o how_o not_o absolute_o whether_o they_o believe_v or_o no_o but_o only_o conditional_o to_o wit_n provide_v they_o do_v believe_v in_o christ_n again_o man_n be_v call_v upon_o to_o believe_v and_o promise_v 28._o ibid._n pag._n 28._o that_o upon_o their_o faith_n they_o shall_v obtain_v the_o grace_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o salvation_n and_o these_o grace_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v offer_v unto_o all_o upon_o condition_n of_o faith_n again_o as_o touch_v the_o benefit_n of_o pardon_n of_o sin_n 152._o ibid._n page_n 152._o and_o salvation_n procure_v by_o christ_n death_n we_o say_v that_o christ_n die_v to_o procure_v these_o for_o all_o and_o every_o one_o but_o how_o not_o absolute_o for_o then_o all_o and_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v save_v but_o conditional_o to_o wit_n upon_o condition_n of_o faith_n so_o that_o if_o all_o and_o every_o one_o shall_v believe_v in_o christ_n all_o and_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v save_v again_o it_o be_v untrue_a that_o we_o must_v have_v a_o sufficient_a assurance_n 154._o ibid._n pag._n 154._o that_o christ_n die_v to_o procure_v pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o salvation_n of_o soul_n absolute_o for_o he_o who_o we_o go_v about_o to_o comfort_n it_o be_v enough_o that_o christ_n die_v to_o procure_v these_o benefit_n for_o he_o conditional_o to_o wit_n in_o case_n he_o believe_v and_o repent_v and_o of_o this_o we_o have_v a_o most_o sufficient_a assurance_n again_o we_o say_v not_o here_o that_o any_o thing_n become_v true_a 163._o ibid._n pag._n 163._o by_o the_o faith_n of_o he_o that_o believe_v it_o but_o only_o this_o that_o the_o benefit_n which_o be_v procure_v for_o all_o and_o every_o one_o upon_o a_o condition_n become_v he_o and_o peculiarly_a his_o alone_a who_o perform_v the_o condition_n again_o now_o eternal_a life_n we_o know_v 171._o ibid._n pag._n 171._o be_v ordain_v by_o god_n to_o be_v the_o portion_n of_o man_n not_o whether_o they_o believe_v or_o not_o whether_o they_o persevere_v in_o faith_n holiness_n and_o repentance_n or_o no_o but_o only_o of_o such_o as_o believe_v repent_v and_o be_v studious_a of_o good_a work_n for_o it_o be_v ordain_v to_o be_v bestow_v on_o man_n by_o way_n of_o reward_n of_o their_o faith_n repentance_n and_o good_a work_n again_o the_o promise_v assure_v by_o baptism_n 189._o ibid._n pag._n 189._o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n i_o find_v to_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n some_o be_v of_o benefit_n procure_v unto_o we_o by_o christ_n which_o be_v to_o be_v confer_v on_o we_o conditional_o they_o of_o this_o first_o sort_n be_v justification_n and_o salvation_n for_o abraham_n receive_v circumcision_n as_o a_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n circumcision_n therefore_o be_v a_o assurance_n of_o justification_n to_o be_v have_v by_o faith_n if_o such_o be_v circumcision_n to_o the_o jew_n we_o have_v good_a reason_n to_o conceive_v that_o such_o be_v baptism_n unto_o we_o christian_n for_o as_o that_o be_v unto_o they_o so_o this_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o regeneration_n unto_o we_o and_o good_a reason_n the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n shall_v assure_v that_o unto_o we_o which_o the_o word_n of_o the_o covenant_n do_v make_v promise_n of_o now_o the_o word_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n do_v promise_n unto_o we_o both_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o salvation_n upon_o faith_n in_o christ_n this_o by_o our_o doctrine_n we_o promise_v unto_o all_o and_o assure_v unto_o all_o as_o well_o as_o they_o do_v by_o they_o if_o all_o and_o every_o one_o shall_v believe_v we_o nothing_o doubt_n but_o they_o shall_v be_v justify_v and_o save_v on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o not_o one_o of_o ripe_a year_n shall_v believe_v i_o presume_v our_o adversary_n will_v confess_v that_o not_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v again_o justification_n and_o salvation_n be_v promise_v in_o the_o word_n 190._o ibid._n pag._n 190._o and_o assure_v in_o the_o sacrament_n upon_o performance_n of_o a_o condition_n on_o man_n part_n now_o the_o condition_n of_o justification_n and_o salvation_n we_o all_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v faith_n thus_o dr._n twiss_n frequent_o in_o the_o foresay_a book_n and_o that_o this_o be_v his_o settle_a judgement_n will_v appear_v by_o what_o he_o write_v afterward_o in_o the_o year_n
thereunto_o the_o discipline_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n be_v as_o cord_n and_o bond_n unto_o they_o they_o desire_v to_o break_v they_o and_o to_o cast_v off_o the_o yoke_n of_o obedience_n unto_o he_o and_o again_o it_o be_v as_o true_a that_o 〈◊〉_d man_n be_v damn_v for_o not_o add_v the_o efficacy_n of_o god_n spirit_n unto_o his_o word_n they_o be_v damn_v for_o contemn_v god●s_v word_n and_o not_o harken_v to_o his_o gracious_a admonition_n but_o they_o can_v do_v no_o other_o as_o this_o arminian_n author_n intimate_v but_o what_o impotency_n be_v this_o be_v it_o any_o where_o else_o than_o in_o their_o will_n which_o this_o author_n consider_v not_o nor_o distinguish_v between_o impotency_n natural_a and_o impotency_n moral_a be_v they_o willing_a to_o hearken_v hereunto_o but_o can_v not_o then_o in●●gd_v their_o impotency_n be_v excusabl●_n but_o they_o please_v themselves_o in_o their_o obstinate_a course_n and_o if_o they_o will_v do_v otherwise_o i_o make_v no_o question_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o more_o cause_n to_o complain_v of_o their_o impotency_n to_o do_v that_o good_a which_o they_o will_v do_v than_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n have_v yea_o and_o holy_a paul_n himself_o have_v how_o can_v you_o believe_v say_v our_o saviour_n john_n 5.44_o here_o be_v a_o certain_a impotency_n of_o believe_v which_o our_o saviour_n take_v notice_n of_o but_o what_o manner_n of_o impotency_n be_v it_o observe_v by_o that_o which_o follow_v who_o receive_v honour_n one_o of_o another_o and_o regard_v not_o the_o honour_n which_o come_v of_o god_n only_o therefore_o you_o hear_v not_o my_o word_n because_o you_o be_v not_o of_o god_n john_n 8.47_o this_o be_v as_o true_a as_o the_o word_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v true_a although_o this_o author_n set_v himself_o to_o impugn_v this_o kind_n of_o doctrine_n all_o along_o but_o withal_o consider_v do_v they_o deplore_v this_o impotency_n do_v the_o consideration_n hereof_o humble_v they_o nay_o rather_o they_o delight_v in_o it_o as_o the_o prophet_n note_v jerem._n 6.10_o their_o ear_n be_v uncircumcised_a and_o they_o can_v hearken_v behold_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v as_o a_o reproach_n unto_o they_o they_o have_v no_o delight_n in_o it_o by_o these_o testimony_n of_o dr._n twiss_n and_o more_o which_o may_v be_v quote_v to_o this_o purpose_n we_o plain_o see_v that_o though_o he_o do_v every_o where_o maintain_v that_o god_n by_o his_o special_a discriminate_n effectual_a grace_n enable_v the_o elect_n but_o not_o the_o non-elect_a to_o believe_v repent_v and_o obey_v the_o gospel_n and_o so_o to_o perform_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o declare_v that_o the_o inability_n of_o the_o non-elect_a to_o believe_v repent_v and_o obey_v be_v a_o mere_a moral_a impotency_n arise_v from_o the_o ill_a disposition_n of_o their_o own_o mind_n and_o affection_n that_o therefore_o they_o can_v because_o they_o will_v not_o and_o that_o if_o they_o will_v they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o believe_v and_o repent_v and_o obey_v the_o gospel_n now_o though_o we_o hearty_o agree_v with_o the_o doctor_n that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o special_a discriminate_n effectual_a grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n jesus_n that_o the_o elect_v believe_v repent_v and_o obey_v the_o gospel_n and_o also_o that_o the_o inability_n and_o impotency_n which_o other_o be_v under_o to_o do_v these_o thing_n be_v a_o moral_a and_o not_o a_o mere_a natural_a inability_n and_o impotence_n yet_o to_o show_v that_o we_o be_v far_o from_o be_v pelagian_n or_o arminian_o we_o must_v declare_v to_o the_o world_n that_o dr._n twiss_n seem_v sometime_o to_o ascribe_v more_o to_o the_o natural_a power_n of_o a_o unregenerate_a man_n without_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n than_o we_o can_v allow_v of_o this_o he_o do_v in_o the_o foresay_a book_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n page_n 48._o where_o after_o he_o have_v discourse_v of_o natural_a and_o moral_a impotency_n and_o show_v 1._o that_o the_o wicked_a be_v punish_v for_o refuse_v to_o believe_v that_o this_o refusal_n be_v the_o free_a act_n of_o their_o will_n and_o by_o their_o natural_a power_n they_o may_v abstain_v from_o this_o refusal_n and_o may_v believe_v with_o a_o acquire_v faith_n as_o many_o unregenerate_a man_n have_v do_v and_o 2._o after_o he_o have_v likewise_o show_v out_o of_o augustin_n that_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o wicked_a do_v not_o believe_v be_v because_o they_o will_v not_o and_o that_o if_o they_o will_v they_o may_v believe_v and_o that_o since_o they_o may_v believe_v if_o they_o will_v it_o be_v just_a with_o god_n to_o punish_v they_o sore_n not_o believe_v and_o 3._o after_o he_o have_v show_v out_o of_o the_o same_o augustin_n that_o the_o reason_n why_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v be_v either_o because_o they_o do_v not_o see_v the_o truth_n and_o goodness_n of_o that_o which_o they_o shall_v believe_v or_o else_o because_o it_o do_v not_o delight_v they_o 4._o in_o the_o four_o place_n he_o adventure_n to_o go_v one_o step_n further_o and_o of_o his_o own_o head_n to_o say_v that_o except_o the_o supernatural_a act_n of_o the_o three_o theological_a virtue_n faith_n hope_n and_o love_n all_o act_n and_o duty_n inward_a or_o outward_a be_v natural_a and_o may_v be_v perform_v by_o a_o natural_a man_n though_o not_o in_o a_o acceptable_a manner_n for_o want_v of_o faith_n hope_n and_o love_n supernatural_a now_o say_v he_o they_o be_v his_o own_o very_a word_n suppose_v that_o a_o man_n be_v so_o exact_a both_o in_o natural_a morality_n and_o in_o a_o outward_a conformity_n to_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n as_o not_o to_o fail_v in_o any_o particular_a as_o he_o have_v power_n to_o perform_v any_o particular_a hereof_o natural_o in_o this_o case_n i_o say_v if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o he_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o same_o case_n with_o those_o that_o be_v guilty_a of_o no_o sin_n but_o sin_n original_a etc._n etc._n upon_o this_o passage_n we_o observe_v that_o the_o doctor_n suppose_v it_o possible_a for_o a_o natural_a man_n by_o the_o mere_a power_n of_o nature_n without_o any_o supernatural_a grace_n to_o be_v so_o exact_a in_o do_v all_o the_o duty_n which_o god_n require_v of_o he_o as_o not_o to_o fail_v in_o any_o particular_a and_o so_o to_o keep_v himself_o free_a from_o all_o actual_a sin_n he_o do_v not_o indeed_o say_v that_o there_o be_v or_o ever_o be_v or_o ever_o will_v be_v such_o a_o man_n but_o he_o plain_o enough_o say_v that_o it_o be_v natural_o possible_a and_o suppose_v it_o so_o to_o be_v he_o suppose_v it_o possible_a for_o a_o natural_a man_n by_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n so_o to_o live_v as_o to_o be_v without_o all_o actual_a sin_n this_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o agree_v to_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_n we_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v natural_o impossible_a for_o any_o natural_a man_n by_o natural_a power_n so_o to_o live_v as_o to_o be_v without_o all_o actual_a sin_n for_o sure_o original_a sin_n in_o such_o a_o man_n will_v so_o vigorous_o put_v itself_o forth_o into_o act_n upon_o the_o presentation_n of_o outward_a object_n to_o his_o sense_n or_o the_o formation_n of_o notion_n and_o idea_n of_o thing_n in_o his_o mind_n that_o by_o his_o mere_a natural_a power_n he_o can_v not_o possible_o hinder_v all_o the_o sally_n and_o eruption_n of_o it_o this_o be_v the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o the_o contrary_n be_v pure_a pelagianism_n which_o we_o wonder_v how_o it_o shall_v ever_o fall_v from_o the_o pen_n of_o dr._n twiss_n who_o be_v real_o a_o hater_n of_o pelagianisme_n we_o shall_v never_o have_v mention_v this_o but_o to_o let_v man_n know_v how_o far_o we_o be_v from_o pelagianism_n even_o far_o than_o dr._n twiss_n be_v as_o to_o the_o power_n of_o a_o natural_a man._n indeed_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o think_v that_o a_o natural_a man_n by_o his_o mere_a natural_a power_n can_v live_v without_o all_o actual_a sin_n that_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o a_o spiritual_a regenerate_v man_n can_v live_v so_o exact_o as_o to_o keep_v himself_o free_a from_o all_o actual_a sin_n although_o he_o be_v furnish_v and_o assist_v with_o such_o a_o measure_n of_o supernatural_a grace_n as_o the_o lord_n do_v ordinary_o give_v out_o unto_o his_o own_o select_a people_n this_o be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n which_o we_o can_v demonstrate_v to_o be_v true_a and_o which_o we_o firm_o believe_v sure_o then_o it_o must_v be_v a_o vile_a slander_n cast_v upon_o we_o that_o we_o be_v so_o far_o go_v off_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n 13._o let._n p._n 13._o as_o that_o our_o cause_n and_o the_o pelagian_o be_v coincident_a and_o
that_o more_o and_o worse_a be_v fear_v which_o what_o it_o shall_v be_v we_o can_v imagine_v unless_o it_o be_v that_o they_o fear_v we_o will_v at_o last_o renounce_v christ_n and_o christianity_n but_o to_o this_o we_o will_v say_v with_o david_n 16.12_o 2_o sam._n 16.12_o it_o may_v be_v the_o lord_n will_v look_v upon_o our_o case_n and_o requite_v we_o good_a for_o this_o revile_v dr._n 12._o let_v p._n 12._o downame_n bishop_n of_o derry_n who_o our_o author_n also_o commend_v in_o his_o letter_n shall_v next_o come_v in_o for_o a_o witness_n on_o our_o behalf_n who_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n say_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n can_v be_v apply_v to_o any_o aright_o but_o only_o to_o those_o who_o have_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o promise_n 135._o page_n 134_o 135._o which_o be_v the_o justify_v faith_n for_o the_o gospel_n do_v not_o promise_v justification_n and_o salvation_n to_o all_o but_o to_o those_o only_o who_o have_v a_o justify_v faith_n therefore_o a_o man_n must_v be_v endue_v with_o justify_v faith_n before_o he_o can_v or_o aught_o to_o apply_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o himself_o for_o as_o salvation_n be_v promise_v to_o they_o that_o believe_v so_o damnation_n be_v denounce_v to_o they_o that_o believe_v not_o mark_v 16.16_o john_n 3.16_o 18._o again_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o apply_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o himself_o who_o have_v not_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o promise_n 153._o ibid._n page_n 153._o unless_o he_o will_v pernicious_o deceive_v himself_o for_o as_o he_o that_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v so_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v condemn_v 154._o page_n 154._o again_o as_o we_o daily_a sin_n so_o we_o must_v daily_o ask_v forgiveness_n prayer_n be_v the_o mean_n that_o god_n have_v ordain_v to_o that_o end_n object_n yea_o but_o say_v the_o papist_n you_o forsooth_o have_v already_o full_a assurance_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o all_o your_o sin_n not_o only_o pass_v but_o also_o to_o come_v answ_n it_o be_v absurd_a to_o imagine_v that_o sin_n be_v remit_v before_o they_o be_v commit_v and_o much_o more_o that_o we_o be_v assure_v they_o be_v remit_v before_o they_o be_v either_o remit_v or_o commit_v that_o indeed_o be_v a_o doctrine_n to_o animate_v and_o to_o encourage_v man_n to_o sin_n but_o howsoever_o the_o pope_n sometime_o forgive_v sin_n to_o come_v yet_o god_n do_v not_o when_o god_n justify_v a_o man_n he_o give_v he_o remission_n of_o sin_n past_a rom._n 3.25_o as_o for_o time_n to_o come_v we_o teach_v that_o although_o christ_n have_v merit_v and_o god_n have_v promise_v remission_n of_o sin_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n notwithstanding_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o actual_o obtain_v and_o much_o less_o by_o special_a faith_n believe_v until_o man_n do_v actual_o believe_v and_o repent_v and_o by_o humble_a and_o faithful_a prayer_n renew_v their_o faith_n and_o repentance_n for_o as_o god_n have_v promise_v to_o the_o faithful_a all_o good_a thing_n but_o how_o matt._n 7.7_o 8._o to_o they_o that_o ask_v 14._o luke_n 18.13_o 14._o that_o seek_v that_o knock_v so_o also_o remission_n of_o sin_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o remission_n of_o sin_n though_o merit_v by_o christ_n though_o promise_v by_o god_n though_o seal_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n be_v obtain_v by_o the_o effectual_a prayer_n of_o those_o who_o believe_v and_o repent_v for_o who_o christ_n have_v merit_v it_o and_o to_o who_o god_n have_v promise_v it_o in_o his_o word_n and_o seal_v it_o by_o the_o sacrament_n even_o as_o the_o obtain_n of_o the_o rain_n which_o god_n have_v promise_v 1_o king_n 18._o ver_fw-la 1_o 41._o and_o the_o prophet_n elias_n have_v foretell_v be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o effectual_a prayer_n of_o elias_n james_n 5.16_o 18._o to_z bishop_n downame_n we_o add_v the_o very_a learned_a and_o pious_a gataker_n testimony_n when_o saltmarsh_a the_o antinomian_n have_v object_v and_o say_v either_o place_n salvation_n on_o a_o free_a bottom_n or_o else_o you_o make_v the_o new_a covenant_n but_o a_o old_a covenant_n in_o new_a term_n do_v this_o and_o live_v believe_v this_o and_o live_v repent_v and_o live_v obey_v and_o live_v gataker_n reply_v this_o be_v frivolous_a because_o as_o have_v be_v show_v 49._o gataker_n shadow_n without_o substance_n page_n 49._o salvation_n free_a bottom_n be_v no_o way_n impeach_v by_o such_o condition_n as_o these_o require_v and_o scandalous_a because_o therein_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n be_v not_o covert_o but_o direct_o challenge_v as_o overthrow_v and_o raze_v the_o foundation_n of_o free_a grace_n for_o what_o be_v believe_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v save_v but_o believe_v and_o live_v or_o what_o be_v repent_v that_o your_o sin_n may_v be_v do_v away_o but_o repent_v and_o live_v or_o what_o be_v he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o salvation_n to_o all_o that_o obey_v he_o but_o obey_v and_o live_v and_o i_o demand_v again_o what_o this_o amount_n unto_o whether_o it_o be_v any_o other_o than_o blasphemy_n to_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n by_o such_o their_o doctrine_n do_v not_o place_n salvation_n upon_o a_o free_a bottom_n but_o bring_v in_o the_o old_a covenant_n again_o in_o new_a term_n sir_n dare_v you_o say_v in_o your_o new_a reveal_v mystery_n believe_v not_o and_o yet_o live_v repent_v not_o and_o yet_o live_v obey_v not_o and_o yet_o live_v again_o we_o may_v true_o say_v that_o you_o and_o you_o be_v they_o that_o either_o can_v or_o will_v not_o see_v the_o wood_n for_o tree_n 57_o ibid._n page_n 57_o the_o condition_n on_o which_o salvation_n by_o christ_n be_v propound_v though_o in_o the_o gospel_n they_o do_v every_o where_o occur_v and_o offer_v themselves_o will_v you_o will_v you_o to_o your_o eye_n with_o gataker_n we_o join_v mr._n ball_n who_o in_o his_o treatise_n of_o faith_n recommend_v by_o a_o preface_n of_o dr._n sibbes_n say_v 86._o ball_n treatise_n of_o faith_n part_n 1._o page_n 86._o the_o promise_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v conditional_a and_o become_v not_o absolute_a until_o the_o condition_n be_v fulfil_v this_o be_v the_o word_n of_o grace_n believe_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v save_v when_o do_v this_o conditional_a proposition_n become_v absolute_a when_o we_o believe_v what_o that_o our_o sin_n be_v pardon_v no_o but_o when_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n to_o obtain_v pardon_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n promise_v upon_o condition_n of_o belief_n again_o the_o privilege_n of_o grace_n and_o comfort_n which_o come_v to_o the_o soul_n by_o believe_v must_v be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n 89._o ibid._n page_n 89._o which_o be_v require_v on_o our_o part_n before_o we_o can_v obtain_v pardon_n again_o we_o can_v teach_v no_o faith_n to_o salvation_n but_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o christ_n repent_v and_o believe_v the_o gospel_n no_o remission_n of_o sin_n 136._o ibid._n page_n 136._o but_o according_a to_o the_o like_a rule_n luke_o 24.47_o act_n 2.37_o 38._o but_o faith_n seek_v and_o receive_v pardon_n as_o it_o be_v proffer_v in_o the_o word_n of_o grace_n repentance_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n as_o a_o condition_n without_o which_o it_o can_v be_v obtain_v not_o as_o a_o cause_n why_o it_o be_v give_v luke_o 13.3_o 1_o john_n 1.9_o act_n 11.18_o if_o mercy_n shall_v be_v vouchsafe_v to_o all_o indifferent_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v a_o bolster_n to_o man_n sin_n etc._n etc._n last_o we_o conclude_v this_o head_n of_o our_o defence_n with_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n we_o have_v already_o show_v that_o the_o geneva_n divine_v in_o that_o synod_n give_v it_o in_o under_o their_o hand_n and_o be_v therein_o approve_v by_o the_o synod_n that_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v conditional_a we_o may_v be_v large_a in_o show_v the_o like_a of_o many_o other_o but_o we_o will_v confine_v ourselves_o for_o brevity_n sake_n to_o the_o embdan_n bremen_n and_o english_a divine_n their_o suffrage_n record_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o synod_n first_o the_o embdane_a divine_n in_o the_o synod_n say_v that_o god_n require_v the_o same_o condition_n from_o those_o that_o be_v in_o covenant_n with_o he_o under_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n to_o wit_n faith_n and_o the_o obedience_n of_o faith_n 93._o act._n synodi_n dord_n part_n 2._o page_n 93._o gen._n 12._o abraham_n believe_v god_n and_o the_o apostle_n ●in_z rom._n 4._o teach_v that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o the_o same_o faith_n gen._n 17._o abraham_n be_v command_v to_o walk_v before_o god_n and_o be_v perfect_a the_o same_o be_v every_o where_o
require_v of_o believer_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n here_o we_o 1_o see_v that_o they_o affirm_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n have_v condition_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n 2._o that_o faith_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n walk_v before_o god_n and_o be_v perfect_a upright_o or_o sincere_a be_v the_o condition_n of_o it_o under_o the_o old_a and_o now_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o it_o under_o the_o new_a testament_n 3._o that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v approve_v by_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n next_o martintus_fw-la one_o of_o the_o bremen_n divine_v be_v so_o clear_a for_o the_o conditionality_n of_o the_o covenant_n that_o none_o who_o understand_v what_o his_o judgement_n be_v can_v doubt_v of_o his_o be_v on_o our_o side_n we_o need_v not_o quote_v his_o word_n they_o that_o please_v may_v see_v they_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o synod_n the_o sum_n of_o his_o opinion_n approve_v by_o the_o synod_n be_v this_o that_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n be_v blessing_n promise_v to_o all_o man_n through_o christ_n 137._o ibid._n part_n 2._o page_n 136_o 137._o but_o how_o not_o absolute_o but_o conditional_o if_o they_o believe_v as_o we_o hear_v before_o from_o dr._n twiss_n of_o the_o fume_n mind_n be_v his_o two_o colleague_n 151._o ibid._n p._n 150_o 151._o ise●burgius_n and_o lud._n crocius_n and_o especial_o crocius_n most_o clear_o as_o be_v there_o to_o be_v see_v last_o our_o own_o british_a divine_n be_v clear_o for_o the_o conditionality_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n no_o body_n can_v ever_o doubt_v of_o this_o that_o ever_o read_v their_o suffrage_n either_o in_o latin_a or_o english_a for_o thus_o they_o write_v for_o howsoever_o salvation_n in_o the_o execution_n thereof_o depend_v upon_o the_o conditional_a use_n of_o the_o mean_n yet_o the_o will_n of_o god_n elect_v unto_o salvation_n be_v not_o conditional_a 9_o saffrage_n of_o the_o divine_n of_o great_a britain_n art_n 1._o in_o english_a page_z 9_o incomplete_a or_o mutable_a because_o he_o have_v absolute_o purpose_v to_o give_v unto_o the_o elect_a both_o power_n and_o will_v to_o perform_v those_o very_a condition_n namely_o repentance_n faith_n obedience_n perseverance_n by_o this_o we_o see_v that_o they_o teach_v not_o only_o that_o faith_n be_v a_o condition_n but_o that_o repentance_n obedience_n and_o perseverance_n be_v condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n which_o be_v the_o whole_a of_o what_o we_o say_v and_o it_o be_v receive_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o whole_a synod_n of_o dort_n above_o seventy_o year_n ago_o again_o in_o opposition_n to_o and_o refutation_n of_o the_o eight_o erroneous_a opinion_n of_o the_o arminian_o they_o write_v thus_o 29._o ibid._n p._n 28_o 29._o we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n lay_v open_a or_o reveal_v in_o the_o gospel_n by_o which_o he_o have_v decree_v to_o choose_v faith_n as_o a_o condition_n for_o confer_v salvation_n that_o be_v by_o which_o he_o will_v have_v the_o actual_a obtain_n of_o salvation_n at_o least_o in_o respect_n of_o those_o which_o be_v of_o ripe_a year_n to_o depend_v upon_o the_o condition_n of_o forego_v faith_n and_o this_o be_v that_o joyful_a and_o save_a message_n to_o be_v publish_v unto_o all_o nation_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o very_a decree_n of_o election_n proper_o take_v and_o so_o much_o set_v forth_o or_o celebrate_v by_o the_o apostle_n st._n paul_n for_o that_o decree_n be_v active_a or_o practical_a ordain_v some_o particular_a person_n unto_o salvation_n not_o dispose_v of_o thing_n or_o the_o connexion_n of_o thing_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n and_o it_o be_v confine_v unto_o or_o terminate_v upon_o humane_a creature_n themselves_o and_o not_o upon_o their_o quality_n ephes_n 1.4_o he_o have_v choose_v we_o to_o wit_n man_n rom._n 8._o those_o who_o he_o have_v praedestinate_v to_o wit_n man_n matth_n 20._o few_o be_v choose_v that_o be_v few_o man_n from_o this_o passage_n we_o observe_v 1._o that_o according_a to_o those_o learned_a divine_n there_o be_v a_o absolute_a pleasure_n and_o purpose_n of_o god_n that_o faith_n shall_v be_v the_o condition_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n 2._o that_o this_o absolute_a pleasure_n and_o purpose_n of_o god_n refer_v to_o thing_n and_o absolute_o constitute_v a_o conditional_a connexion_n between_o they_o that_o be_v between_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o salvation_n as_o the_o benefit_n or_o grace_v promise_v and_o faith_n as_o the_o condition_n in_o whosoever_o it_o shall_v be_v find_v this_o good_a pleasure_n and_o absolute_a purpose_n of_o god_n terminate_n upon_o and_o constitute_v the_o conditional_a connexion_n of_o thing_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o general_a conditional_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o we_o be_v order_v to_o preach_v conditional_o to_o all_o the_o world_n as_o we_o have_v a_o call_v mark_n 16.15_o 16._o rom._n 10.8_o 9_o not_o make_v any_o difference_n between_o person_n and_o person_n as_o to_o that_o matter_n but_o now_o the_o decree_n of_o election_n formal_o and_o terminative_o consider_v be_v quite_o another_o thing_n as_o to_o our_o conception_n of_o it_o it_o be_v the_o good_a pleasure_n and_o absolute_a purpose_n of_o god_n terminate_a upod_n particular_a person_n single_v they_o out_o from_o other_o and_o appoint_v they_o to_o obtain_v salvation_n in_o such_o a_o way_n and_o by_o such_o mean_n and_o this_o good_a pleasure_n and_o purpose_n of_o god_n in_o his_o time_n and_o way_n according_a to_o his_o word_n of_o promise_n never_o fail_v to_o have_v its_o powerful_a effect_n upon_o those_o select_a person_n to_o make_v they_o first_o gracious_a and_o then_o glorious_a for_o evermore_o again_o in_o treat_v of_o the_o second_o article_n their_o five_o position_n be_v this_o in_o the_o church_n 50._o ●●id_fw-la art_n 2._o p._n 49_o 50._o wherein_o according_a to_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n salvation_n be_v offer_v to_o all_o there_o be_v such_o a_o administration_n of_o grace_n as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o convince_v all_o impenitent_n and_o unbeliever_n that_o by_o their_o own_o voluntary_a de●ault_n either_o through_o neglect_n or_o contempt_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o perish_v and_o come_v short_a of_o the_o cene●●t_n offer_v unto_o they_o this_o position_n they_o lie_v down_o as_o a_o truth_n than_o they_o proceed_v to_o prove_v it_o and_o thus_o they_o begin_v christ_n by_o his_o death_n have_v not_o only_o establish_v the_o evangelical_n cwenant_n but_o have_v moreover_o obtain_v of_o his_o father_n that_o wheresoever_o this_o covenant_n shall_v be_v publish_v there_o also_o together_o with_o it_o ordinary_o such_o a_o measure_n of_o supernatural_a grace_n shall_v be_v dispense_v as_o may_v suffice_v to_o convince_v all_o impenitent_n and_o unbeliever_n of_o contempt_n or_o at_o least_o of_o neglect_n in_o that_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v not_o fulfil_v by_o they_o these_o be_v their_o own_o word_n than_o they_o prove_v two_o thing_n 1._o that_o some_o measure_n of_o supernatural_a grace_n be_v ordinary_o administer_v in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o they_o demonstrate_v by_o several_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n 2._o that_o that_o grace_n be_v sufficient_a to_o convince_v all_o impenitent_a unbeliever_n either_o of_o contempt_n or_o at_o least_o of_o neglect_n which_o they_o demonstrate_v from_o john_n 15.22_o john_n 3.19_o heb._n 2.3_o heb._n 4.12_o matth._n 11.24_o heb._n 6.4_o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o and_o before_o this_o their_o second_o position_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o elect_n be_v that_o out_o of_o the_o special_a love_n of_o god_n by_o and_o for_o the_o merit_n and_o intercession_n of_o christ_n faith_n and_o perseverance_n be_v give_v unto_o the_o elect_n 45._o ibid._n page_n 45._o yea_o and_o all_o other_o thing_n by_o which_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v fulfil_v and_o the_o promise_a benefit_n namely_o eternal_a life_n be_v infallible_o obtain_v this_o be_v their_o position_n and_o they_o prove_v it_o by_o rom._n 8.32_o 33_o 34._o and_o heb._n 8.10_o again_o in_o refutation_n of_o the_o three_o erroneous_a opinion_n that_o christ_n death_n have_v obtain_v for_o all_o man_n restitution_n into_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n they_o both_o assert_v the_o conditionality_n of_o the_o covenant_n 63._o ibid._n art_n 2._o p._n 61_o 62_o 63._o and_o also_o at_o the_o same_o time_n lie_v the_o axe_n to_o the_o root_n of_o huberianisme_n puccianisme_n and_o antinomianism_n or_o crispianisme_n their_o word_n and_o argument_n be_v these_o follow_v 1._o reason_n salvation_n be_v a_o thing_n promise_v in_o the_o new_a covenant_n neither_o be_v it_o promise_v but_o upon_o the_o condition_n of_o faith_n whosoever_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v since_o therefore_o all_o man_n have_v not_o faith_n in_o christ_n under_o which_o condition_n only_a
salvation_n be_v promise_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o obtain_v for_o all_o but_o for_o the_o faithful_a alone_o a_o restoration_n absolute_a into_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n this_o they_o prove_v from_o rom._n 5.1_o rom._n 3._o and_o 4._o chap._n and_o gal._n 2.16_o 2._o reason_n without_o faith_n in_o christ_n man_n remain_v in_o the_o state_n of_o condemnation_n john_n 3.18_o john_n 3.36_o but_o they_o who_o be_v restore_v into_o the_o bosom_n of_o grace_n every_o one_o of_o they_o have_v remission_n of_o sin_n which_o make_v man_n happy_a psal_n 32.1_o neither_o do_v they_o remain_v in_o condemnation_n neither_o do_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n remain_v upon_o they_o they_o therefore_o who_o want_v faith_n be_v not_o restore_v by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n into_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n since_o through_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n no_o man_n obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n except_o he_o who_o believe_v in_o he_o act_v 10.43_o reason_n 3._o if_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n have_v obtain_v restitution_n for_o all_o then_o be_v they_o restore_v either_o 1_o when_o christ_n from_o all_o eternity_n be_v destinate_a unto_o death_n which_o be_v false_a for_o so_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v bear_v a_o child_n of_o wrath_n neither_o shall_v original_a sin_n any_o whit_n damage_n mankind_n be_v according_a to_o this_o opinion_n forgive_v they_o from_o all_o eternity_n or_o 2._o they_o be_v restore_v in_o the_o person_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n when_o the_o promise_n concern_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n be_v proclaim_v which_o be_v false_a for_o our_o first_o parent_n themselves_o be_v not_o restore_v into_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n but_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o consequent_o neither_o be_v their_o posterity_n restore_v but_o in_o like_a manner_n that_o be_v by_o faith_n therefore_o not_o all_o whether_o believer_n or_o unbeliever_n be_v restore_v or_o 3._o they_o be_v restore_v when_o christ_n himself_o suffer_v death_n upon_o the_o cross_n but_o that_o be_v false_a also_o and_o can_v be_v for_o so_o no_o man_n before_o that_o moment_n shall_v have_v be_v restore_v which_o none_o will_v grant_v neither_o be_v all_o restore_v from_o that_o time_n because_o without_o doubt_n even_o at_o that_o moment_n and_o afterward_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n burn_v hot_a against_o some_o of_o christ_n accuser_n condemner_n crucifier_n and_o mocker_n thus_o our_o divine_n argue_v in_o the_o synod_n and_o their_o argument_n be_v approve_v by_o the_o synod_n now_o let_v any_o man_n of_o judgement_n consider_v the_o force_n of_o these_o argument_n and_o he_o will_v plain_o see_v that_o they_o do_v prove_v that_o no_o man_n no_o not_o the_o elect_n can_v be_v admit_v into_o favour_n with_o god_n and_o be_v justify_v before_o he_o believe_v and_o perform_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n as_o well_o as_o that_o all_o man_n be_v not_o and_o can_v be_v so_o deal_v with_o the_o elect_a themselves_o before_o their_o conversion_n be_v not_o absolute_o and_o actual_o in_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o god_n they_o be_v not_o in_o a_o state_n of_o justification_n and_o salvation_n because_o they_o yet_o want_v faith_n the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n upon_o which_o condition_n those_o subsequent_a blessing_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v only_o promise_v so_o that_o by_o this_o we_o may_v see_v the_o synod_n have_v in_o effect_n beforehand_o judge_v between_o we_o and_o the_o antinomian_o and_o have_v give_v sentence_n according_a to_o scripture_n on_o our_o side_n last_o we_o find_v that_o our_o divine_n in_o the_o synod_n declare_v and_o prove_v that_o perseverance_n in_o holy_a faith_n and_o obedience_n which_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o our_o obtain_n eternal_a salvation_n be_v itself_o promise_v absolute_o without_o any_o proper_a condition_n yet_o not_o so_o as_o always_o and_o in_o all_o elect_n justify_v person_n to_o exclude_v and_o prevent_v a_o partial_a temporary_a apostasy_n and_o backslide_n here_o then_o be_v two_o thing_n hold_v by_o they_o 1._o that_o the_o perseverance_n of_o the_o elect_n after_o they_o be_v once_o convert_v and_o justify_v though_o it_o be_v a_o condition_n of_o obtain_v eternal_a salvation_n yet_o it_o be_v promise_v and_o give_v without_o any_o other_o proper_a condition_n therefore_o write_v on_o the_o five_o article_n they_o reject_v the_o erroneous_a opinion_n of_o the_o arminian_o 153._o ibid._n art_n v._o pag._n 157_o 153._o that_o perseverance_n be_v a_o benefit_n offer_v equal_o to_o all_o the_o true_o faithful_a upon_o this_o condition_n namely_o if_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v want_v unto_o sufficient_a grace_n and_o give_v their_o reason_n why_o they_o reject_v it_o 1._o say_v they_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o perseverance_n be_v a_o gift_n only_o offer_v but_o not_o give_v for_o the_o scripture_n witness_v that_o god_n do_v not_o only_o offer_v unto_o he_o the_o grace_n of_o perseverance_n but_o also_o that_o he_o give_v it_o they_o and_o put_v it_o into_o their_o heart_n jer._n 32.40_o i_o will_v put_v my_o fear_n into_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o i_o and_o john_n 4.14_o 1_o cor._n 10.13_o again_o it_o be_v false_a say_v they_o that_o perseverance_n be_v a_o grace_n offer_v upon_o condition_n for_o it_o be_v a_o gift_n promise_v absolute_o by_o god_n without_o any_o respect_n to_o a_o condition_n the_o reason_n be_v this_o some_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v touch_v the_o end_n other_o touch_v the_o mean_n which_o conduce_v to_o the_o end_n the_o promise_v concern_v the_o end_n that_o be_v to_o say_v salvation_n be_v conditional_a believe_v and_o thou_o shall_v be_v save_v be_v faithful_a unto_o death_n that_o be_v persevere_v and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o crown_n of_o life_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o perform_v the_o condition_n god_n also_o have_v make_v most_o free_a and_o absolute_a promise_n to_o give_v the_o very_a condition_n which_o he_o work_v in_o we_o that_o so_o by_o they_o as_o by_o mean_n we_o may_v attain_v the_o end_n deut._n 30.6_o and_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n will_v circumcise_v thy_o heart_n to_o love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o soul_n that_o thou_o may_v live_v the_o end_n here_o promise_v be_v life_n which_o the_o israelite_n can_v never_o attain_v without_o the_o performance_n of_o the_o condition_n namely_o their_o love_n of_o god_n but_o here_o god_n promise_v absolute_o that_o he_o will_v give_v unto_o they_o this_o very_a condition_n since_o therefore_o the_o promise_n of_o faith_n and_o perseverance_n in_o faith_n be_v promise_n concern_v the_o mean_n they_o be_v whole_o to_o be_v reckon_v among_o those_o absolute_a gift_n by_o which_o god_n consider_v man_n disability_n hoth_v to_o attain_v the_o end_n without_o the_o mean_n and_o also_o to_o perform_v or_o effect_n the_o mean_n or_o condition_n of_o himself_o do_v promise_n that_o he_o will_v make_v they_o able_a to_o perform_v the_o condition_n god_n promise_v life_n to_o those_o that_o constant_o fear_v he_o the_o promise_n of_o life_n be_v conditional_a but_o of_o constant_a fear_n be_v absolute_a i_o will_v put_v my_o fear_n in_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o may_v not_o depart_v from_o i_o and_o last_o be_v it_o so_o that_o this_o gift_n be_v conditional_a yet_o it_o be_v not_o offer_v upon_o this_o condition_n if_o man_n will_v not_o be_v want_v to_o themselves_o in_o the_o entertainment_n and_o use_n of_o sufficient_a grace_n f●●_v 1_o it_o will_v from_o this_o condition_n follow_v that_o we_o do_v in_o vain_a pray_v to_o god_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o any_o man_n that_o he_o will_v give_v unto_o they_o the_o gift_n of_o perseverance_n because_o of_o course_n he_o offer_v they_o universal_a and_o sufficient_a grace_n to_o which_o if_o they_o themselves_o will_v not_o be_v want_v they_o shall_v persevere_v 2._o t●is_n be_v a_o idle_a condition_n for_o it_o make_v perseverance_n to_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o perseverance_n for_o to_o persevere_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o not_o to_o be_v want_v unto_o this_o sufficient_a grace_n if_o therefore_o god_n offer_v perseverance_n upon_o this_o condition_n he_o offer_v the_o same_o upon_o condition_n of_o itself_o thus_o they_o show_v that_o perseverance_n be_v absolute_o promise_v and_o give_v without_o any_o other_o proper_a condition_n yet_o for_o all_o this_o 2._o they_o do_v not_o say_v that_o perseverance_n be_v so_o promise_a and_o give_v as_o to_o exclude_v and_o prevent_v always_o a_o partial_a temporary_a apostasy_n and_o backslide_n for_o we_o find_v that_o discourse_n of_o perseverance_n as_o it_o concern_v the_o elect_n their_o three_o position_n be_v these_o very_o same_o person_n thus_o regenerate_v 125._o ibid._n art_n v._o pag._n 121_o 122_o 123_o 124_o
the_o very_a act_n of_o believe_v he_o do_v not_o disclaim_v his_o unbelief_n for_o that_o be_v sin_n nor_o do_v he_o disclaim_v the_o conceit_n of_o merit_a justification_n by_o his_o faith_n for_o that_o be_v a_o sinful_a conceit_n but_o he_o disclaim_v his_o faith_n itself_o unless_o his_o faith_n be_v either_o sinfulness_n or_o misery_n for_o he_o disclaim_v all_o thing_n in_o himself_o but_o sinfulness_n and_o misery_n these_o two_o to_o wit_n sinfulness_n and_o misery_n be_v the_o only_a thing_n which_o he_o do_v not_o disclaim_v whence_o it_o follow_v necessary_o that_o he_o disclaim_v his_o belief_n itself_o in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o believe_v and_o so_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o be_v enable_v to_o believe_v as_o a_o unbeliever_n this_o be_v it_o may_v be_v one_o of_o our_o author_n deep_a mystery_n for_o which_o his_o proselyte_n admire_v he_o and_o hug_v his_o letter_n and_o we_o confess_v there_o be_v no_o such_o deep_a mystery_n as_o the_o mystery_n of_o contradictious_a nonsense_n but_o if_o every_o one_o who_o believe_v do_v believe_v as_o the_o chief_a of_o sinner_n and_o so_o believe_v as_o a_o unbeliever_n and_o as_o one_o that_o disclaim_v all_o true_a and_o save_a faith_n we_o will_v know_v how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o all_o the_o unbeliever_n in_o the_o world_n do_v not_o believe_v one_o will_v think_v that_o they_o may_v all_o easy_o believe_v with_o such_o a_o faith_n as_o be_v act_v by_o a_o man_n under_o that_o reduplicate_a quatenus_fw-la as_o a_o unbeliever_n and_o which_o in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o believe_v renounce_v all_o save_a belief_n even_o every_o thing_n but_o sin_n and_o misery_n of_o old_a no_o man_n be_v receive_v into_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o account_v a_o christian_a unless_o he_o first_o disclaim_v and_o renounce_v his_o sin_n but_o now_o it_o seem_v there_o be_v a_o great_a alteration_n in_o the_o state_n of_o christianity_n for_o a_o man_n can_v at_o this_o day_n be_v a_o christian_n unless_o he_o disclaim_v or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o renounce_v his_o christian_a faith_n and_o that_o too_o with_o a_o exception_n of_o not_o disclaim_v his_o sin_n if_o this_o be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o be_v a_o christian_n one_o will_v think_v that_o all_o the_o jew_n turk_n and_o heathen_n in_o the_o world_n may_v easy_o be_v christian_n for_o they_o can_v easy_o believe_v with_o a_o faith_n that_o in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o it_o renounce_v and_o disclaim_v faith_n but_o not_o sin_n but_o if_o our_o author_n say_v that_o every_o true_a christian_a must_v believe_v in_o christ_n with_o a_o sincere_a and_o save_a faith_n which_o unbeliever_n have_v not_o and_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o must_v act_v his_o faith_n as_o a_o unbeliover_n and_o in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o faith_n he_o must_v disclaim_v his_o faith_n but_o not_o his_o sin_n of_o unbelief_n and_o that_o there_o must_v be_v no_o real_a change_n in_o he_o from_o unbelief_n to_o faith_n till_o he_o have_v faith_n and_o have_v act_v his_o faith_n as_o aforesaid_a and_o be_v justify_v by_o such_o a_o act_n of_o faith_n and_o then_o a_o real_a change_n pass_v upon_o he_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n after_o his_o justification_n but_o not_o before_o we_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v contradictious_a nonsense_n and_o at_o this_o rate_n no_o man_n can_v be_v a_o christian_n till_o he_o have_v make_v both_o end_n of_o a_o contradiction_n meet_v and_o have_v verify_v both_o part_n of_o a_o contradiction_n in_o his_o own_o person_n no_o man_n can_v be_v a_o christian_n that_o be_v real_o change_v from_o be_v a_o unbeliever_n to_o be_v a_o believer_n no_o he_o can_v be_v a_o christian_n till_o he_o be_v both_o a_o unbeliever_n and_o believer_n in_o predominant_a degree_n at_o the_o same_o time_n without_o any_o real_a change_n from_o what_o he_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o plain_a english_a of_o this_o be_v that_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o our_o author_n lay_v down_o in_o his_o letter_n no_o man_n can_v ever_o be_v a_o good_a christian_n at_o all_o for_o the_o thing_n be_v impossible_a because_o it_o imply_v a_o manifest_a contradiction_n yet_o we_o must_v be_v so_o charitable_a as_o to_o think_v that_o our_o author_n have_v indeed_o great_o mistake_v in_o the_o express_n of_o his_o mind_n in_o his_o letter_n but_o that_o real_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v those_o thing_n himself_o we_o hope_v he_o be_v of_o a_o more_o orthodox_n faith_n and_o be_v willing_a to_o impute_v it_o to_o some_o inadvertency_n and_o inconsiderateness_n in_o the_o hasty_a writing_n of_o his_o letter_n we_o think_v he_o will_v or_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o every_o one_o who_o believe_v on_o jesus_n christ_n act_v that_o faith_n as_o one_o who_o think_v himself_o to_o have_v be_v former_o before_o his_o conversion_n and_o faith_n a_o chief_a of_o sinner_n or_o one_o of_o the_o first_o rank_n of_o great_a sinner_n but_o do_v not_o think_v himself_o to_o be_v still_o in_o the_o same_o state_n of_o unregeneracy_n and_o unbelief_n for_o if_o he_o think_v so_o of_o himself_o after_o that_o be_v convert_v and_o be_v actual_o believe_v on_o christ_n most_o certain_o he_o think_v amiss_o whatever_o our_o author_n say_v to_o the_o contrary_a for_o he_o think_v false_o of_o himself_o and_o sin_n in_o so_o think_v our_o author_n talk_v confident_o of_o that_o which_o he_o do_v not_o know_v to_o wit_n the_o experience_n of_o every_o believer_n for_o certain_o he_o be_v never_o acquaint_v with_o the_o experience_n of_o the_o thousand_o part_n of_o believer_n that_o be_v in_o the_o christian_a church_n at_o this_o day_n can_v he_o then_o say_v in_o faith_n that_o it_o be_v the_o experience_n of_o every_o believer_n that_o he_o act_v his_o faith_n as_o one_o who_o in_o former_a time_n have_v be_v as_o great_a a_o sinner_n and_o have_v do_v as_o much_o dishonour_n to_o god_n and_o as_o much_o mischief_n to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o the_o world_n as_o the_o present_a king_n of_o france_n but_o whatever_o he_o say_v or_o think_v of_o believer_n we_o be_v persuade_v that_o true_a believer_n be_v teach_v of_o god_n as_o to_o be_v humble_a so_o to_o be_v wise_a in_o act_v their_o faith_n wise_a we_o be_v confident_a than_o that_o every_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v think_v himself_o to_o be_v so_o great_a a_o sinner_n as_o that_o he_o have_v do_v as_o much_o dishonour_n to_o god_n and_o mischief_n to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o lewis_n the_o fourteen_o have_v do_v and_o still_o continue_v to_o do_v again_o when_o he_o say_v that_o a_o believer_n and_o accepter_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o believe_v and_o accept_v express_o disclaim_v all_o thing_n in_o himself_o but_o sin_n and_o misery_n we_o think_v he_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o he_o either_o express_o or_o implicit_o formal_o or_o virtual_o in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o believe_v disclaim_v all_o thing_n in_o himself_o as_o be_v of_o and_o from_o himself_o but_o sin_n and_o misery_n which_o be_v indeed_o of_o and_o from_o himself_o and_o he_o take_v the_o shame_n and_o blame_v thereof_o upon_o himself_o but_o as_o for_o his_o faith_n or_o any_o good_a disposition_n or_o qualification_n that_o be_v in_o he_o he_o ascribe_v it_o all_o to_o the_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n and_o give_v god_n all_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o and_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o believe_v in_o order_n of_o nature_n before_o he_o be_v justify_v he_o virtual_o acknowledge_v to_o god_n glory_n that_o by_o his_o grace_n he_o have_v wrought_v a_o real_a holy_a change_n in_o his_o soul_n and_o of_o a_o blind_a proud_a unbeliever_n have_v make_v he_o a_o understanding_n humble_a believer_n according_a to_o that_o 1_o john_n 5.20_o we_o know_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v come_v and_o have_v give_v we_o a_o understanding_n that_o we_o may_v know_v he_o that_o be_v true_a reason_n 5._o five_o and_o last_o the_o seminal_a vital_a principle_n of_o justify_v faith_n be_v seat_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o the_o first_o vital_a act_n of_o it_o come_v from_o the_o heart_n rom._n 10.10_o with_o the_o heart_n man_n believe_v unto_o righteousness_n we_o demand_v then_o concern_v the_o first_o vital_a act_n of_o justify_v faith_n either_o it_o come_v from_o a_o renew_a heart_n or_o a_o unrenewed_a heart_n a_o regenerate_v heart_n of_o a_o ●●●regenerate_a heart_n a_o heart_n of_o flesh_n or_o a_o heart_n of_o stone_n or_o if_o it_o come_v not_o from_o either_o of_o these_o than_o it_o must_v come_v from_o a_o three_o that_o be_v from_o a_o heart_n that_o be_v neither_o renew_v nor_o unrenewed_a neither_o regenerate_v nor_o unregenerate_a neither_o of_o flesh_n nor_o of_o stone_n but_o now_o 1._o the_o first_o vital_a act_n of_o
of_o christian_a question_n and_o answer_n to_o the_o question_n how_o we_o can_v be_v true_o say_v to_o have_v all_o gift_n from_o christ_n receive_v by_o faith_n since_o if_o christ_n be_v apprehend_v or_o receive_v by_o faith_n 1587._o bez._n lib._n quaest_n &_o resp_n p._n 1._o 149._o 49._o pag._n edit_n 1587._o than_o faith_n itself_o must_v go_v before_o that_o apprehension_n or_o reception_n he_o answer_v if_o thou_o consider_v the_o order_n of_o cause_n i_o confess_v that_o the_o principle_n or_o beginning_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o also_o true_a faith_n go_v before_o the_o apprehension_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v not_o give_v to_o they_o who_o be_v already_o ingraft_v but_o who_o be_v to_o be_v ingraft_v by_o this_o passage_n we_o see_v likewise_o that_o beza_n never_o think_v that_o all_o save_a grace_n flow_v into_o we_o from_o christ_n already_o unite_v to_o we_o but_o that_o before_o union_n he_o give_v we_o save_v grace_n by_o his_o spirit_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v unite_v to_o he_o christ_n by_o his_o spirit_n first_o apprehend_v and_o take_v hold_v of_o we_o and_o sit_v we_o for_o and_o bring_v we_o into_o actual_a union_n with_o himself_o and_o this_o grace_n be_v in_o the_o order_n of_o cause_n before_o the_o union_n on_o our_o part_n and_o so_o be_v before_o our_o justification_n if_o our_o author_n have_v understand_v and_o consider_v all_o this_o that_o we_o have_v quote_v out_o of_o beza_n he_o will_v never_o have_v think_v it_o impossible_a that_o we_o can_v have_v any_o true_a grace_n any_o holy_a disposition_n or_o qualification_n before_o we_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o justify_v by_o faith_n in_o he_o for_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o we_o have_v the_o grace_n from_o christ_n whereby_o we_o come_v to_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o christ_n to_o be_v in_o we_o and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o it_o will_v be_v impossible_a for_o we_o ever_o to_o be_v actual_o in_o christ_n at_o all_o or_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n in_o he_o our_o three_o witness_n be_v mr._n fox_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr christo_fw-la gratis_o justificante_fw-la although_o say_v he_o it_o be_v a_o undoubted_a truth_n that_o faith_n in_o christ_n the_o most_o high_a son_n of_o god_n 307._o page_n 307._o alone_o without_o work_n have_v the_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o justify_v as_o appear_v from_o the_o most_o clear_a word_n of_o paul_n and_o the_o example_n of_o saint_n but_o yet_o it_o do_v not_o put_v forth_o this_o its_o justify_v virtue_n and_o power_n upon_o all_o praeterquàm_fw-la in_fw-la eos_fw-la quos_fw-la idoneos_fw-la solùm_fw-la invenit_fw-la suscipiendae_fw-la divinae_fw-la gratiae_fw-la but_o only_a upon_o those_o who_o it_o find_v fit_v or_o qualify_v for_o receive_v the_o divine_a grace_n or_o favour_n of_o justification_n and_o that_o be_v the_o humble_a and_o penitent_a as_o he_o show_v in_o the_o follow_a section_n where_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o it_o in_o page_n 310_o he_o say_v praeparat_fw-la qui●tem_fw-la poenitentia_fw-la inateriam_fw-la ad_fw-la suscipiendam_fw-la justificationem_fw-la etc._n etc._n repentance_n indeed_o prepare_v the_o matter_n for_o the_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o justification_n that_o be_v it_o prepare_v the_o soul_n for_o receive_v justification_n not_o as_o a_o inherent_a form_n in_o the_o popish_a sense_n but_o as_o a_o rich_a privilege_n and_o favour_n bestow_v upon_o those_o who_o be_v dispose_v and_o qualify_v for_o it_o by_o repentance_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o only_o a_o legal_a but_o a_o evangelical_n repentance_n which_o he_o speak_v of_o be_v evident_a from_o what_o he_o say_v at_o large_a in_o that_o section_n and_o especial_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n which_o he_o bring_v to_o prove_v it_o such_o as_o psal_n 34.18_o isa_n 57.15_o our_o four_o witness_n be_v rollok_n who_o we_o make_v use_v of_o before_o and_o to_o who_o bodius_n his_o scholar_n in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o ephes_n p._n 1081_o give_v this_o testimony_n that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n quo_fw-la nemo_fw-la nostra_fw-la aetate_fw-la christum_fw-la jesum_fw-la vel_fw-la penitiùs_fw-la imbiberat_fw-la vel_fw-la aliorum_fw-la animus_fw-la efficacius_fw-la instillabat_fw-la than_o who_o none_o in_o our_o age_n either_o have_v drink_v in_o christ_n jesus_n more_o deep_o or_o thorough_o into_o his_o own_o heart_n or_o more_o powerful_o convey_v he_o into_o the_o heart_n and_o soul_n of_o other_o this_o holy_a and_o orthodox_n minister_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o book_n of_o effectual_a call_v say_v 4._o page_z 3_o 4._o that_o in_o effectual_a call_v consider_v as_o it_o be_v internal_a duplex_fw-la est_fw-la dei_fw-la gratia_n sive_fw-la operatio_fw-la in_o cordibus_fw-la nostris_fw-la etc._n etc._n there_o be_v a_o twofold_a grace_n of_o god_n or_o operation_n in_o our_o heart_n the_o first_o grace_n be_v whilst_o god_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n create_v a_o new_a and_o heavenly_a light_n in_o the_o mind_n before_o involve_v in_o darkness_n which_o neither_o see_v nor_o can_v see_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 2.14_o in_o the_o will_v whole_o pervert_v and_o turn_v away_o from_o god_n he_o create_v a_o rectitude_n and_o last_o a_o new_a sanctity_n in_o all_o the_o affection_n out_o of_o this_o creation_n there_o exist_v or_o arise_v that_o which_o be_v call_v the_o new_a creature_n that_o which_o be_v call_v the_o new_a man_n which_o after_o god_n be_v create_v in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n ephes_n 4.24_o the_o second_o grace_n or_o the_o second_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o act_n of_o faith_n itself_o or_o a_o action_n proceed_v from_o the_o new_a creature_n 5._o page_n 5._o the_o action_n of_o the_o enlighten_v mind_n in_o know_v god_n in_o christ_n the_o action_n of_o the_o sanctify_a will_n in_o embrace_v or_o apprehend_v god_n in_o christ_n here_o the_o principal_a agent_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n himself_o the_o secondary_a agent_n be_v the_o humane_a soul_n itself_o or_o rather_o the_o new_a man_n and_o the_o new_a creature_n itself_o in_o the_o soul_n and_o its_o faculty_n in_o this_o second_o grace_n which_o be_v the_o action_n or_o work_n of_o faith_n we_o be_v not_o now_o mere_o passive_a 6._o page_n 6._o but_o be_v act_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n we_o act_n be_v excite_v to_o believe_v we_o believe_v in_o one_o word_n with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n operate_a we_o cooperate_v and_o be_v worker_n together_o with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n now_o he_o cap._n 34._o p._n 258._o tell_v we_o afterward_o in_o the_o same_o book_n that_o all_o this_o and_o more_o than_o this_o even_o the_o holy_a change_n that_o be_v wrought_v in_o the_o soul_n by_o a_o true_a evangelical_n repentance_n be_v before_o justification_n for_o say_v he_o repentance_n belong_v to_o the_o place_n concern_v effectual_a call_v repentance_n go_v before_o justification_n as_o faith_n and_o hope_n go_v before_o it_o from_o all_o which_o we_o observe_v that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o rollock_n there_o be_v a_o real_a change_n make_v in_o the_o soul_n before_o it_o be_v justify_v and_o that_o it_o be_v prepare_v for_o justification_n by_o god_n work_v in_o it_o a_o holy_a principle_n or_o disposition_n whereby_o it_o be_v incline_v and_o enable_v to_o produce_v the_o act_n of_o faith_n whereby_o it_o receive_v christ_n that_o for_o his_o sake_n and_o through_o his_o righteousness_n it_o may_v be_v justify_v we_o may_v bring_v dr._n ames_n and_o dr._n twiss_n for_o our_o five_o and_o six_o witness_n for_o they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n with_o rollock_n as_o to_o this_o matter_n save_v that_o rollock_n take_v the_o word_n regeneration_n to_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o sanctification_n which_o come_v after_o effectual_a call_v and_o justification_n whereas_o they_o take_v effectual_a call_v and_o regeneration_n to_o be_v two_o word_n which_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n to_o wit_n the_o first_o save_v change_n which_o be_v wrought_v in_o the_o soul_n when_o a_o new_a seminal_a principle_n of_o spiritual_a life_n be_v put_v into_o it_o and_o it_o be_v bring_v off_o from_o sin_n and_o the_o world_n unto_o christ_n and_o unto_o god_n through_o christ_n that_o it_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o faith_n in_o his_o blood_n this_o appear_v to_o have_v be_v their_o judgement_n by_o what_o we_o have_v already_o quote_v out_o of_o they_o upon_o the_o former_a head_n let_v but_o any_o that_o can_v read_v in_o ames_n his_o marrow_n of_o divinity_n the_o twenty_o six_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o book_n concern_v vocation_n as_o likewise_o the_o ten_o chapter_n of_o his_o reply_n to_o grevinchovius_n concern_v the_o nature_n of_o faith_n where_o he_o prove_v that_o god_n by_o his_o spirit_n put_v a_o seminal_a permanent_a principle_n of_o grace_n into_o the_o soul_n at_o its_o first_o conversion_n and_o that_o before_o any_o act_n of_o save_a
good_a man_n that_o be_v a_o good_a man_n initial_o or_o make_v he_o begin_v to_o be_v a_o good_a man._n but_o now_o this_o make_v against_o our_o author_n himself_o and_o clear_o prove_v that_o no_o man_n can_v believe_v with_o a_o save_n justify_v faith_n till_o gospel_n grace_n renew_v he_o and_o make_v he_o first_o a_o good_a man_n this_o consequence_n from_o his_o own_o word_n he_o can_v never_o avoid_v unless_o he_o will_v say_v that_o a_o save_a justify_v faith_n be_v no_o good_a thing_n for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o evil_a but_o a_o good_a thing_n no_o man_n can_v do_v it_o till_o gospel_n grace_n have_v renew_v he_o and_o make_v he_o first_o a_o good_a man._n so_o then_o we_o have_v find_v by_o his_o own_o confession_n that_o a_o man_n be_v first_o good_a through_o grace_n and_o then_o he_o believe_v in_o christ_n to_o justification_n and_o if_o a_o man_n be_v thus_o good_a initial_o good_a before_o he_o actual_o believe_v with_o a_o save_n justify_v faith_n then_o be_v he_o holy_a also_o initial_o holy_a before_o he_o do_v so_o believe_v for_o that_o initial_a goodness_n and_o this_o initial_a holiness_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o further_o if_o a_o man_n may_v be_v and_o must_v be_v thus_o initial_o good_a and_o holy_a before_o he_o actual_o believe_v than_o he_o may_v be_v qualify_v before_o he_o actual_o believe_v for_o he_o can_v be_v good_a and_o holy_a as_o aforesaid_a without_o god_n put_v some_o good_a quality_n into_o he_o this_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n have_v determine_v in_o their_o 11._o canon_n on_o the_o 3_o and_z 4_o article_n as_o be_v show_v before_o and_o it_o be_v hope_v our_o author_n will_v not_o oppose_v the_o determination_n of_o that_o synod_n now_o whenever_o god_n by_o his_o spirit_n put_v good_a quality_n into_o a_o man_n he_o thereby_o qualify_v he_o for_o the_o very_a formal_a effect_n of_o good_a quality_n be_v to_o qualify_v the_o man_n to_o who_o god_n give_v they_o 11._o pag._n 11._o but_o say_v our_o author_n whence_o shall_v a_o man_n have_v any_o good_a qualification_n before_o he_o be_v in_o christ_n by_o faith_n since_o a_o sinner_n out_o of_o christ_n have_v no_o qualification_n for_o christ_n but_o sin_n and_o misery_n we_o answer_v that_o before_o a_o man_n be_v in_o christ_n by_o faith_n he_o have_v some_o good_a qualification_n from_o christ_n by_o his_o spirit_n prepare_v he_o for_o and_o bring_v he_o unto_o union_n with_o himself_o by_o actual_a faith_n as_o to_o what_o he_o say_v that_o a_o sinner_n out_o of_o christ_n have_v no_o qualification_n for_o christ_n but_o sin_n and_o misery_n we_o answer_v by_o distinguish_v thus_o he_o have_v no_o qualification_n but_o sin_n and_o misery_n of_o and_o from_o himself_o it_o be_v true_a but_o that_o he_o have_v no_o qualification_n of_o and_o from_o christ_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n but_o sin_n and_o misery_n it_o be_v utter_o false_a and_o the_o contrary_n be_v true_a to_o wit_n that_o a_o man_n who_o have_v no_o qualification_n of_o and_o from_o himself_o but_o the_o evil_a qualification_n of_o sin_n and_o misery_n yet_o of_o and_o from_o christ_n by_o his_o spirit_n and_o word_n he_o have_v the_o good_a qualification_n of_o a_o heart_n in_o part_n change_v and_o renew_v and_o of_o a_o holy_a seed_n and_o prineiple_n of_o grace_n put_v into_o his_o heart_n though_o a_o man_n can_v qualify_v himself_o for_o christ_n yet_o nothing_o hinder_v but_o that_o christ_n by_o his_o spirit_n and_o word_n can_v qualify_v a_o man_n for_o union_n with_o himself_o and_o for_o justification_n by_o his_o meritorious_a righteousness_n yes_o say_v our_o author_n something_o do_v hinder_v for_o i_o bold_o assert_v that_o such_o a_o man_n who_o be_v so_o qualify_v will_v not_o 11._o let._n p._n 11._o nor_o can_v ever_o believe_v on_o christ_n we_o be_v not_o willing_a here_o to_o apply_v the_o proverb_n that_o none_o be_v so_o bold_a as_o blind_a bayard_n but_o this_o we_o must_v say_v that_o we_o can_v see_v that_o this_o man_n have_v any_o probable_a ground_n for_o such_o confidence_n sure_o we_o be_v it_o will_v be_v a_o very_a difficult_a task_n to_o prove_v that_o a_o man_n can_v possible_o believe_v in_o christ_n because_o christ_n by_o his_o word_n and_o spirit_n have_v fit_v and_o qualify_v he_o for_o believe_v but_o it_o seem_v nothing_o be_v difficult_a to_o this_o bold_a man_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v prove_v it_o by_o a_o argument_n take_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o faith_n thus_o faith_n say_v he_o be_v a_o lose_v helpless_a condemn_a sinner_n cast_v himself_o on_o christ_n for_o salvation_n but_o the_o qualify_a man_n be_v no_o such_o person_n and_o then_o the_o conclusion_n if_o right_o infer_v from_o the_o premise_n be_v this_o ergo_fw-la the_o qualify_a man_n be_v not_o faith_n etc._n etc._n a_o goodly_a argument_n indeed_o and_o a_o foundation_n fit_a for_o this_o man_n to_o ground_v his_o confidence_n upon_o if_o he_o say_v that_o his_o argument_n do_v not_o so_o conclude_v but_o rather_o thus_o faith_n be_v a_o gracious_a act_n whereby_o a_o lose_v helpless_a condemn_v sinner_n cast_v himself_o on_o christ_n for_o salvation_n but_o the_o qualify_a man_n be_v not_o a_o lose_v helpless_a condemn_v sinner_n cast_v himself_o on_o christ_n for_o salvation_n therefore_o the_o qualify_a man_n be_v not_o what_o be_v he_o not_o why_o he_o be_v not_o a_o lose_a helpless_a condemn_v sinner_n cast_v himself_o on_o christ_n for_o salvation_n be_v this_o now_o his_o argument_n and_o do_v it_o thus_o conclude_v than_o his_o argument_n be_v as_o ridiculous_a as_o his_o confidence_n let_v he_o keep_v to_o his_o premise_n lay_v down_o in_o his_o letter_n and_o if_o he_o can_v let_v he_o regular_o infer_v from_o they_o another_o conclusion_n than_o one_o of_o these_o but_o let_v what_o will_v become_v of_o the_o form_n of_o his_o argument_n we_o answer_v by_o distinguish_v both_o proposition_n and_o 1._o for_o the_o first_o we_o say_v that_o a_o person_n who_o by_o true_a faith_n cast_v himself_o on_o christ_n for_o salvation_n be_v indeed_o a_o sinnor_n lose_v and_o helpless_a in_o and_o of_o himself_o and_o he_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o law_n but_o though_o that_o be_v true_a yet_o in_o order_n of_o nature_n before_o he_o believe_v and_o in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o believe_v he_o be_v find_v and_o help_v by_o the_o lord_n and_o have_v a_o pardon_n offer_v he_o by_o the_o gospel_n and_o by_o faith_n he_o receive_v it_o act_n 10.43_o then_o for_o the_o second_o proposition_n we_o distinguish_v it_o also_o thus_o the_o qualify_a man_n be_v not_o such_o a_o person_n be_v not_o a_o lose_v helpless_a condemn_a sinner_n that_o be_v the_o man_n that_o be_v 1._o qualify_v with_o a_o satisfactory_a meritorious_a qualification_n 2._o that_o be_v so_o qualify_v by_o himself_o he_o be_v not_o such_o a_o person_n it_o be_v true_a and_o we_o grant_v it_o but_o with_o all_o we_o say_v that_o indeed_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o man_n so_o to_o qualify_v himself_o yet_o we_o maintain_v that_o a_o man_n who_o be_v qualify_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o free_a effectual_a grace_n of_o christ_n be_v such_o a_o person_n and_o do_v by_o faith_n ●ast_v himself_o on_o christ_n for_o salvation_n our_o be_v qualify_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o free_a effectual_a grace_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o far_o from_o hinder_v our_o believe_a as_o our_o author_n bold_o but_o ignorant_o affirm_v that_o in_o truth_n it_o do_v very_o much_o further_o our_o believe_a it_o let_v we_o see_v and_o cause_v we_o to_o feel_v that_o we_o be_v lose_v and_o helpless_a in_o and_o of_o ourselves_o and_o condemn_v by_o the_o law_n and_o that_o we_o be_v find_v and_o help_v by_o the_o lord_n and_o can_v be_v pardon_v only_o by_o the_o gospel_n whereupon_o it_o incline_v and_o move_v we_o to_o flee_v unto_o christ_n for_o refuge_n and_o to_o cast_v ourselves_o on_o he_o for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n three_o in_o the_o same_o page_n 11._o let._n p._n 11._o we_o have_v another_o of_o his_o objection_n against_o the_o truth_n we_o have_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n reason_n and_o testimony_n of_o protestant_a divine_n shall_v we_o say_v he_o warn_v people_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o believe_v on_o christ_n too_o soon_o either_o this_o interrogation_n be_v altogether_o impertinent_a or_o there_o be_v this_o argument_n imply_v in_o it_o if_o there_o be_v a_o real_a change_n and_o a_o holy_a gracious_a principle_n wrought_v in_o people_n heart_n before_o they_o do_v or_o can_v believe_v with_o a_o save_n justify_v faith_n than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o minister_n shall_v warn_v people_n not_o to_o believe_v on_o christ_n too_o soon_o but_o so_o to_o do_v be_v absurd_a and_o contrary_a to_o
meruisse_fw-la aut_fw-la illa_fw-la virtus_fw-la gratiae_fw-la quae_fw-la sibi_fw-la quos_fw-la volicit_v subdidit_fw-la convertere_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la inconvertibiles_fw-la permansere_fw-la non_fw-la potuit_fw-la tale_n fuerunt_fw-la qui_fw-la sunt_fw-la attracti_fw-la quales_fw-la by_o qui_fw-la in_o suâ_fw-la duritiâ_fw-la sunt_fw-la relicti_fw-la feed_v illis_fw-la tribuit_fw-la gratia_fw-la stupenda_fw-la quod_fw-la voluit_fw-la istis_fw-la tribuit_fw-la veritas_fw-la justa_fw-la quod_fw-la debuit_fw-la ut_fw-la judicium_fw-la dei_fw-la magis_fw-la inscrutabile_fw-la sit_fw-la in_o electione_n gratiae_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o retributione_n justitiae_fw-la how_o much_o soever_o the_o malignity_n of_o the_o wicked_a which_o resist_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v accuse_v can_v it_o ever_o be_v prove_v that_o they_o to_o who_o special_a grace_n be_v give_v have_v deserve_v or_o merit_v it_o or_o that_o powerful_a efficacy_n of_o grace_n which_o have_v subdue_v to_o itself_o who_o it_o will_v can_v it_o not_o convert_v those_o who_o remain_v unconvert_v they_o who_o be_v draw_v to_o the_o lord_n be_v such_o as_o those_o be_v who_o be_v leave_v in_o their_o hardness_n but_o wonderful_a astonish_a grace_n give_v what_o it_o will_v to_o those_o that_o be_v convert_v and_o just_a truth_n that_o be_v the_o true_a and_o just_a god_n render_v what_o he_o owe_v unto_o the_o other_o who_o be_v unconvert_v so_o that_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v more_o unsearchable_a in_o the_o election_n of_o grace_n than_o in_o the_o retribution_n of_o justice_n that_o be_v it_o be_v more_o difficult_a to_o give_v a_o reason_n why_o god_n give_v special_a effectual_a convert_v grace_n to_o such_o and_o such_o particular_a person_n who_o can_v never_o deserve_v to_o have_v it_o than_o why_o he_o withhold_v it_o from_o other_o person_n who_o have_v real_o deserve_v to_o want_v it_o this_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o last_o clause_n of_o that_o excellent_a writer_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o the_o father_n on_o the_o one_o hand_n assign_v the_o just_a demerit_n of_o the_o ungodly_a resister_n of_o god_n grace_n for_o the_o reason_n of_o their_o not_o be_v convert_v by_o special_a and_o victorious_a grace_n but_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n he_o acknowledge_v that_o no_o reason_n can_v be_v give_v why_o the_o like_a resistance_n be_v overcome_v and_o take_v away_o in_o the_o elect_n and_o they_o be_v save_o convert_v by_o discriminate_v grace_n but_o that_o it_o be_v god_n good_a will_n and_o pleasure_n to_o have_v it_o so_o of_o the_o same_o judgement_n be_v we_o in_o this_o matter_n and_o as_o we_o derive_v the_o reason_n on_o the_o part_n of_o god_n select_a people_n why_o they_o rather_o than_o other_o be_v infallible_o convert_v by_o special_a grace_n from_o the_o mere_a will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n because_o we_o know_v no_o other_o reason_n of_o it_o so_o we_o ascribe_v unto_o god_n all_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o say_v with_o our_o bless_a saviour_n we_o thank_v thou_o o_o father_n lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n because_o thou_o have_v hide_v these_o thing_n from_o the_o wise_a and_o prudent_a 26._o mat._n 11.25_o 26._o and_o have_v reveal_v they_o unto_o babe_n even_o so_o father_n for_o so_o it_o seem_v good_a in_o thy_o sight_n thus_o we_o have_v brief_o declare_v what_o our_o opinion_n be_v concern_v the_o preparation_n and_o disposition_n which_o ordinary_o go_v before_o save_v conversion_n in_o some_o more_o in_o other_o less_o in_o some_o for_o a_o long_o in_o other_o for_o a_o short_a time_n but_o in_o all_o so_o as_o to_o enlighten_v convince_v and_o humble_v they_o three_o now_o in_o the_o three_o and_o last_o place_n we_o shall_v show_v that_o our_o opinion_n concern_v they_o be_v neither_o new_a nor_o singular_a but_o that_o what_o we_o believe_v in_o this_o matter_n we_o have_v learn_v and_o receive_v from_o the_o most_o eminent_a pastor_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n whereof_o many_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o true_a faith_n before_o many_o of_o we_o be_v bear_v and_o our_o first_o witness_n be_v calvin_n who_o write_v against_o pighius_fw-la do_v plain_o confess_v that_o sinner_n be_v dispose_v and_o prepare_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n before_o they_o be_v save_o convert_v and_o justify_v his_o word_n be_v these_o neque_fw-la verò_fw-la hoc_fw-la medo_fw-la praeparari_fw-la hominem_fw-la ad_fw-la recipiendum_fw-la justitiae_fw-la donum_fw-la negamus_fw-la sed_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la directione_n tamen_fw-la calvin_n contra_fw-la pighium_n de_fw-fr lib._n arbit_fw-la lib._n 5._o §._o adducit_fw-la tamen_fw-la non_fw-la svo_fw-la ingenio_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o neither_o do_v we_o deny_v that_o man_n be_v thus_o prepare_v to_o receive_v the_o gift_n of_o righteusness_n but_o it_o be_v by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o not_o by_o his_o own_o natural_a understanding_n and_o strength_n christ_n do_v not_o call_v any_o to_o come_v unto_o he_o but_o such_o as_o labour_v and_o be_v heavy_a lade_v but_o yet_o it_o be_v he_o himself_o who_o make_v we_o to_o feel_v our_o burden_n and_o to_o groan_v under_o it_o we_o confess_v that_o the_o common_a proverb_n be_v most_o true_a that_o it_o be_v the_o only_a hopeful_a beginning_n of_o a_o cure_n where_o the_o sick_a person_n be_v sensible_a of_o his_o disease_n therefore_o that_o christ_n may_v become_v thy_o physician_n it_o behoove_v thou_o to_o acknowledge_v and_o be_v sensible_a of_o thy_o disease_n again_o in_o his_o institution_n he_o express_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v some_o common_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n 11._o idem_fw-la instit_fw-la lib._n 3._o cap._n 2._o §._o 11._o whereof_o the_o non-elect_a be_v partaker_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n experientia_fw-la inquit_fw-la ostendit_fw-la reprobos_fw-la interdum_fw-la fimili_fw-la ferè_fw-la sensu_fw-la atque_fw-la electos_fw-la affici_fw-la ut_fw-la ne_fw-la svo_fw-la quidem_fw-la judicio_fw-la quicquam_fw-la ab_fw-la electis_fw-la differant_fw-la etc._n etc._n experience_n say_v calvin_n show_v that_o the_o reprobate_n be_v sometime_o affect_v with_o a_o sense_n and_o feeling_n to_o wit_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n almost_o like_a to_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o elect_n in_o so_o much_o that_o in_o their_o own_o judgement_n they_o differ_v not_o at_o all_o from_o the_o elect._n wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o absurdity_n at_o all_o in_o this_o that_o by_o the_o apostle_n a_o taste_n of_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o by_o christ_n a_o temporary_a faith_n be_v ascribe_v unto_o they_o thus_o calvin_n who_o there_o show_v that_o in_o the_o elect_a after_o save_v conversion_n and_o justification_n there_o be_v always_o something_o of_o a_o high_a nature_n which_o difference_v they_o from_o the_o non-elect_a and_o then_o add_v sed_fw-la hoc_fw-la minimè_fw-la obstat_fw-la quin_fw-la illa_fw-la inferior_a spiritus_fw-la operatio_fw-la cursum_fw-la suum_fw-la habeat_fw-la etiam_fw-la in_o reprobis_fw-la yet_o this_o do_v no_o way_n hinder_v but_o that_o that_o inferior_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n have_v its_o course_n even_o in_o the_o reprobate_n and_o more_o he_o have_v to_o this_o purpose_n whereby_o it_o evident_o appear_v that_o in_o his_o judgement_n there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o we_o call_v common_a grace_n which_o oftentimes_o make_v such_o a_o change_n upon_o the_o unregenerate_a that_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o distinguish_v they_o from_o the_o true_o regenerate_v we_o may_v also_o allege_v to_o this_o purpose_n the_o testimony_n of_o chemnitius_n in_o his_o examination_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n of_o the_o divine_n of_o wittenberg_n in_o the_o conference_n at_o al●enburg_n of_o pareus_n write_v against_o bellarmine_n about_o justification_n of_o paulus_n ferrius_n in_o his_o specimen_fw-la of_o ecclesiastical_a orthodox_n divinity_n and_o of_o other_o acknowledge_v and_o maintain_v that_o there_o be_v such_o preparation_n and_o disposition_n wrought_v in_o sinner_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n spirit_n before_o their_o regeneration_n or_o conversion_n and_o justification_n but_o because_o we_o have_v be_v long_o already_o than_o we_o first_o intend_v we_o will_v pass_v they_o and_o come_v to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v of_o more_o weight_n with_o we_o than_o any_o other_o testimony_n of_o protestant_a divine_n that_o can_v be_v bring_v either_o for_o or_o against_o those_o previous_a disposition_n we_o speak_v of_o and_o from_o among_o all_o that_o may_v make_v for_o our_o purpose_n in_o that_o famous_a synod_n we_o will_v single_a out_o and_o content_v ourselves_o with_o what_o our_o own_o british_a divine_n have_v say_v for_o this_o opinion_n in_o their_o collegiate_n suffrage_n approve_v by_o the_o synod_n and_o record_v in_o its_o acts._n and_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o our_o countryman_n who_o can_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o original_a to_o examine_v our_o translation_n 8._o act._n synodi_n dordr_n part_n 2._o p._n 165.6_o 7_o 8._o we_o will_v as_o we_o have_v do_v before_o make_v use_n of_o the_o old_a english_a
translation_n which_o some_o of_o they_o may_v have_v or_o may_v meet_v with_o it_o thus_o than_o they_o begin_v of_o those_o thing_n that_o go_v before_o conversion_n the_o first_o position_n there_o be_v certain_a external_a work_n ordinary_o require_v of_o man_n before_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o state_n of_o regeneration_n or_o conversion_n etc._n on_o the_o 3d._n and_o four_o article_n p._n 68_o 69_o 70_o 71_o 72_o 73_o 74_o etc._n etc._n which_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v perform_v free_o by_o they_o and_o other_o while_o free_o omit_v as_o to_o go_v to_o church_n to_o hear_v the_o word_n preach_v or_o the_o like_a this_o they_o prove_v from_o rom._n 10.14_o as_o also_o from_o reason_n and_o experience_n and_o other_o scripture_n mark_v 6.20_o act_n 13.46_o psal_n 58.4_o 5._o the_o second_o position_n there_o be_v certain_a inward_a effect_n go_v before_o conversion_n or_o regeneration_n which_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n be_v stir_v up_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n not_o yet_o justify_v such_o as_o be_v a_o knowledge_n of_o god_n will_n a_o sense_n of_o sin_n a_o fear_n of_o punshment_n a_o bethink_v of_o freedom_n or_o deliverance_n and_o some_o hope_n or_o pardon_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v not_o go_v to_o bring_v man_n to_o the_o state_n of_o justification_n in_o which_o we_o have_v peace_n with_o god_n through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o a_o sudden_a enthusiasm_n or_o rapture_n but_o by_o divers_a degree_n of_o forego_v action_n tame_v and_o prepare_v they_o through_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n one_a this_o we_o may_v see_v in_o those_o who_o upon_o bear_v s._n peter_n sermon_n feel_v the_o burden_n of_o their_o sin_n be_v strike_v with_o fear_n and_o sorrow_n desire_v deliverance_n and_o conceive_v some_o hope_n of_o pardon_n all_o which_o may_v be_v collect_v of_o those_o word_n act_n 2.37_o when_o they_o hear_v this_o they_o be_v prick_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o say_v unto_o peter_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n man_n and_o brethren_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v 2._o this_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o thing_n require_v for_o as_o in_o the_o natural_a generation_n of_o man_n there_o be_v many_o previous_a disposition_n which_o go_v before_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o the_o form_n so_o also_o in_o the_o spiritual_a generation_n by_o many_o action_n of_o grace_n which_o must_v go_v before_o do_v we_o come_v to_o the_o spiritual_a nativity_n 3_o to_o conclude_v this_o appear_v by_o the_o instrument_n which_o god_n use_v for_o the_o regenerate_v of_o man_n for_o he_o employ_v the_o ministry_n of_o man_n and_o the_o instrument_n of_o the_o word_n 1_o cor._n 4.15_o i_o have_v beget_v you_o through_o the_o gospel_n but_o if_o god_n will_v regenerate_v and_o justify_v a_o wicked_a man_n immediate_o be_v prepare_v by_o no_o knowledge_n no_o sortow_v no_o desire_n no_o hope_n of_o pardon_n there_o will_v be_v no_o need_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o man_n nor_o of_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o word_n for_o this_o purpose_n neither_o will_v any_o care_n lie_v upon_o the_o minister_n divide_v the_o word_n aright_o fit_o and_o wise_o first_o to_o wound_v the_o conf●iences_n of_o their_o auditor_n with_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o law_n then_o to_o raise_v they_o up_o with_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o exhort_v they_o to_o beg_v faith_n and_o repentance_n at_o god_n hand_n by_o prayer_n and_o tear_n the_o three_o position_n who_o god_n do_v thus_o prepare_v by_o his_o spirit_n through_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o word_n those_o do_v he_o true_o and_o serious_o call_v and_o invite_v to_o faith_n and_o conversion_n by_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o benefit_n offer_v and_o by_o the_o most_o evident_a word_n of_o god_n we_o must_v judge_v of_o those_o help_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v bestow_v upon_o man_n and_o not_o by_o the_o abuse_n or_o the_o event_n therefore_o when_o the_o gospel_n of_o its_o own_o nature_n call_v man_n to_o repentance_n and_o salvation_n when_o the_o incitement_n of_o divine_a grace_n tend_v the_o same_o way_n we_o must_v not_o suppose_v any_o thing_n be_v do_v feign_o by_o god_n this_o be_v prove_v by_o those_o earnest_a pathetical_a entreaty_n 2_o cor._n 5.20_o we_o pray_v you_o in_o christ_n stead_n be_v ye●_n reconcile_v to_o god_n those_o exhortation_n 2_o cor._n 6.1_o we_o beseech_v you_o that_o you_o receive_v not_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o vain_a those_o expostulation_n gal._n 1.6_o i_o marvel_v that_o you_o be_v so_o soon_o remove_v from_o he_o that_o call_v you_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n those_o promise_n revel_v 3.20_o behold_v i_o stand_v at_o the_o door_n and_o knock_n if_o any_o man_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o open_v the_o door_n i_o will_v come_v in_o to_o he_o but_o if_o god_n shall_v not_o serious_o invite_v all_o to_o who_o he_o vouchsafe_v this_o gift_n of_o his_o word_n and_o spirit_n to_o a_o serious_a conversion_n sure_o both_o god_n shall_v deceive_v many_o who_o he_o call_v in_o his_o son_n name_n and_o the_o messenger_n of_o the_o evangelical_n promise_v may_v be_v accuse_v of_o false_a witness_n and_o those_o who_o be_v call_v to_o conversion_n do_v neglect_n to_o obey_v may_v be_v more_o excusable_a for_o that_o call_n by_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n can_v be_v think_v to_o leave_v man_n unexcusable_a which_o be_v only_o exhibit_v to_o this_o end_n to_o make_v they_o unexcusable_a the_o four_o position_n those_o who_o god_n have_v thus_o dispose_v he_o do_v not_o forsake_v nor_o cease_v to_o further_o they_o in_o the_o true_a way_n to_o conversion_n before_o he_o be_v forsake_v of_o they_o by_o a_o voluntary_a neglect_n or_o repulse_n of_o this_o initial_a or_o enter_v grace_n the_o talon_n of_o grace_n give_v by_o god_n be_v take_v from_o none_o but_o from_o he_o who_o first_o bury_v it_o by_o his_o own_o fault_n mat._n 25.28_o hence_o be_v it_o that_o in_o the_o scripture_n every_o where_o we_o be_v admonish_v that_o we_o resist_v not_o the_o spirit_n that_o we_o quench_v not_o the_o spirit_n that_o we_o receive_v not_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o vain_a that_o we_o depart_v not_o from_o god_n heb._n 3.12_o yea_o that_o be_v most_o evident_o note_v to_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o god_n forsake_v man_n because_o god_n be_v first_o forsal_a 〈◊〉_d by_o man_n prov._n 1.24_o etc._n etc._n because_o i_o have_v call_v and_o you_o refuse_v i_o will_v laugh_v at_o your_o calamity_n 2_o chron._n 24.20_o because_o you_o have_v forsake_v the_o lord_n he_o have_v also_o forsake_v you_o but_o never_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v there_o the_o least_o mention_n or_o intimation_n that_o god_n be_v wont_a or_o that_o he_o will_v at_o any_o time_n without_o some_o fault_n of_o man_n go_v before_o take_v away_o from_o any_o man_n the_o aid_n of_o his_o exciting_a grace_n or_o any_o help_n which_o he_o have_v once_o confer_v towards_o man_n conversion_n or_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o original_a that_o be_v ordain_v unto_o man_n conversion_n thus_o the_o orthodox_n father_n who_o have_v to_o do_v with_o the_o pelagian_o ever_o ●anght_n it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o we_o continue_v in_o a_o good_a will_n who_o before_o he_o be_v forsake_v for_o sake_n no_o man_n 7._o aug._n vel_fw-la prosper_v a●_n art_n fall_v ad_fw-la 7._o and_o ost-time_n convert_v many_o that_o forsake_v he_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o prosper_n in_o answer_n to_o the_o seven_o objection_n of_o one_o vincentius_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o augustine_n and_o prosper_n the_o five_o position_n these_o forego_v effect_n wrought_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n may_v be_v stifle_v and_o utter_o extinguish_v by_o the_o fault_n of_o a_o rebellious_a will_n and_o in_o many_o be_v so_o that_o some_o in_o who_o heart_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n some_o knowledge_n of_o divine_a truth_n some_o sorrow_n for_o sin_n some_o desire_n and_o care_n of_o deliverance_n have_v be_v imprint_v be_v change_v to_o the_o quite_o contrary_a they_o reject_v and_o hate_v the_o truth_n they_o give_v themselves_o up_o to_o their_o lust_n be_v harden_v in_o their_o sin_n and_o without_o all_o desire_n or_o care_n of_o freedom_n from_o they_o rot_v and_o putrify_v in_o they_o matth._n 13.19_o the_o wicked_a one_o come_v and_o catch_v away_o that_o which_o be_v sow_o in_o his_o heart_n 2_o pet._n 2.21_o it_o have_v be_v better_a for_o they_o not_o to_o have_v know_v the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n than_o after_o they_o have_v know_v it_o to_o turn_v from_o the_o holy_a commandment_n detrver_v unto_o they_o but_o it_o be_v happen_v to_o they_o according_a to_o the_o true_a proverb_n the_o dog_n i●_n turn_v to_o his_o own_o vomit_n again_o
fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n which_o prepare_v for_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o for_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n by_o the_o gospel_n then_o in_o the_o preach_a the_o gospel_n the_o tender_a mercy_n of_o god_n display_v unto_o we_o and_o how_o ready_a be_v be_v to_o pardon_v sin_n in_o general_n and_o that_o of_o free_a grace_n may_v better_v our_o repentance_n and_o when_o we_o be_v thus_o by_o degree_n bring_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n to_o cry_v abba_n father_n than_o our_o repentance_n shall_v be_v most_o perfect_a as_o before_o i_o say_v and_o when_o we_o look_v upon_o he_o who_o we_o have_v pierce_v and_o can_v in_o assurance_n of_o faith_n say_v with_o the_o apostle_n i_o live_v by_o faith_n in_o he_o who_o love_v i_o and_o give_v himself_o for_o i_o this_o be_v of_o power_n to_o prick_v a_o master_n vein_n and_o make_v we_o bleed_v out_o repentance_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o our_o gracious_a god_n who_o we_o have_v offend_v and_o who_o yet_o in_o despite_n of_o our_o sin_n have_v love_v we_o more_o devout_o and_o affectionate_o than_o ever_o before_o yet_o be_v it_o true_a as_o he_o the_o arminian_n say_v that_o repentance_n be_v nothing_o worth_a without_o faith_n what_o think_v he_o of_o ahabs_n repentance_n when_o he_o put_v on_o sackcloth_n and_o wallow_v in_o ash_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o judgement_n against_o his_o house_n bring_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o prophet_n eliah_n do_v we_o not_o know_v what_o the_o lord_n say_v hereupon_o unto_o eliah_n see_v thou_o how_o ahab_n be_v humble_v before_o i_o because_o he_o submit_v himself_o before_o i_o i_o will_v not_o bring_v that_o evil_n in_o his_o day_n the_o uttermost_a of_o the_o ninivites_n faith_n be_v but_o this_o that_o we_o read_v of_o who_o can_v tell_v if_o god_n will_v turn_v and_o repent_v and_o turn_v from_o his_o fierce_a wrath_n that_o we_o perish_v not_o yet_o their_o repentance_n be_v such_o that_o when_o god_n see_v their_o work_n that_o they_o turn_v from_o their_o evil_a way_n he_o repent_v of_o the_o evil_n which_o he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v do_v unto_o they_o and_o he_o do_v it_o not_o jon._n 3.9_o thus_o dr._n twiss_n whereby_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o be_v far_o from_o think_v that_o all_o which_o a_o man_n can_v do_v before_o he_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o he_o and_o that_o he_o may_v get_v a_o holy_a heart_n and_o a_o save_a faith_n and_o so_o be_v fit_v to_o lead_v a_o holy_a life_n be_v nothing_o but_o vain_a labour_n and_o a_o act_n of_o sin_n object_n 2._o second_o our_o author_n object_n the_o seven_o article_n of_o the_o 16._o chapter_n of_o the_o westminster_n confession_n of_o faith_n and_o our_o answer_n be_v that_o that_o article_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o same_o in_o effect_n with_o the_o 13_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v take_v in_o the_o same_o sense_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o work_n of_o unregenerate_a man_n do_v before_o and_o without_o any_o grace_n of_o christ_n spirit_n though_o they_o may_v be_v material_o good_a yet_o they_o be_v formal_o so_o sinful_a that_o they_o do_v not_o make_v a_o man_n meet_v to_o receive_v any_o grace_n from_o god_n either_o the_o grace_n of_o regeneration_n or_o justification_n and_o as_o for_o the_o work_n of_o unregenerate_a man_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o help_n of_o supernatural_a prevent_a common_a grace_n though_o they_o be_v better_a than_o the_o former_a which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o alone_a strength_n of_o nature_n yet_o they_o be_v sinful_a too_o they_o be_v so_o defile_v with_o sin_n as_o they_o proceed_v from_o a_o unregenerate_a man_n that_o they_o can_v please_v god_n so_o far_o as_o to_o make_v a_o man_n meet_v to_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o justification_n from_o god_n nor_o do_v they_o make_v a_o man_n meet_v to_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o regeneration_n from_o god_n by_o way_n of_o reward_n due_a to_o they_o as_o congruous_o meritorious_a thereof_o yet_o in_o another_o sound_a sense_n they_o may_v make_v a_o man_n meet_v to_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o regeneration_n and_o conversion_n from_o god_n to_o wit_n as_o they_o be_v wrought_v in_o man_n by_o the_o spirit_n and_o according_a to_o the_o word_n and_o be_v ordain_v by_o god_n to_o be_v mean_n of_o remove_v such_o thing_n as_o hinder_v conversion_n and_o of_o the_o help_a man_n forward_o in_o the_o way_n unto_o and_o of_o fit_v and_o prepare_v they_o for_o conversion_n as_o a_o gracious_a gift_n which_o ordinary_o god_n free_o give_v to_o those_o who_o be_v so_o prepare_v by_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o sound_a sense_n though_o not_o in_o the_o popish_a or_o semipelagian_a sense_n the_o foresay_a work_n do_v indeed_o make_v man_n meet_v to_o receive_v grace_n from_o god_n and_o the_o article_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n say_v nothing_o to_o the_o contrary_n yea_o it_o be_v plain_o against_o that_o absired_a opinion_n that_o all_o that_o a_o unregenerate_a man_n can_v do_v by_o any_o mean_n in_o order_n to_o the_o get_n of_o his_o heart_n save_o change_v and_o initial_o sanctify_v by_o the_o special_a effectual_a grace_n of_o the_o regenerate_a spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v vain_a labour_n and_o a_o act_n of_o sin_n we_o say_v that_o the_o foresay_a article_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n be_v plain_o against_o that_o absurd_a opinion_n for_o it_o say_v express_o that_o work_v of_o unregerate_v man_n be_v thing_n which_o god_n command_v and_o be_v of_o good_a use_n both_o to_o themselves_o and_o other_o and_o one_o of_o the_o best_a use_n they_o can_v possible_o be_v of_o unto_o themselves_o be_v to_o dispose_v and_o prepare_v they_o for_o regeneration_n and_o conversion_n and_o to_o make_v they_o if_o not_o meet_v yet_o at_o least_o less_o unmeet_a to_o receive_v special_a save_v grace_n from_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n and_o thus_o according_a to_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o our_o principle_n agreeable_a thereunto_o we_o can_v give_v encouragement_n to_o unregenerate_a man_n to_o attend_v upon_o god_n in_o the_o diligent_a use_n of_o mean_n for_o obtain_v the_o free_a and_o effectual_a grace_n of_o the_o regenerate_a spirit_n and_o so_o conversion_n thereby_o but_o our_o author_n seem_v to_o tell_v unregenerate_a man_n that_o all_o they_o can_v do_v before_o they_o be_v regenerate_v and_o have_v the_o holy_a spirit_n dwell_v in_o they_o which_o be_v get_v only_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o therefore_o be_v in_o order_n of_o nature_n after_o faith_n in_o christ_n although_o they_o do_v it_o with_o a_o desire_n that_o they_o may_v be_v regenerate_v and_o may_v obtain_v a_o precious_a holy_a faith_n in_o christ_n and_o thereby_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v all_o vain_a labour_n and_o a_o act_n of_o sin_n now_o be_v not_o this_o great_a encouragement_n for_o man_n to_o wait_v upon_o god_n in_o the_o use_n of_o his_o appoint_a mean_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o convert_v grace_n and_o a_o new_a holy_a heart_n to_o tell_v they_o that_o all_o they_o can_v do_v in_o order_n to_o that_o end_n be_v vain_a labour_n and_o act_v of_o sin_n we_o hope_v such_o man_n will_v not_o believe_v our_o author_n but_o if_o they_o do_v there_o be_v nothing_o can_v be_v expect_v from_o they_o but_o that_o ●hev_n shall_v cast_v off_o all_o use_n of_o mean_n and_o give_v over_o all_o read_n hear_v and_o pray_v for_o why_o shall_v they_o trouble_v themselves_o with_o such_o religious_a exercise_n since_o all_o be_v a_o act_n of_o sin_n and_o lose_v labour_n too_o yet_o if_o our_o author_n shall_v intend_v to_o set_v up_o for_o a_o quietist_n the_o foresay_a doctrine_n may_v be_v of_o good_a use_n to_o bring_v in_o disciple_n to_o he_o for_o he_o can_v tell_v they_o hold_o as_o his_o manner_n be_v that_o if_o they_o will_v become_v quietist_n he_o will_v show_v they_o a_o infallible_a way_n wherein_o they_o shall_v neither_o act_v sin_n nor_o yet_o lose_v their_o labour_n for_o if_o they_o will_v become_v right_a quietist_n they_o shall_v neither_o act_v nor_o labour_n but_o whole_o rest_v from_o action_n and_o labour_n and_o shall_v not_o act_v sin_n nor_o lose_v their_o labour_n because_o they_o shall_v not_o act_v nor_o labour_n at_o all_o but_o whole_o rest_v from_o action_n and_o labour_n and_o while_o they_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o perfect_a rest_n without_o any_o kind_n of_o action_n or_o labour_n at_o all_o then_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n shall_v fall_v upon_o they_o and_o regenerate_v and_o convert_v they_o 3d._a objection_n three_o he_o object_n the_o testimony_n of_o calvin_n who_o in_o his_o institution_n write_v thus_o
against_o the_o papist_n 6._o institut_fw-la lib._n 3_o cap._n 15_o §_o 6._o they_o have_v find_v out_o i_o know_v not_o what_o moral_a good_a work_n whereby_o man_n be_v make_v acceptable_a to_o god_n before_o they_o be_v ingraft_v into_o christ_n as_o if_o the_o scripture_n lie_v when_o it_o say_v they_o be_v all_o in_o death_n who_o have_v not_o the_o son_n 1_o john_n 5.12_o if_o they_o be_v in_o death_n how_o shall_v they_o beget_v matter_n of_o life_n as_o if_o it_o mere_a of_o no_o force_n whatsoever_o be_v without_o faith_n be_v sin_n rom._n 14.23_o as_o if_o a_o evil_a tree_n can_v have_v good_a fruit_n but_o now_o what_o place_n have_v those_o most_o pestilent_a sophister_n leave_v unto_o christ_n where_o he_o may_v put_v forth_o and_o display_v his_o virtue_n why_o they_o say_v that_o be_v have_v merit_v for_o we_o the_o first_o grace_n that_o be_v he_o have_v give_v we_o occasion_n of_o merit_v and_o that_o now_o it_o be_v our_o part_n not_o to_o be_v want_v in_o improve_n the_o occasion_n offer_v by_o this_o passage_n of_o calvin_n quote_v here_o more_o full_o than_o it_o be_v in_o the_o letter_n we_o see_v more_o clear_o what_o it_o be_v that_o calvin_n be_v there_o dispute_v against_o to_o wit_n the_o popish_a doctrine_n of_o man_n merit_v his_o justification_n and_o acceptance_n with_o god_n as_o righteous_a unto_o eternal_a life_n by_o moral_a good_a work_n do_v by_o he_o before_o he_o be_v justify_v and_o that_o be_v in_o their_o sense_n before_o he_o be_v initial_o sanctify_v in_o regeneration_n and_o conversion_n for_o they_o perpetual_o confound_v these_o two_o justification_n and_o initial_a sanctification_n on_o the_o infusion_n of_o habitual_a grace_n as_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n this_o be_v that_o which_o calvin_n there_o deny_v and_o disprove_v now_o this_o be_v premise_v to_o give_v light_n unto_o the_o whole_a matter_n we_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v nothing_o to_o our_o author_n purpose_n who_o bring_v this_o passage_n to_o prove_v that_o calvin_n deny_v all_o preparation_n and_o disposition_n before_o regeneration_n and_o conversion_n and_o consequent_o before_o justification_n whereas_o calvin_n here_o deny_v no_o such_o thing_n the_o only_a thing_n that_o he_o here_o deny_v against_o the_o papist_n be_v that_o a_o man_n by_o moral_a good_a work_n do_v before_o justification_n can_v merit_v justification_n which_o we_o deny_v as_o much_o as_o he_o do_v and_o that_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n too_o because_o there_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v any_o moral_a work_n before_o regeneration_n and_o conversion_n that_o be_v so_o good_a as_o to_o merit_v justification_n and_o render_v a_o man_n acceptable_a unto_o god_n but_o elsewhere_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o deny_v that_o he_o express_o affirm_v and_o maintain_v that_o there_o be_v some_o preparation_n and_o disposition_n in_o man_n previous_a to_o his_o justification_n as_o we_o have_v plain_o show_v before_o and_o particular_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o pighius_fw-la he_o only_o deny_v that_o a_o man_n by_o his_o mere_a natural_a power_n without_o any_o supernatural_a grace_n can_v prepare_v and_o dispose_v himself_o for_o special_a save_a grace_n but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o confess_v and_o prove_v that_o by_o the_o gracious_a influence_n of_o god_n spirit_n upon_o a_o man_n he_o may_v be_v and_o be_v prepare_v and_o dispose_v for_o justification_n for_o though_o the_o man_n be_v spiritual_o dead_a yet_o he_o have_v a_o natural_a life_n and_o the_o use_n of_o his_o reason_n and_o the_o live_n and_o life-giving_a spirit_n of_o god_n can_v use_v his_o natural_o live_v and_o rational_a faculty_n to_o produce_v such_o action_n as_o by_o the_o ordination_n of_o god_n shall_v prepare_v and_o dispose_v he_o to_o receive_v the_o first_o principle_n of_o spiritual_a life_n from_o the_o lord_n of_o life_n and_o upon_o the_o exercise_n of_o that_o first_o principle_n of_o spiritual_a life_n in_o act_n of_o faith_n and_o evangelical_n repentance_n god_n for_o christ_n sake_n alone_o pardon_v his_o sin_n and_o give_v he_o a_o right_a to_o eternal_a life_n this_o be_v all_o that_o we_o with_o ames_n twiss_n and_o owen_n after_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n hold_v and_o maintain_v concern_v disposition_n previous_a to_o regeneration_n and_o justification_n and_o calvin_n in_o this_o passage_n do_v not_o contradict_v this_o opinion_n but_o in_o his_o other_o book_n maintain_v it_o himself_o if_o our_o author_n shall_v yet_o object_v that_o at_o least_o one_o of_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o calvin_n allege_v against_o the_o papist_n to_o wit_n rom._n 14.23_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n will_v be_v of_o force_n against_o we_o and_o against_o the_o previous_a disposition_n which_o we_o with_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n maintain_v we_o answer_v that_o he_o will_v find_v himself_o very_o much_o mistake_v for_o it_o be_v of_o no_o force_n at_o all_o against_o we_o and_o our_o opinion_n and_o to_o speak_v our_o mind_n free_o as_o it_o become_v all_o ingenuous_a man_n to_o do_v we_o do_v not_o see_v that_o in_o itself_o it_o be_v of_o any_o force_n against_o that_o opinion_n of_o the_o papist_n which_o calvin_n be_v there_o confute_v yet_o to_o excuse_n calvin_n argue_v from_o it_o against_o they_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o speak_v his_o own_o sense_n therein_o but_o the_o sense_n of_o augustin_n who_o mistake_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o that_o place_n of_o scripture_n as_o if_o the_o word_n faith_n there_o do_v signify_v a_o justify_v faith_n and_o so_o urge_v it_o frequent_o against_o the_o pelagian_o now_o the_o popish_a schoolman_n pretend_v to_o have_v a_o great_a veneration_n for_o the_o authority_n and_o judgement_n of_o angustin_n therefore_o calvin_n know_v this_o may_v argue_v ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la against_o they_o from_o that_o place_n of_o scripture_n take_v in_o augustins_n sense_n and_o the_o argument_n may_v be_v of_o some_o use_n to_o stop_v their_o mouth_n but_o otherwise_o the_o argument_n in_o itself_o be_v of_o no_o force_n at_o all_o because_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o a_o false_a interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n faith_n in_o that_o place_n and_o this_o calvin_n know_v well_o enough_o therefore_o not_o only_o in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n but_o several_a time_n in_o his_o institution_n when_o he_o speak_v his_o own_o fence_n of_o rom._n 14.23_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n he_o say_v that_o by_o the_o word_n faith_n there_o be_v not_o mean_v a_o justify_n faith_n but_o a_o firm_a persuasion_n of_o mind_n in_o opposition_n to_o doubt_v that_o a_o thing_n be_v lawful_a and_o that_o it_o may_v be_v do_v without_o sin_n so_o that_o according_a to_o calvin_n the_o true_a and_o genuine_a sense_n of_o the_o place_n be_v that_o whatsoever_o a_o man_n do_v without_o faith_n that_o be_v without_o a_o firm_a persuasion_n of_o mind_n that_o he_o may_v lawful_o do_v it_o whatsoever_o a_o man_n do_v with_o a_o doubt_a conscience_n it_o be_v sin_n to_o he_o who_o so_o do_v it_o though_o the_o thing_n be_v never_o so_o lawful_a in_o itself_o thus_o calvin_n expound_v it_o in_o the_o three_o book_n of_o his_o institution_n chap._n 5._o §_o 10._o quum_fw-la nihil_fw-la operis_fw-la debeant_fw-la aggredi_fw-la fideles_fw-la nisi_fw-la ceriâ_fw-la conscientiâ_fw-la ut_fw-la paulus_n praecipit_fw-la rom._n 14.23_o in_o oratione_fw-la potissimum_fw-la requiritur_fw-la haec_fw-la certitudo_fw-la since_o believer_n shall_v undertake_v no_o work_n but_o with_o a_o sure_a conscience_n as_o paul_n command_v in_o rom._n 14.23_o this_o assurance_n be_v chief_o require_v in_o prayer_n to_o wit_n that_o we_o pray_v to_o no_o person_n 17._o see_v also_o instit_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 13._o §._o 17._o but_o with_o a_o sure_a and_o well_o ground_v persuasion_n in_o our_o conscience_n that_o we_o may_v lawful_o pray_v to_o he_o again_o in_o the_o four_o book_n chap._n 15._o §_o 22._o in_o rebus_fw-la etiam_fw-la minutissimis_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o cibo_fw-la &_o potu_fw-la quicquid_fw-la dubiâ_fw-la conscientiâ_fw-la aggredimur_fw-la paulus_n apart_o clamat_fw-la esse_fw-la peccatum_fw-la rom._n 14.23_o even_o in_o the_o most_o minute_n little_a thing_n as_o in_o meat_n and_o drink_n whatsoever_o we_o do_v with_o a_o doubt_a conscience_n paul_n do_v plain_o declare_v it_o to_o be_v sin_n rom._n 14.23_o for_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n in_o these_o passage_n calvin_n speak_v both_o his_o own_o sense_n and_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o other_o passage_n quote_v by_o our_o author_n he_o must_v either_o speak_v the_o sense_n of_o augustin_n and_o from_o it_o argue_v ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la against_o the_o papist_n or_o else_o he_o play_v the_o sophister_n and_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n against_o his_o own_o knowledge_n and_o conscience_n which_o we_o be_v
way_n of_o preparation_n for_o christ_n but_o they_o may_v and_o ought_v immediate_o to_o receive_v he_o into_o their_o heart_n by_o faith_n and_o confident_o trust_v he_o with_o their_o soul_n and_o body_n with_o their_o whole_a person_n to_o be_v save_v by_o he_o in_o the_o way_n agree_v upon_o between_o god_n and_o he_o and_o may_v be_v firm_o and_o full_o persuade_v that_o if_o they_o do_v so_o through_o grace_n they_o can_v possible_o miscarry_v under_o the_o hand_n of_o such_o a_o saviour_n and_o physician_n of_o soul_n thus_o we_o preach_v and_o we_o know_v none_o can_v have_v just_a cause_n to_o say_v that_o this_o be_v a_o new_a gospel_n and_o we_o hope_v none_o will_v any_o more_o say_v so_o we_o be_v sure_o this_o use_v not_o to_o be_v account_v a_o new_a gospel_n heretofore_o in_o england_n nor_o be_v it_o so_o account_v at_o geneva_n 592._o geneva_n turret_n instit_fw-la theolog._n elenct_n part_n 2._o loc_n 15._o quest_n 5._o p._n 592._o for_o turretin_n late_o teach_v there_o that_o in_o the_o spiritual_a generation_n no_o less_o than_o in_o the_o natural_a the_o soul_n of_o man_n attain_v unto_o the_o spiritual_a birth_n by_o many_o precedent_n operation_n and_o god_n who_o will_v effect_v that_o work_n in_o man_n not_o by_o violent_a rapture_n and_o enthusiastical_a motion_n but_o in_o a_o way_n agreeable_a to_o our_o nature_n and_o who_o do_v not_o in_o one_o moment_n but_o successive_o and_o by_o degree_n carry_v it_o on_o use_n various_a disposition_n whereby_o man_n may_v be_v prepare_v by_o little_a and_o little_a to_o receive_v save_v grace_n at_o least_o he_o do_v so_o in_o the_o ordinary_a way_n of_o call_v so_o that_o there_o be_v various_a act_n previous_a to_o conversion_n and_o as_o it_o be_v degree_n or_o step_n towards_o the_o thing_n itself_o before_o man_n be_v bring_v unto_o the_o state_n of_o regeneration_n and_o they_o be_v either_o external_n which_o may_v be_v do_v by_o a_o man_n or_o be_v in_o his_o power_n such_o as_o to_o go_v unto_o the_o church_n to_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o the_o like_a or_o they_o be_v internal_a which_o be_v excite_v by_o grace_n even_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o unconvert_v such_o as_o the_o reception_n and_o apprehension_n of_o the_o word_n preach_v knowledge_n of_o the_o divine_a will_n some_o sense_n of_o sin_n fear_v of_o punishment_n and_o some_o kind_n of_o desire_n of_o deliverance_n thus_o turretin_n in_o a_o book_n print_v at_o geneva_n in_o the_o year_n 1688._o by_o all_o which_o testimony_n we_o have_v make_v it_o plain_o appear_v that_o our_o opinion_n concernnig_v the_o preparation_n and_o disposition_n which_o ordinary_o go_v before_o regeneration_n and_o save_a conversion_n be_v neither_o new_a nor_o singular_a but_o that_o what_o we_o believe_v and_o preach_v as_o to_o this_o matter_n we_o have_v learn_v and_o receive_v from_o the_o most_o eminent_a pastor_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n whereof_o many_o have_v live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o true_a faith_n before_o many_o of_o we_o be_v bear_v and_o this_o may_v suffice_v as_o enough_o and_o indeed_o too_o much_o for_o the_o confutation_n of_o our_o author_n three_o error_n against_o the_o purity_n of_o our_o christian_n faith_n chap._n iii_o of_o his_o ridiculous_a way_n of_o convert_v a_o vnbeliever_n and_o first_o we_o acknowledge_v to_o our_o author_n praise_n that_o he_o make_v a_o good_a beginning_n and_o from_o the_o 17_o line_n of_o the_o 15_o page_n to_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 16_o he_o discourse_v well_o enough_o and_o show_v how_o indispensible_o necessary_a it_o be_v that_o a_o sinner_n believe_v on_o christ_n and_o what_o warrant_v he_o have_v from_o the_o command_n as_o also_o what_o encouragement_n from_o the_o conditional_a promise_n of_o god_n in_o the_o gospel_n to_o believe_v on_o christ_n for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n but_o we_o can_v say_v that_o as_o he_o make_v a_o good_a beginning_n so_o he_o continue_v till_o he_o have_v make_v a_o good_a end_n for_o he_o give_v several_a miserable_a answer_n to_o the_o question_n which_o he_o make_v the_o unbeliever_n to_o put_v unto_o the_o minister_n who_o be_v persuade_v he_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n first_o he_o make_v the_o unbeliever_n to_o ask_v the_o minister_n what_o it_o be_v to_o believe_v on_o jesus_n christ_n whereunto_o he_o answer_v that_o be_v find_v no_o such_o question_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o that_o all_o both_o believer_n and_o unbeliever_n the_o disciple_n and_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n do_v some_o way_n understand_v the_o notion_n of_o it_o and_o this_o he_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v because_o it_o be_v common_o report_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n that_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v a_o believe_v that_o the_o man_n jesus_n christ_n of_o nazareth_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o messiah_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n so_o as_o to_o receive_v and_o look_v for_o salvation_n in_o his_o name_n and_o this_o common_a report_n be_v know_v by_o all_o that_o hear_v it_o this_o be_v no_o satisfactory_a answer_n for_o the_o unbeliever_n may_v easy_o reply_v one_a that_o though_o in_o the_o scripture_n there_o be_v no_o such_o question_n in_o so_o many_o express_a formal_a word_n yet_o there_o be_v sufficient_a ground_n in_o and_o from_o the_o scripture_n for_o a_o man_n to_o ask_v such_o a_o question_n because_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o several_a sort_n of_o faith_n of_o a_o historical_a temporary_a and_o miraculous_a faith_n and_o of_o a_o save_a justify_v faith_n of_o a_o faith_n that_o be_v common_a to_o unconvert_v wicked_a man_n and_o devil_n and_o of_o a_o faith_n that_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o god_n elect._n these_o faith_n be_v of_o different_a nature_n and_o therefore_o one_o of_o they_o must_v have_v something_o that_o another_o have_v not_o and_o each_o of_o they_o must_v have_v that_o whereby_o they_o be_v constitute_v in_o themselves_o and_o distinguish_v from_o one_o another_o and_o this_o be_v ●o_o that_o the_o man_n be_v not_o deceive_v to_o his_o ruin_n he_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o put_v the_o foresay_a question_n and_o shall_v be_v commend_v for_o ask_v if_o he_o do_v it_o serious_o what_o it_o be_v to_o believe_v on_o christ_n to_o believe_v in_o he_o so_o as_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v so_o as_o may_v be_v to_o god_n glory_n and_o his_o own_o spiritual_a and_o eternal_a good_a 2._o he_o may_v reply_v that_o if_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n for_o such_o a_o question_n why_o do_v the_o westminster_n assembly_n put_v that_o same_o question_n in_o the_o short_a catechism_n which_o they_o compose_v for_o the_o use_n of_o child_n have_v they_o no_o warrant_n from_o scripture_n for_o put_v such_o a_o question_n or_o do_v the_o scripture_n only_o warrant_v minister_n to_o put_v question_n to_o the_o people_n but_o not_o warrant_v the_o people_n to_o put_v question_n to_o the_o minister_n again_o he_o may_v say_v that_o if_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n for_o put_v such_o a_o question_n 2._o cap._n 14._o art_n 1_o 2._o why_o do_v the_o same_o assembly_n in_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n give_v such_o a_o large_a description_n of_o faith_n be_v it_o not_o that_o they_o and_o all_o who_o own_o their_o confession_n may_v be_v ready_o furnish_v with_o a_o answer_n to_o such_o a_o question_n which_o they_o know_v be_v expedient_a to_o be_v ask_v since_o there_o be_v several_a sort_n of_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o so_o much_o hypocritical_a counterfeit_a faith_n in_o the_o world_n and_o in_o the_o church_n and_o necessary_a to_o be_v wise_o and_o judicious_o answer_v that_o people_n may_v understand_v what_o kind_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v that_o they_o be_v chief_o to_o seek_v after_o and_o get_v and_o if_o they_o have_v it_o that_o they_o may_v know_v it_o to_o their_o comfort_n and_o may_v bless_v god_n for_o it_o and_o give_v he_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o three_o the_o unbeliever_n may_v reply_v that_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o because_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n common_o report_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o messiah_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n so_o as_o to_o receive_v and_o look_v for_o salvation_n in_o his_o name_n therefore_o the_o thing_n report_a was_z know_v by_o all_o that_o hear_v the_o report_n and_o they_o do_v all_o some_o way_n understand_v the_o notion_n of_o it_o for_o we_o read_v in_o luke_n 18._o v._o 31_o 32_o 33._o that_o christ_n tell_v his_o own_o apostle_n as_o plain_o as_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v express_v in_o word_n that_o he_o will_v go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n and_o that_o there_o he_o shall_v be_v most_o cruel_o and_o shameful_o put_v to_o death_n and_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o very_a next_o verse_n
if_o you_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o why_o do_v you_o commend_v his_o book_n to_o i_o as_o that_o which_o will_v give_v i_o best_a direction_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o preserve_v my_o soul_n from_o be_v poison_v with_o the_o new_a divinity_n but_o if_o you_o do_v believe_v he_o why_o do_v you_o contradict_v he_o he_o tell_v i_o one_o thing_n and_o you_o tell_v i_o the_o quite_o contrary_a yea_o the_o contradictory_n thereof_o why_o do_v you_o also_o join_v with_o the_o new_a divine_n against_o he_o or_o his_o book_n and_o go_v about_o to_o poison_v my_o soul_n with_o the_o new_a divinity_n in_o the_o great_a point_n of_o assurance_n it_o be_v not_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o direct_a act_n of_o justify_v faith_n whereas_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n of_o marshal_n which_o you_o deny_v be_v the_o great_a engine_n wherewith_o our_o first_o reformer_n batter_v down_o the_o wall_n of_o rome_n thus_o our_o author_n by_o his_o way_n of_o write_v be_v more_o like_a to_o hinder_v man_n from_o believe_v and_o to_o harden_v they_o in_o their_o unbelief_n than_o to_o be_v instrumental_a in_o convert_v they_o from_o unbelief_n to_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n three_o unbeliever_n this_o believe_v be_v hard_a minister_n this_o be_v a_o good_a doubt_n but_o easy_o resolve_v here_o again_o the_o minister_n make_v himself_o ridiculous_a and_o expose_v himself_o to_o the_o scorn_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o unbeliever_n for_o the_o unbeliever_n make_v no_o doubt_n of_o the_o matter_n but_o positive_o affert_v that_o this_o believe_v be_v hard_a as_o be_v firm_o persuade_v in_o his_o mind_n without_o the_o least_o hesitation_n or_o doubt_n that_o this_o believe_v be_v hard_o indeed_o and_o when_o the_o minister_n have_v hear_v he_o say_v yea_o have_v put_v the_o word_n in_o his_o mouth_n and_o make_v he_o to_o say_v positive_o without_o doubt_v that_o this_o believe_v be_v hard_a then_o he_o answer_v he_o and_o say_v this_o be_v a_o good_a doubt_n and_o easy_o resolve_v and_o the_o plain_a english_a of_o that_o be_v that_o no_o doubt_n but_o a_o positive_a affirmation_n be_v a_o good_a doubt_n but_o suppose_v for_o once_o with_o the_o minister_n that_o no_o doubt_n be_v a_o doubt_n yet_o how_o do_v he_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v a_o good_a doubt_n for_o there_o be_v bad_a doubt_n as_o well_o as_o good_a doubt_n and_o why_o may_v not_o this_o be_v a_o bad_a doubt_n rather_o than_o a_o good_a doubt_n yes_o say_v the_o minister_n i_o prove_v it_o and_o make_v it_o appear_v thus_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o bad_a but_o a_o good_a doubt_n because_o it_o bespeak_v a_o man_n deep_o humble_v rare_o prove_v but_o why_o may_v it_o not_o as_o well_o bespeak_v a_o man_n to_o be_v deep_o harden_v in_o unbelief_n and_o high_o list_v up_o in_o pride_n for_o be_v not_o the_o capernaite_v deep_o harden_v in_o unbelief_n and_o yet_o when_o they_o hear_v christ_n himself_o with_o his_o own_o bless_a mouth_n preach_v to_o they_o of_o the_o great_a necessity_n and_o usefulness_n of_o believe_v on_o he_o under_o the_o figurative_a expression_n of_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n they_o both_o doubt_v and_o dishelieve_v and_o thus_o express_v their_o doubt_n and_o unbelief_n john_n 6.42_o how_o be_v it_o that_o he_o say_v i_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o v._o 52._o how_o can_v this_o man_n give_v we_o his_o flesh_n to_o eat_v and_o v._o 60._o this_o be_v a_o hard_a say_n who_o can_v hear_v it_o likewise_o those_o jew_n and_o heathen_n of_o who_o paul_n write_v 1_o cor._n 1.23_o that_o christ_n crucify_a be_v unto_o the_o one_o sort_n of_o they_o a_o stumble_a block_n and_o unto_o the_o other_o foolishness_n can_v doubt_v and_o say_v this_o believe_v in_o a_o crucify_a christ_n be_v hard_a and_o in_o effect_n they_o do_v say_v it_o and_o so_o they_o doubt_v if_o that_o be_v to_o doubt_v for_o they_o say_v it_o be_v a_o unreasonable_a foolish_a thing_n to_o believe_v to_o be_v save_v by_o a_o crucify_a man_n and_o that_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o believe_v in_o christ_n for_o it_o be_v certain_o hard_a for_o a_o reasonable_a man_n to_o believe_v that_o which_o in_o his_o heart_n he_o judge_v to_o be_v unreasonable_a and_o foolish_a but_o now_o do_v this_o bespeak_v those_o unbelieve_a jew_n and_o heathen_n to_o be_v deep_o humble_v no_o sure_a it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o it_o that_o it_o bespeak_v the_o quite_o contrary_a it_o bespeak_v they_o deep_o harden_v in_o unbelief_n and_o high_o lift_v up_o in_o pride_n and_o self_n conceit_n our_o author_n have_v another_o argument_n to_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v a_o good_a doubt_n because_o say_v he_o any_o body_n may_v see_v his_o own_o impotency_n to_o obey_v the_o law_n of_o god_n full_o but_o few_o find_v the_o difficulty_n of_o believe_v well_o be_v it_o so_o that_o few_o find_v the_o difficulty_n of_o believe_v and_o that_o few_o doubt_n whether_o it_o be_v difficult_a or_o not_o do_v that_o prove_v that_o this_o particular_a unbeliever_n doubt_n because_o he_o find_v believe_v to_o be_v so_o difficult_a that_o he_o be_v past_o all_o doubt_n of_o its_o be_v difficult_a and_o thereupon_o positive_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v difficult_a and_o hard_a to_o believe_v he_o must_v have_v lose_v his_o reason_n that_o can_v deliberate_o think_v that_o a_o man_n who_o be_v full_o convince_v of_o the_o difficulty_n of_o believe_v and_o thereupon_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o believe_v have_v a_o good_a doubt_n whether_o it_o be_v difficult_a or_o not_o because_o the_o generality_n of_o other_o man_n seldom_o think_v of_o believe_v or_o endeavour_v to_o believe_v and_o so_o find_v not_o the_o difficulty_n of_o it_o but_o 2._o suppose_v this_o particular_a unbeliever_n do_v not_o find_v it_o so_o difficult_a to_o believe_v as_o to_o be_v past_o all_o doubt_n that_o it_o be_v difficult_a only_o his_o mind_n be_v bring_v to_o a_o aequilibrium_fw-la even_o balance_n and_o hang_v in_o suspense_n between_o these_o two_o whether_o it_o be_v difficult_a or_o whether_o it_o be_v easse_v to_o believe_v this_o supposition_n be_v true_a will_v prove_v indeed_o that_o the_o man_n have_v a_o doubt_n in_o his_o mind_n concern_v the_o difficulty_n of_o believe_v but_o it_o do_v not_o at_o all_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v a_o good_a doubt_n the_o truth_n be_v such_o a_o doubt_n be_v evil_a and_o can_v be_v good_a for_o the_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v full_o persuade_v in_o his_o mind_n that_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n crucify_v with_o a_o save_a faith_n it_o be_v real_o difficult_a and_o hard_a yea_o impossible_a to_o unregenerate_a nature_n and_o without_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n but_o that_o to_o regenerate_v nature_n it_o be_v easy_a through_o the_o affistance_n of_o god_n special_a grace_n and_o so_o here_o can_v be_v no_o room_n at_o all_o for_o the_o unbeliever_n good_a doubt_n next_o our_o author_n fall_v upon_o the_o resolve_v of_o the_o unbeliever_n pretend_v good_a doubt_n and_o in_o order_n thereunto_o he_o ask_v he_o what_o it_o be_v which_o he_o find_v do_v make_v believe_v difficult_a to_o he_o 1._o our_o author_n ask_v the_o unbeliever_n whether_o he_o find_v it_o difficult_a to_o believe_v because_o he_o be_v unwilling_a to_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v and_o this_o say_v he_o the_o unbeliever_n will_v deny_v and_o he_o may_v well_o deny_v it_o and_o further_o tell_v our_o author_n sir_n you_o be_v very_o impertinent_a to_o ask_v i_o such_o a_o question_n for_o you_o know_v well_o enough_o without_o ask_v that_o that_o can_v not_o be_v the_o reason_n wherefore_o i_o think_v it_o difficult_a to_o believe_v for_o no_o man_n in_o his_o right_a wit_n be_v ever_o unwilling_a to_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v that_o be_v unwilling_a to_o be_v happy_a for_o it_o be_v natural_o necessary_a unto_o all_o man_n to_o desire_v happinness_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o justification_n and_o salvation_n which_o you_o talk_v of_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v i_o happy_a and_o if_o my_o happiness_n partly_o consist_v therein_o you_o know_v i_o can_v be_v unwilling_a to_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v because_o i_o can_v be_v unwilling_a to_o be_v happy_a 2._o he_o ask_v the_o unbeliever_n whether_o he_o find_v it_o difficult_a to_o believe_v because_o he_o be_v unwilling_a to_o be_v so_o save_v by_o jesus_n christ_n to_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o he_o and_o to_o the_o avoid_n of_o all_o boast_n in_o himself_o and_o he_o say_v the_o unbeliever_n will_v sure_o deny_v this_o also_o to_o which_o the_o unbeliever_n may_v be_v suppose_v to_o answer_v sir_n i_o thank_v you_o for_o your_o good_a opinion_n of_o i_o by_o this_o i_o perceive_v you_o take_v i_o to_o be_v deep_o humble_v indeed_o but_o
plain_a with_o you_o i_o think_v this_o your_o last_o answer_n be_v much_o like_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o go_v before_o there_o be_v hardly_o a_o good_a one_o among_o they_o and_o the_o difference_n be_v that_o this_o be_v the_o worst_a in_o the_o whole_a pack_n and_o to_o make_v this_o good_a i_o offer_v these_o thing_n follow_v to_o the_o consideration_n of_o all_o man_n of_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n as_o well_o as_o of_o christian_a believer_n 1._o the_o objection_n say_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o difficult_a act_n and_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v difficult_a because_o impossible_a without_o a_o divine_a power_n which_o the_o unbeliever_n sind_v not_o to_o which_o you_o answer_v that_o believe_v be_v no_o work_n but_o a_o rest_a and_o so_o by_o change_v the_o term_n and_o put_v work_n for_o act_n you_o think_v to_o impose_v upon_o silly_a woman_n and_o such_o like_a person_n and_o to_o make_v they_o think_v that_o you_o have_v say_v much_o when_o you_o have_v say_v nothing_o or_o worse_o than_o nothing_o and_o that_o you_o have_v answer_v the_o objection_n when_o you_o have_v rather_o confirm_v it_o the_o objection_n say_v and_o prove_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o difficult_a act_n because_o impossible_a without_o a_o divine_a power_n this_o you_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o only_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v a_o work_n and_o so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o difficult_a work_n if_o then_o there_o be_v a_o act_n that_o be_v no_o work_n as_o you_o seem_v to_o intimate_v though_o faith_n shall_v not_o be_v a_o difficult_a work_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v a_o difficult_a act_n so_o difficult_a that_o a_o man_n can_v believe_v aright_o without_o divine_a assistance_n and_o this_o be_v all_o the_o objection_n be_v design_v to_o prove_v for_o it_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o word_n work_n it_o neither_o affirm_v nor_o deny_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o work_n 2._o i_o demand_v why_o you_o change_v the_o term_n and_o deny_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o work_n whereas_o the_o objection_n do_v not_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v a_o work_n but_o to_o be_v a_o act_n and_o a_o difficult_a act_n because_o impossible_a to_o humane_a nature_n without_o the_o powerful_a assistance_n of_o god_n i_o can_v easy_o imagine_v what_o reason_n you_o have_v to_o deny_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o work_n instead_o of_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o act_n and_o a_o difficult_a act_n if_o you_o intend_v to_o answer_v the_o objection_n which_o only_o affirm_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o difficult_a act_n but_o whatever_o reason_n may_v move_v you_o to_o deny_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o work_n which_o i_o do_v not_o well_o understand_v yet_o this_o i_o know_v that_o your_o deny_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o work_n fall_v out_o very_o unlucky_o for_o you_o and_o turn_v to_o your_o own_o shame_n 11._o let._n pag._n 11._o for_o you_o yourself_o have_v say_v before_o and_o prove_v from_o scripture_n to_o wit_n from_o john_n 6.28_o 29._o that_o faith_n be_v a_o work_n yea_o that_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n the_o great_a work_n of_o god_n the_o great_a work_n which_o we_o do_v and_o which_o we_o can_v do_v too_o soon_o these_o be_v your_o own_o word_n and_o yet_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o six_o page_n after_o you_o absolute_o deny_v that_o faith_n be_v any_o work_n at_o all_o this_o bring_v to_o my_o mind_n the_o old_a say_n oportet_fw-la mendacem_fw-la esse_fw-la memorem_fw-la a_o liar_n have_v need_v to_o have_v a_o good_a memory_n and_o by_o this_o sign_n and_o token_n i_o know_v that_o you_o be_v a_o weak_a deceive_v man_n yourself_o or_o that_o you_o be_v a_o deceiver_n of_o other_o it_o will_v no_o wise_n relieve_v you_o to_o say_v that_o though_o faith_n be_v a_o work_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o justify_v as_o a_o work_n but_o as_o a_o insirument_n for_o 1._o here_o you_o absolute_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o work_n and_o that_o in_o answer_n to_o a_o objection_n which_o do_v not_o relate_v to_o justification_n therefore_o 2._o i_o say_v that_o here_o be_v no_o occasion_n to_o speak_v of_o justification_n at_o all_o and_o consequent_o no_o occasion_n to_o affirm_v that_o faith_n justify_v as_o a_o instrument_n and_o to_o deny_v that_o it_o justify_v as_o a_o work_n for_o the_o question_n here_o be_v not_o at_o all_o how_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n whether_o by_o faith_n as_o a_o work_n or_o by_o faith_n as_o a_o instrument_n but_o all_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o faith_n be_v difficult_a to_o a_o unbeliever_n or_o not_o the_o objection_n affirm_v it_o to_o be_v difficult_a because_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o humane_a nature_n without_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n you_o in_o answer_n to_o the_o objection_n deny_v it_o to_o be_v difficult_a because_o it_o be_v no_o work_n so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a this_o your_o deny_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o work_n relate_v not_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o faith_n justify_v a_o man_n but_o to_o the_o difficulty_n of_o a_o man_n get_v and_o use_v of_o faith_n 3_o it_o be_v altogether_o impertinent_a here_o to_o deny_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o work_n in_o the_o office_n or_o act_n of_o justification_n for_o though_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o consider_v as_o a_o work_n in_o the_o act_n of_o justify_v yet_o if_o it_o be_v a_o work_n in_o its_o own_o act_n of_o existence_n the_o objection_n remain_v in_o its_o full_a strength_n and_o unanswered_a for_o still_o it_o be_v true_a which_o the_o objection_n assert_n that_o its_o very_a difficult_a for_o a_o unbeliever_n to_o produce_v the_o act_n or_o do_v the_o work_n of_o faith_n this_o you_o see_v and_o therefore_o to_o cut_v the_o sinew_n and_o to_o take_v away_o the_o main_a force_n of_o the_o argument_n you_o absolute_o deny_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o work_n this_o be_v your_o intention_n in_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v no_o work_n otherwise_o your_o answer_n be_v whole_o impertinent_a to_o the_o objection_n and_o indeed_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o if_o your_o answer_n be_v true_a if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o faith_n be_v no_o work_n at_o all_o in_o any_o sense_n the_o objection_n have_v lose_v all_o its_o strength_n and_o fall_v dead_a to_o the_o ground_n but_o that_o your_o answer_n be_v not_o true_a i_o have_v have_v it_o already_o from_o yourself_o under_o your_o own_o hand_n affirm_v and_o prove_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o great_a work_n which_o we_o can_v do_v too_o soon_o and_o lest_o you_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o bring_v yourself_o off_o by_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v no_o outward_a bodily_a work_n and_o that_o that_o be_v your_o meaning_n in_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v no_o work_n i_o give_v you_o a_o three_o answer_n and_o therein_o three_o i_o demand_v what_o you_o mean_v by_o the_o word_n work_n when_o you_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v no_o work_n whether_o you_o do_v mean_v a_o outward_a bodily_a work_n or_o a_o inward_a heart-work_n and_o 1._o i_o appeal_v to_o your_o own_o conscience_n that_o you_o do_v not_o mean_v a_o outward_a bodily_a work_n for_o no_o body_n ever_o say_v or_o think_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o outward_a bodily_a work_n and_o why_o shall_v you_o in_o answer_n to_o a_o argument_n deny_v that_o which_o no_o body_n ever_o affirm_v yea_o and_o lay_v the_o main_a stress_n too_o of_o your_o answer_n upon_o that_o denial_n 2._o you_o can_v not_o give_v that_o answer_n to_o such_o a_o objection_n unless_o you_o be_v in_o a_o dream_n or_o out_o of_o your_o right_a mind_n for_o to_o answer_v so_o as_o to_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o a_o outward_a bodily_a work_n but_o a_o inward_a heart-work_n do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o touch_v the_o objection_n though_o that_o be_v most_o true_a that_o faith_n be_v no_o outward_a bodily_a work_n yet_o if_o faith_n be_v a_o inward_a heart-work_n the_o objection_n stand_v in_o its_o full_a force_n and_o strength_n for_o inward_a heart-work_n be_v the_o most_o hard_a and_o difficult_a work_n therefore_o if_o faith_n be_v a_o inward_a heart-work_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v still_o hard_a and_o difficult_a to_o believe_v which_o be_v the_o very_a thing_n that_o the_o objection_n be_v bring_v to_o prove_v therefore_o if_o you_o intend_v to_o answer_v the_o objection_n by_o deny_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o work_n you_o must_v also_o intend_v to_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v a_o inward_a heart-work_n and_o so_o that_o it_o be_v any_o work_n at_o all_o either_o inward_a or_o outward_a and_o if_o that_o be_v true_a you_o have_v indeed_o effectual_o answer_v the_o objection_n but_o that_o be_v not_o true_a for_o four_o it_o be_v notorious_o false_a that_o faith_n be_v no_o inward_a heart-work_n for_o to_o be_v a_o inward_a work_n of_o the_o heart_n be_v nothing_o but_o to_o be_v a_o inward_a act_n of_o the_o heart_n
of_o the_o difficulty_n of_o believe_v so_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a fraternity_n of_o unbeliever_n i_o thank_v you_o for_o your_o great_a kindness_n to_o they_o and_o for_o this_o sweet_a and_o comfortable_a doctrine_n if_o it_o be_v true_a which_o you_o have_v teach_v we_o all_o in_o your_o letter_n which_o i_o hear_v be_v much_o cry_v up_o by_o some_o woman_n in_o london_n who_o love_n rest_n and_o ease_n now_o we_o may_v have_v all_o rest_v quiet_o together_o be_v it_o not_o for_o those_o you_o call_v the_o new_a and_o young_a divine_n who_o you_o have_v charge_v with_o pelagianism_n this_o be_v not_o wise_o do_v of_o you_o for_o you_o have_v thereby_o awaken_v they_o from_o their_o rest_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v that_o by_o loud_a recrimination_n they_o will_v disturb_v you_o and_o we_o both_o and_o proclaim_v the_o secret_a to_o the_o world_n that_o you_o yourself_o be_v confederate_a with_o pelagian_o semipelagian_o and_o unbeliever_n for_o it_o be_v undeniable_a matter_n of_o fact_n that_o it_o be_v a_o branch_n of_o pelagianism_n and_o the_o very_a root_n and_o heart_n of_o semipelagianism_n that_o man_n can_v believe_v in_o christ_n with_o a_o justify_v faith_n by_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n without_o the_o supernatural_a grace_n of_o god_n and_o if_o your_o similitude_n hold_v good_a man_n not_o only_o can_v believe_v but_o which_o be_v more_o they_o can_v possible_o choose_v but_o they_o must_v of_o necessity_n believe_v without_o the_o help_n of_o grace_n unless_o they_o be_v hinder_v by_o a_o miracle_n exciting_a they_o to_o act_n and_o work_n and_o to_o cease_v from_o rest_n sir_n how_o you_o can_v come_v to_o rest_n and_o peace_n with_o those_o brisk_a young_a divine_n who_o age_n incline_v they_o to_o action_n more_o than_o to_o rest_v i_o do_v not_o pretend_v to_o know_v but_o this_o i_o know_v that_o upon_o your_o foresay_a principle_n the_o unbeliever_n and_o you_o be_v agree_v and_o if_o you_o will_v be_v steadfast_a and_o stand_v to_o your_o principle_n we_o shall_v live_v together_o in_o perfect_a quietness_n and_o never_o more_o differ_v about_o believe_v thus_o we_o have_v give_v a_o account_n of_o our_o author_n way_n and_o method_n of_o convert_v a_o unbeliever_n to_o faith_n in_o christ_n which_o be_v more_o than_o a_o rest_n on_o christ_n for_o it_o be_v a_o grace_n whereby_o we_o assent_v to_o jesus_n his_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o only_a saviour_n of_o man_n and_o consent_v to_o take_v he_o for_o our_o prince_n and_o saviour_n and_o as_o such_o receive_v he_o on_o his_o own_o term_n and_o then_o rest_n rely_v and_o trust_v on_o he_o for_o justification_n etc._n etc._n we_o have_v show_v also_o what_o a_o weak_a and_o ridiculous_a way_n and_o method_n it_o be_v and_o how_o easy_o a_o unbeliever_n may_v answer_v all_o that_o he_o have_v say_v in_o the_o 16._o and_o 17._o page_n of_o his_o letter_n mention_v before_o except_o a_o few_o at_o his_o first_o set_v out_o he_o have_v hardly_o make_v one_o right_a step_n in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o that_o advice_n which_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o give_v unto_o minister_n how_o they_o ought_v to_o deal_v with_o unbeliever_n in_o labour_v to_o convert_v they_o unto_o faith_n in_o christ_n he_o have_v plain_o betray_v our_o cause_n to_o the_o unbeliever_n who_o have_v bring_v he_o by_o his_o last_o objection_n to_o take_v up_o with_o a_o piece_n of_o pelagianism_n and_o with_o the_o gross_a semipelagianism_n that_o have_v be_v hear_v of_o in_o the_o christian_a church_n so_o weak_a be_v he_o not_o wicked_a we_o hope_v that_o he_o can_v think_v of_o no_o other_o way_n to_o answer_v that_o objection_n but_o by_o deny_v that_o faith_n be_v any_o work_n at_o all_o though_o therein_o he_o shameful_o contradict_v himself_o and_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v a_o rest_a in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o import_v that_o it_o be_v neither_o work_n nor_o act_n but_o a_o mere_a cessation_n from_o work_v and_o act_v a_o do_v nothing_o at_o all_o and_o from_o thence_o he_o labour_v to_o show_v the_o unbeliever_n that_o it_o be_v not_o difficult_a to_o believe_v and_o illustrate_v it_o by_o such_o a_o similitude_n as_o will_v make_v any_o consider_a man_n who_o read_v it_o and_o understand_v the_o use_n he_o make_v of_o it_o to_o think_v that_o he_o must_v be_v a_o semipelagian_a who_o hold_v that_o a_o man_n can_v believe_v unto_o justification_n without_o any_o subjective_n supernatural_a grace_n of_o god_n at_o all_o whereas_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v acknowledge_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o objection_n that_o it_o be_v indeed_o difficult_a and_o impossible_a too_o for_o a_o natural_a man_n by_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n ever_o to_o believe_v but_o that_o it_o be_v possible_a and_o easy_a too_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o then_o he_o shall_v have_v direct_v the_o unbeliever_n unto_o the_o mean_n whereby_o grace_n to_o believe_v be_v ordinary_o obtain_v from_o god_n through_o christ_n and_o shall_v have_v advise_v he_o to_o wait_v and_o continue_v wait_v on_o god_n in_o the_o use_n of_o his_o appoint_a mean_n and_o particular_o to_o be_v much_o in_o pray_v as_o well_o as_o he_o can_v for_o grace_n to_o help_v in_o time_n of_o need_n and_o desire_v the_o prayer_n of_o christ_n minister_n and_o people_n but_o not_o a_o word_n of_o this_o nay_o instead_o of_o advise_v the_o unbeliever_n to_o use_v god_n mean_n and_o seek_v the_o grace_n of_o faith_n from_o god_n through_o christ_n he_o give_v he_o to_o understand_v that_o faith_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o rest_n from_o all_o work_n and_o action_n and_o that_o it_o be_v no_o more_o difficult_a to_o believe_v than_o it_o be_v for_o a_o weary_a traveller_n to_o lie_v down_o and_o rest_n when_o he_o be_v so_o tire_v that_o he_o can_v neither_o stand_v nor_o go_v and_o after_o he_o have_v tell_v the_o minister_n that_o they_o ought_v thus_o to_o resolve_v the_o doubt_n and_o answer_v the_o argument_n of_o unbeliever_n he_o have_v the_o confidence_n to_o conclude_v that_o by_o such_o reason_n with_o a_o unbeliever_n from_o the_o gospel_n the_o lord_n will_v as_o he_o have_v often_o do_v convey_v faith_n to_o he_o and_o joy_n and_o peace_n by_o believe_v this_o be_v like_o all_o the_o rest_n the_o conclusion_n and_o the_o premise_n be_v at_o irreconcilable_a variance_n with_o one_o another_o the_o conclusion_n say_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v convey_v faith_n to_o the_o unbeliever_n by_o the_o reason_n in_o the_o premise_n and_o yet_o one_o of_o those_o reason_n be_v that_o faith_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o rest_a and_o such_o a_o rest_v as_o signify_v a_o cessation_n from_o all_o act_n and_o that_o a_o unbeliever_n need_v no_o more_o help_n to_o believe_v than_o a_o weary_a traveller_n need_v help_v to_o lie_v down_o and_o rest_n when_o he_o be_v so_o tire_v that_o he_o can_v neither_o stand_v nor_o go_v we_o think_v it_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o blasphemy_n to_o say_v witting_o and_o willing_o that_o such_o reason_n as_o some_o of_o those_o we_o have_v note_v in_o the_o 16_o and_o 17_o page_n of_o the_o letter_n be_v either_o in_o and_o from_o the_o gospel_n or_o that_o the_o lord_n make_v use_v of_o such_o self_n contradict_v confound_a fulshood_n as_o mean_n of_o convey_v faith_n into_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n and_o because_o in_o this_o part_n of_o his_o letter_n he_o speak_v to_o we_o that_o be_v minister_n and_o either_o bid_v we_o tell_v the_o unbeliever_n so_o and_o so_o or_o else_o he_o affirm_v that_o we_o do_v tell_v he_o so_o and_o so_o we_o must_v declare_v to_o the_o world_n that_o we_o will_v follow_v his_o advice_n no_o further_o than_o we_o find_v it_o agreeable_a to_o scripture_n and_o reason_n which_o sometime_o we_o do_v find_v and_o oftentimes_o the_o contrary_a as_o we_o have_v prove_v but_o as_o for_o what_o he_o affirm_v that_o minister_n tell_v the_o unbeliever_n that_o faith_n be_v not_o difficult_a that_o it_o be_v no_o more_o difficult_a to_o a_o unbeliever_n than_o lie_v down_o be_v to_o a_o man_n when_o he_o be_v so_o tire_a and_o weary_a that_o he_o can_v neither_o stand_v nor_o go_v we_o protest_v we_o be_v none_o of_o those_o minister_n we_o never_o do_v and_o through_o grace_n never_o will_v tell_v any_o unbeliver_v such_o a_o abominable_a falsehood_n we_o know_v no_o other_o minister_n but_o our_o author_n that_o preach_v such_o doctrine_n and_o we_o have_v endeavour_v to_o make_v he_o ashamed_a of_o it_o in_o hope_n to_o bring_v he_o off_o from_o it_o we_o trust_v that_o after_o we_o have_v thus_o public_o declare_v against_o our_o author_n way_n and_o method_n of_o convert_v unbeliever_n to_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o
that_o according_a to_o the_o description_n which_o he_o give_v of_o a_o middle-way-man_n 2._o let._n p._n 2._o we_o may_v safe_o and_o with_o a_o good_a conscience_n according_a to_o the_o light_n which_o god_n have_v give_v we_o deny_v that_o we_o be_v middle-way-man_n for_o he_o make_v a_o middle-way-man_n to_o be_v one_o who_o espouse_n defend_v and_o promote_v a_o middle-way_n betwixt_o the_o arminian_o and_o the_o orthodox_n but_o that_o we_o be_v middle-way-man_n in_o this_o sense_n we_o must_v deny_v for_o we_o can_v own_v ourselves_o to_o be_v such_o man_n without_o lie_v against_o our_o conscience_n and_o say_v that_o we_o be_v not_o orthodox_n or_o but_o half-orthodox_n which_o we_o believe_v to_o be_v a_o great_a falsehood_n if_o therefore_o our_o author_n will_v have_v we_o to_o confess_v that_o we_o be_v middle-way-man_n 1._o he_o must_v give_v we_o a_o better_a and_o true_a definition_n of_o a_o middle-way-man_n for_o this_o will_v not_o fit_v we_o at_o all_o belike_o he_o will_v have_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o we_o be_v half-arminians_a and_o half-orthodox_n but_o if_o that_o be_v his_o meaning_n in_o intimate_v that_o we_o steer_v a_o middle-course_n between_o the_o arminian_o and_o the_o orthodox_n it_o be_v a_o abominable_a calumny_n which_o we_o have_v already_o wipe_v off_o by_z solemnly_z and_o sincere_o declare_v that_o we_o do_v not_o participate_v of_o the_o arminian_n extreme_a at_o all_o we_o be_v no_o arminian_n in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n 2._o he_o will_v do_v well_o to_o tell_v we_o who_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o orthodox_n it_o may_v be_v that_o by_o the_o orthodox_n he_o mean_v chief_o himself_o and_o his_o small_a party_n exclusive_o of_o all_o other_o protestant_n if_o that_o be_v his_o meaning_n we_o say_v 1._o that_o he_o must_v not_o thus_o beg_v but_o prove_v his_o orthodoxy_n before_o we_o can_v own_v he_o to_o be_v thus_o very_a orthodox_n 2._o we_o think_v that_o such_o a_o notion_n of_o orthodoxy_n be_v too_o narrow_a and_o schismatical_a it_o be_v a_o monopolise_n of_o soundness_n in_o the_o faith_n to_o a_o party_n and_o that_o comparative_o a_o small_a party_n of_o christian_n too_o and_o a_o brand_a of_o all_o the_o rest_n with_o the_o mark_n of_o unsound_a and_o erroneous_a in_o the_o faith_n whereas_o the_o real_a difference_n between_o those_o call_v middle-way-man_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o the_o most_o of_o those_o call_v orthodox_n on_o the_o other_o may_v not_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n strict_o so_o call_v but_o rather_o matter_n of_o opinion_n and_o so_o both_o party_n may_v be_v orthodox_n or_o sound_n in_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v notwithstanding_o some_o different_a sentiment_n in_o lesser_a thing_n they_o may_v both_o firm_o and_o full_o agree_v in_o believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o church_n communion_n on_o earth_n and_o to_o the_o obtain_v eternal_a salvation_n in_o heaven_n through_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n the_o father_n the_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o son_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n three_o if_o he_o have_v show_v we_o in_o his_o letter_n wherein_o that_o middle-way_n do_v particular_o consist_v according_a to_o his_o opinion_n we_o shall_v have_v it_o may_v be_v either_o own_a or_o disow_v it_o in_o part_n or_o in_o whole_a according_a as_o we_o have_v find_v he_o to_o have_v true_o represent_v or_o misrepresent_v it_o to_o the_o world_n but_o since_o he_o have_v not_o do_v that_o we_o can_v know_v certain_o what_o he_o mean_v by_o that_o middle-way_n he_o talk_v of_o 4thly_a yet_o by_o some_o passage_n in_o his_o letter_n we_o guess_v that_o he_o point_v at_o the_o controversy_n about_o the_o extent_n of_o christ_n death_n which_o have_v be_v among_o protestant_a divine_n since_o the_o reformation_n or_o since_o the_o time_n that_o beza_n and_o piscator_fw-la begin_v to_o write_v on_o that_o head_n after_o the_o reformation_n and_o if_o that_o be_v the_o thing_n he_o point_v at_o without_o name_v it_o we_o will_v first_o give_v the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o controversy_n second_o declare_v brief_o what_o our_o opinion_n be_v as_o to_o that_o matter_n and_o for_o the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n first_n there_o be_v some_o divine_n in_o the_o world_n who_o be_v say_v to_o hold_v that_o christ_n die_v equal_o for_o all_o man_n elect_a and_o non-elect_a and_o that_o god_n on_o the_o account_n of_o christ_n death_n give_v a_o common_a sufficient_a grace_n to_o they_o all_o whereby_o they_o may_v all_o if_o they_o will_v apply_v to_o themselves_o the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o thereby_o obtain_v justification_n and_o salvation_n but_o that_o christ_n do_v not_o die_v for_o the_o elect_n out_o of_o any_o special_a love_n to_o they_o above_o other_o and_o that_o god_n through_o christ_n do_v not_o give_v any_o special_a effectual_a determine_v grace_n to_o the_o elect_a more_o than_o to_o the_o non-elect_a this_o be_v the_o arminian_n extreme_a second_o there_o be_v other_o divine_n who_o hold_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o the_o elect_a only_o and_o exclusive_o of_o all_o other_o and_o that_o he_o die_v not_o for_o any_o of_o the_o non-elect_a in_o any_o proper_a tolerable_a true_a sense_n that_o he_o no_o more_o die_v for_o any_o of_o those_o man_n who_o be_v not_o elect_v to_o eternal_a life_n than_o he_o die_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o that_o such_o man_n have_v no_o more_o to_o do_v with_o the_o satisfaction_n and_o meri●s_n of_o christ_n than_o the_o devil_n have_v this_o be_v the_o other_o extreme_a and_o we_o suppose_v that_o this_o be_v that_o which_o our_o author_n account_v the_o orthodex_fw-la side_n and_o that_o he_o be_v of_o this_o side_n himself_o but_o three_o between_o these_o two_o extreme_a opinion_n there_o be_v a_o golden_a mean_a there_o be_v a_o midd●e-way_n which_o have_v be_v many_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o still_o be_v express_v in_o this_o form_n of_o word_n that_o christ_n die_v only_o for_o the_o elect-sinner_n of_o mankind_n both_o sufficient_o and_o efficacious_o but_o that_o he_o die_v for_o the_o non-elect_a only_o sufficient_o but_o not_o efficacious_o this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n 2._o if_o second_o it_o be_v now_o demand_v whether_o we_o be_v for_o this_o middle-way_n or_o not_o in_o answer_n to_o that_o demand_n we_o say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a many_o of_o we_o who_o be_v calumniate_v by_o our_o author_n as_o corrupter_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o hold_v a_o conditional_a covenant_n and_o though_o we_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o we_o all_o agree_v in_o the_o foresay_a general_n form_n of_o word_n and_o in_o admit_v the_o distirction_n of_o christ_n die_v for_o the_o elect_a efficacicious_o and_o for_o the_o reprebate_n only_o sufficient_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v that_o when_o we_o come_v to_o explain_v what_o we_o particular_o mean_v by_o christ_n die_a sufficient_o only_o for_o the_o non-elect_a there_o will_v be_v some_o little_a difference_n among_o we_o in_o some_o of_o our_o notion_n and_o expression_n and_o possible_o some_o of_o we_o may_v not_o in_o effect_n differ_v from_o our_o author_n further_o than_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o our_o expression_n and_o in_o the_o method_n of_o our_o conception_n and_o notion_n but_o 1._o we_o be_v all_o of_o one_o mind_n and_o of_o one_o faith_n with_o respect_n to_o christ_n die_a efficacious_o for_o the_o elect_a only_o and_o we_o hope_v also_o that_o our_o author_n himself_o agree_v with_o we_o herein_o which_o be_v the_o main_a thing_n wherein_o our_o agreement_n be_v necessary_a and_o then_o 2._o as_o to_o the_o non-elect_a especial_o those_o of_o they_o to_o who_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v we_o hope_v all_o of_o we_o do_v and_o will_v agree_v to_o this_o that_o christ_n die_v for_o they_o sufficient_o in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o he_o do_v not_o die_v for_o the_o fall_v angel_n so_o that_o if_o they_o shall_v believe_v in_o christ_n and_o repent_v of_o their_o sin_n as_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v according_a to_o the_o tenor_n and_o term_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o shall_v be_v save_v through_o christ_n and_o not_o perish_v as_o they_o do_v by_o persevere_v in_o unbelief_n and_o impenitence_n and_o be_v thus_o far_o agree_v we_o hope_v we_o shall_v keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n and_o as_o to_o any_o little_a difference_n of_o judgement_n that_o may_v remain_v we_o shall_v bear_v with_o one_o another_o in_o love_n after_o the_o example_n of_o the_o famous_a synod_n of_o dort_n whereof_o the_o member_n differ_v in_o the_o synod_n upon_o this_o very_a point_n and_o yet_o they_o bear_v with_o one_o another_o and_o wise_o agree_v against_o the_o arminian_n extreme_a as_o most_o manifest_o appear_v from_o the_o act_n of_o
believe_v but_o by_o the_o supernatural_a teach_n and_o assistance_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n so_o it_o can_v be_v right_o learned_a know_v and_o believe_v without_o our_o own_o reason_n for_o 1._o grace_n do_v not_o destroy_v but_o refine_v and_o perfect_a nature_n the_o holy_a spirit_n do_v not_o put_v out_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o reason_a faculty_n 24.45_o luke_n 24.45_o out_o open_v it_o clear_v it_o elevate_v and_o raise_v it_o up_o above_o its_o natural_a ability_n and_o strengthen_v it_o to_o see_v spiritual_a object_n in_o such_o a_o spiritual_a way_n as_o it_o can_v not_o see_v they_o by_o its_o own_o natural_a power_n alone_o 2._o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n teach_v we_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o both_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n suppose_v we_o to_o be_v rational_a for_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v give_v to_o none_o but_o rational_a creature_n and_o if_o we_o be_v not_o rational_a creature_n we_o shall_v not_o be_v subject_n capable_a of_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n or_o of_o teach_v other_o we_o do_v not_o then_o make_v reason_n to_o be_v either_o the_o formal_a object_n or_o rule_v of_o faith_n and_o religion_n but_o we_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v a_o light_n which_o god_n himself_o have_v set_v up_o in_o our_o soul_n whereby_o 1_o we_o discern_v through_o grace_n the_o write_a word_n to_o be_v indeed_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o spirit_n that_o teach_v we_o by_o the_o word_n to_o be_v indeed_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o whereby_o we_o discover_v that_o every_o word_n and_o spirit_n which_o be_v contrary_a thereunto_o be_v not_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n 2._o we_o hold_v reason_n right_a reason_n to_o be_v a_o light_n which_o god_n have_v give_v we_o wherewith_o to_o search_v into_o the_o meaning_n of_o his_o word_n and_o by_o studious_a inquisition_n and_o observation_n to_o discover_v and_o find_v out_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o word_n and_o to_o make_v it_o know_v to_o other_o and_o by_o good_a reason_n out_o of_o the_o text_n to_o convince_v other_o of_o ●he_n truth_n of_o it_o these_o thing_n we_o can_v never_o do_v unless_o we_o be_v rational_a divine_n and_o unless_o we_o use_v our_o reason_n in_o study_v speak_v or_o write_v of_o matter_n of_o divinity_n and_o do_v not_o our_o author_n do_v the_o same_o if_o he_o say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o because_o than_o he_o shall_v be_v in_o danger_n of_o be_v a_o rational_a divine_a but_o he_o be_v not_o nor_o will_v be_v a_o rational_a divine_a 46._o doubt_v conscience_n resolve_v p._n 46._o we_o demand_v in_o the_o word_n of_o dr._n twiss_n do_v this_o author_n reason_n go_v to_o bed_n and_o sleep_n when_o he_o come_v to_o read_v and_o studious_o to_o consider_v the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o it_o do_v he_o will_v prove_v no_o better_o than_o a_o drowsy_a student_n and_o we_o know_v no_o reason_n but_o such_o a_o one_o may_v be_v in_o love_n with_o dream_n as_o well_o as_o anabaptist_n say_v dr._n twiss_n but_o we_o rather_o say_v as_o w●ll_n as_o those_o prophet_n of_o w●●om_n we_o read_v in_o jerem._n 23.25_o that_o they_o prophesy_v lie_n in_o the_o lord_n name_v say_v i_o have_v dream_v i_o have_v dream_v thus_o we_o make_v a_o end_n of_o what_o we_o think_v fit_a to_o say_v on_o the_o four_o general_n head_n we_o have_v lay_v before_o the_o reader_n some_o of_o his_o calumny_n and_o aspersion_n cast_v upon_o we_o and_o have_v wipe_v they_o off_o and_o we_o can_v do_v no_o less_o though_o it_o thereby_o appear_v that_o he_o have_v be_v a_o false_a accuser_n of_o christ_n minister_n against_o the_o sincerity_n of_o christian_a love_n chap._n v._o where_o people_n be_v advise_v to_o try_v before_o they_o trust_v and_o not_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v impose_v upon_o and_o lead_v into_o error_n by_o the_o bold_a unproved_a assertion_n and_o dictate_v of_o any_o preacher_n or_o writer_n whatsoever_o for_o our_o part_n we_o neither_o have_v nor_o desire_v to_o have_v dominion_n over_o people_n faith_n 2_o cor._n 1.24_o and_o therefore_o we_o do_v not_o desire_v that_o any_o man_n shall_v believe_v we_o and_o be_v of_o our_o judgement_n any_o further_a than_o what_o we_o say_v or_o write_v be_v agreeable_a to_o holy_a scripture_n and_o to_o right_a reason_n ground_v upon_o scripture_n in_o those_o thing_n wherein_o we_o affirm_v that_o our_o author_n have_v err_v from_o the_o truth_n we_o have_v endeavour_v to_o prove_v by_o clear_a scripture_n and_o plain_a reason_n consonant_n to_o scripture_n that_o he_o have_v so_o err_v and_o before_o people_n positive_o conclude_v that_o we_o be_v in_o the_o right_n we_o entreat_v they_o to_o weigh_v and_o consider_v well_o what_o we_o have_v write_v to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o assertion_n and_o after_o due_a consideration_n to_o judge_v according_a to_o the_o evidence_n of_o our_o proof_n as_o they_o will_v answer_v to_o god_n and_o their_o own_o conscience_n if_o we_o have_v clear_o and_o faithful_o declare_v to_o people_n the_o mind_n and_o will_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v reveal_v by_o holy_a scripture_n though_o we_o do_v not_o desire_v that_o they_o shall_v submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o we_o and_o believe_v what_o we_o believe_v mere_o because_o we_o believe_v it_o yet_o we_o do_v expect_v that_o they_o shall_v submit_v their_o judgement_n unto_o god_n as_o we_o have_v do_v and_o that_o they_o shall_v believe_v what_o we_o believe_v because_o god_n have_v reveal_v the_o matter_n of_o our_o belief_n both_o to_o we_o and_o they_o and_o whosoever_o shall_v either_o neglect_n or_o refuse_v to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n unto_o god_n and_o to_o believe_v what_o they_o know_v or_o may_v easy_o know_v he_o have_v reveal_v will_v be_v find_v guilty_a before_o the_o lord_n of_o unbelief_n and_o spiritual_a pride_n for_o which_o he_o will_v one_o day_n call_v they_o to_o a_o account_n but_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n if_o any_o think_v and_o affirm_v that_o we_o be_v mistake_v in_o our_o judgement_n of_o the_o thing_n in_o controversy_n and_o that_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v with_o we_o to_o believe_v they_o to_o such_o we_o say_v that_o if_o in_o any_o of_o they_o we_o be_v mistake_v it_o be_v more_o than_o we_o know_v and_o our_o mistake_n be_v altogether_o involuntary_a for_o the_o lord_n know_v that_o we_o have_v diligent_o search_v for_o the_o truth_n as_o to_o all_o the_o matter_n in_o controversy_n with_o a_o earnest_a desire_n to_o find_v it_o and_o with_o frequent_a and_o fervent_a prayer_n to_o the_o god_n of_o truth_n that_o he_o will_v teach_v we_o the_o truth_n that_o by_o his_o spirit_n of_o truth_n according_a to_o his_o word_n of_o truth_n he_o will_v lead_v we_o into_o the_o truth_n of_o those_o matter_n and_o we_o be_v full_o persuade_v in_o our_o own_o mind_n that_o god_n have_v hear_v our_o prayer_n bless_v our_o endeavour_n and_o cause_v we_o to_o find_v the_o truth_n which_o we_o have_v diligent_o seek_v and_o search_v for_o we_o have_v also_o give_v the_o world_n a_o account_n of_o the_o ground_n and_o reason_n of_o this_o our_o persuasion_n which_o we_o submit_v to_o the_o impartial_a examination_n of_o all_o that_o fear_v the_o lord_n and_o be_v sincere_a lover_n of_o truth_n not_o doubt_v but_o that_o person_n so_o well_o dispose_v will_v find_v upon_o impartial_a examination_n of_o the_o matter_n in_o controversy_n that_o our_o ground_n be_v solid_a and_o our_o reason_n cogent_n and_o conclusive_a yet_o if_o in_o any_o one_o thing_n we_o shall_v happen_v to_o be_v mistake_v which_o we_o believe_v we_o be_v not_o we_o declare_v that_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o desire_v any_o to_o follow_v we_o in_o that_o mistake_n and_o to_o believe_v any_o thing_n in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n which_o god_n have_v not_o reveal_v that_o on_o the_o contrary_a we_o shall_v through_o grace_n be_v real_o thankful_a first_o to_o god_n and_o next_o to_o such_o man_n as_o shall_v convince_v we_o of_o our_o mistake_n by_o evidence_n of_o scripture_n or_o by_o right_a reason_n without_o rail_a and_o scold_v as_o for_o those_o who_o have_v accustom_v themselves_o unto_o that_o way_n of_o write_v let_v they_o not_o think_v that_o ever_o they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o move_v we_o from_o our_o persuasion_n by_o rail_a at_o we_o and_o call_v we_o heretic_n if_o any_o attack_v we_o with_o such_o carnal_a weapon_n they_o will_v bu●_n discover_v their_o own_o weakness_n and_o folly_n and_o we_o hope_v it_o shall_v have_v no_o other_o effect_n upon_o we_o but_o to_o move_v we_o to_o pity_v they_o and_o to_o pray_v the_o lord_n to_o make_v they_o better_a christian_n it_o be_v not_o any_o man_n bare_a think_n or_o bold_a say_n that_o we_o be_v mistake_v
uncere_a obedience_n to_o be_v a_o legal_a but_o a_o evangelical_n condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o consequent_o that_o in_o our_o judgement_n they_o do_v not_o hold_v the_o same_o place_n and_o office_n in_o the_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o personal_a perfect_a sinless_a obedience_n have_v and_o be_v to_o have_v have_v in_o the_o first_o covenant_n of_o innocency_n and_o of_o work_n object_n but_o say_v our_o author_n in_o his_o appendix_n pag._n 39_o it_o be_v the_o achillaean_a argument_n of_o the_o new_a divinity_n that_o faith_n repentance_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v our_o evangelical_n righteousness_n and_o that_o righteousness_n be_v our_o defence_n against_o the_o charge_n of_o unbelief_n impenitence_n etc._n etc._n and_o what_o then_o why_o in_o the_o follow_a page_n he_o so_o shape_v it_o as_o might_n best_o serve_v his_o design_n which_o be_v to_o make_v the_o people_n believe_v that_o we_o set_v up_o our_o own_o righteousness_n in_o the_o place_n of_o christ_n and_o maintain_v that_o man_n must_v be_v justify_v by_o their_o own_o righteousness_n and_o not_o only_o by_o christ_n and_o so_o he_o trip_v up_o achilles_n heel_n by_o the_o fallacy_n of_o many_o interrogation_n but_o it_o will_v be_v no_o very_o difficult_a task_n to_o scatter_v this_o mist_n which_o he_o have_v cast_v before_o the_o people_n eye_n in_o order_n thereunto_o let_v it_o be_v consider_v 1._o that_o the_o substance_n of_o this_o argument_n be_v not_o invent_v by_o any_o among_o we_o dead_a or_o alive_a that_o we_o know_v of_o but_o some_o in_o this_o nation_n have_v read_v it_o in_o some_o very_o eminent_o learn_v foreign_a divine_n particular_o ludovicus_n de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr at_o large_a and_o the_o holy_a humble_a learned_a and_o most_o acute_a placeus_n they_o receive_v it_o and_o improve_v it_o as_o useful_a to_o clear_v some_o seem_a difficulty_n in_o scripture_n object_v to_o we_o by_o our_o adversary_n the_o papist_n 2._o consider_v that_o this_o way_n of_o reconcile_a james_n with_o paul_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n for_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o be_v take_v up_o also_o by_o the_o learned_a turretin_n 3._o that_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o all_o of_o we_o ever_o express_v ourselves_o in_o those_o word_n for_o the_o clear_n up_o of_o the_o seem_a difference_n between_o james_n and_o paul_n 4._o that_o those_o who_o do_v take_v that_o way_n do_v not_o impose_v it_o upon_o other_o we_o know_v there_o have_v be_v many_o way_n take_v by_o reform_a divine_n to_o expound_v james_n so_o as_o not_o to_o contradict_v paul_n and_o some_o considerable_a difference_n there_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v among_o divine_n in_o the_o methodize_n and_o express_v of_o their_o notious_a of_o those_o matter_n but_o yet_o there_o appear_v to_o be_v very_o little_a difference_n among_o they_o as_o to_o the_o thing_n themselves_o indeed_o upon_o the_o matter_n all_o seem_v to_o come_v almost_o to_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o particular_o let_v it_o be_v consider_v 5._o that_o this_o way_n of_o interpret_n james_n his_o justification_n by_o work_n and_o reconcile_a it_o with_o paul_n justification_n by_o faith_n seem_v to_o differ_v from_o the_o more_o common_a modern_a opinion_n most_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o expression_n which_o some_o of_o we_o think_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n phrase_n but_o we_o leave_v every_o man_n to_o express_v his_o notion_n as_o best_o please_v he_o provide_v that_o if_o he_o do_v not_o use_v scripture_n word_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o contradict_v scripture_n sense_n and_o therefore_o 6._o we_o desire_v it_o may_v be_v consider_v that_o this_o way_n of_o expound_v james_n which_o we_o be_v now_o speak_v of_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o contradict_v the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o rather_o serve_v to_o explain_v it_o if_o it_o be_v understand_v as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o the_o true_a genuine_a sense_n of_o its_o author_n for_o 1._o though_o they_o say_v that_o our_o faith_n repentance_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v a_o evangelical_n righteousness_n as_o indeed_o it_o be_v yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o declare_v that_o this_o evangelical_n righteousness_n be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n on_o our_o part_n whereby_o we_o be_v interest_v first_o and_o still_o keep_v our_o interest_n in_o the_o satisfactory_a meritorious_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n by_o and_o for_o which_o alone_o we_o be_v justify_v from_o first_o to_o last_o they_o do_v not_o say_v that_o this_o evangelical_n righteousness_n which_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n do_v satisfy_v god_n justice_n for_o the_o least_o sin_n either_o against_o law_n or_o gospel_n or_o that_o it_o do_v proper_o merit_v to_o we_o the_o least_o good_a so_o much_o as_o a_o cup_n of_o cold_a water_n they_o give_v unto_o christ_n alone_o the_o whole_a glory_n of_o have_v by_o his_o righteousness_n satisfy_v justice_n for_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o merit_v to_o we_o all_o our_o mercy_n so_o that_o our_o author_n be_v we_o think_v a_o little_a impertinent_a in_o put_v his_o question_n page_n 41._o what_o be_v that_o righteousness_n which_o justify_v a_o man_n from_o the_o sin_n of_o unbelief_n for_o he_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o the_o worthy_a divine_n as_o he_o deserve_o call_v they_o with_o who_o he_o have_v to_o do_v in_o that_o argument_n have_v publish_v it_o to_o all_o the_o world_n under_o their_o hand_n that_o assoon_o as_o a_o man_n who_o be_v before_o a_o unbeliever_n begin_v through_o grace_n sincere_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o to_o repent_v of_o his_o unbelief_n and_o of_o all_o his_o other_o sin_n immediate_o thereupon_o christ_n satisfactory_a meritorious_a righteousness_n justify_v he_o from_o his_o sin_n of_o unbelief_n and_o from_o all_o his_o other_o former_a sin_n both_o original_a and_o actual_a that_o be_v god_n by_o and_o for_o christ_n righteousness_n justify_v he_o from_o they_o upon_o his_o believe_v and_o repent_v and_o as_o our_o author_n know_v this_o to_o be_v true_a so_o he_o have_v honest_o confess_v it_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o paragraph_n will_v any_o man_n say_v he_o dare_v to_o tell_v a_o person_n who_o be_v trouble_v in_o conscience_n about_o his_o sin_n of_o unbelief_n that_o christ_n righteousness_n be_v his_o legal_a righteousness_n against_o the_o charge_n of_o sin_n against_o the_o law_n but_o for_o gospel-charge_n he_o must_v answer_v they_o in_o his_o own_o name_n i_o know_v our_o hot_a opposer_n will_v abhor_v such_o a_o answer_n and_o will_v free_o tell_v such_o a_o man_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n cleanse_v from_o all_o sin_n and_o that_o his_o justification_n from_o his_o unbelief_n must_v be_v only_o in_o that_o righteousness_n which_o he_o so_o sinful_o have_v reject_v while_n in_o unbelief_n and_o now_o lay_v hold_v on_o by_o faith_n here_o the_o truth_n come_v out_o at_o last_o and_o in_o effect_n he_o give_v the_o lie_n to_o his_o own_o false_a accusation_n of_o the_o lord_n minister_n and_o acquit_v the_o accuse_a for_o if_o his_o hot_a opposer_n free_o tell_v people_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n cleanse_v from_o all_o sin_n and_o that_o their_o justification_n from_o the_o sin_n of_o unbelief_n must_v be_v only_o by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n then_o how_o can_v those_o thing_n be_v true_a whereof_o as_o be_v observe_v before_o he_o have_v accuse_v we_o in_o page_n 6_o 28_o 33_o and_o page_n 39_o that_o we_o bring_v our_o own_o pitiful_a holiness_n into_o justification_n and_o make_v it_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n of_o judgement_n with_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n of_o god_n exit_fw-la ore_fw-la tuo_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o 2._o the_o author_n of_o the_o argument_n we_o be_v upon_o never_o say_v write_v or_o so_o much_o as_o think_v that_o can_v be_v know_v that_o our_o sincere_a faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v a_o defence_n or_o justification_n against_o a_o charge_n of_o unbelief_n or_o impenitence_n give_v in_o against_o we_o by_o god_n for_o they_o know_v full_a well_o without_o be_v teach_v it_o by_o this_o author_n that_o the_o god_n of_o truth_n can_v be_v the_o author_n of_o a_o lie_n which_o he_o will_v certain_o and_o evident_o be_v if_o he_o shall_v charge_v we_o with_o be_v unbeliever_n and_o impenitent_a at_o that_o very_a time_n when_o he_o know_v that_o by_o his_o own_o spirit_n and_o grace_n we_o sincere_o believe_v and_o repent_v but_o that_o which_o the_o aforesaid_a excellent_a divine_n say_v be_v yet_o to_o be_v see_v in_o their_o write_n and_o it_o be_v this_o that_o our_o sincere_a faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v a_o defence_n and_o justification_n against_o any_o false_a charge_n of_o unbelief_n and_o impenitence_n that_o be_v or_o possible_o may_v be_v give_v in_o against_o
be_v sincere_a consist_v in_o a_o real_a true_a hearty_a desire_n and_o endeavour_v to_o be_v faithful_a unto_o the_o lord_n and_o through_o grace_n to_o stand_v perfect_a and_o complete_a in_o all_o the_o will_n of_o god_n col._n 4.12_o 3._o this_o sincere_a obedience_n do_v not_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o the_o least_o sin_n nor_o do_v it_o purchase_n or_o merit_v the_o least_o mercy_n not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o cup_n of_o cold_a water_n much_o less_o the_o unconceivable_o great_a blessing_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n 4._o as_o this_o obedience_n do_v not_o purchase_v or_o merit_v eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n itself_o so_o neither_o do_v it_o purchase_n or_o merit_v our_o right_n to_o it_o and_o god_n actual_a donation_n of_o it_o for_o it_o be_v christ_n alone_o that_o purchase_v our_o right_n to_o it_o by_o his_o obediential_a suffering_n unto_o death_n for_o we_o and_o in_o our_o justification_n god_n by_o his_o promise_n for_o christ_n sake_n give_v we_o our_o right_n to_o it_o and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o our_o day_n when_o we_o leave_v this_o world_n god_n will_v actual_o give_v eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n to_o we_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o hand_n and_o power_n of_o christ_n john_n 17.2_o rom._n 6.23_o so_o that_o 5ly_n since_o our_o sincere_a obedience_n neither_o merit_n nor_o give_v we_o right_o unto_o nor_o yet_o actual_o give_v we_o possession_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n it_o remain_v that_o it_o must_v be_v the_o mean_n to_o be_v use_v and_o condition_n to_o be_v perform_v on_o our_o part_n that_o god_n for_o christ_n sake_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n may_v continue_v our_o right_n to_o and_o may_v give_v we_o possession_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n now_o this_o we_o prove_v first_o by_o plain_a scripture_n scripture_n first_o argument_n from_o scripture_n for_o we_o find_v in_o holy_a scripture_n that_o god_n require_v our_o obedience_n as_o aforesaid_a for_o obtain_v the_o promise_a benefit_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o glory_n so_o as_o to_o suspend_v our_o obtain_n of_o eternal_a glory_n in_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n on_o our_o perform_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n unto_o he_o and_o continue_v therein_o to_o the_o end_n 1._o here_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v first_o that_o sincere_a obedience_n be_v require_v of_o we_o and_o for_o that_o see_v mat._n 11.29_o 30._o take_v my_o yoke_n upon_o you_o and_o learn_v of_o i_o for_o my_o yoke_n be_v easy_a and_o my_o burden_n be_v light_a mat._n 12.50_o whosoever_o shall_v do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n the_o same_o be_v my_o brother_n and_o sister_n and_o mother_n mat._n 28.20_o teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o and_z lo_o i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n luke_n 6.46_o why_o call_v you_o i_o lord_n lord_n and_o do_v not_o the_o thing_n which_o i_o say_v see_v also_o john_n 13.34_o and_o 14._o v._o 15_o 21_o 23_o 24._o and_o 15._o v._o 10_o 14._o rom._n 6.12_o 13._o and_o 8._o v._o 12_o 13._o and_o 12._o v._o 1_o 2._o 1_o cor._n 15.58_o eph._n 5._o v._n 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 15_o 16._o 1._o thess_n 4._o v._n 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o etc._n etc._n tit._n 2.12_o heb._n 6.11_o 12._o and_o 12._o v._o 1._o and_o 13._o v._o 1_o 5._o jam._n 1._o v._n 4_o 5_o 19_o 20_o 21_o 22_o 27._o and_o 2._o v._o 12._o and_o 3.13_o 1_o pet._n 13_o 14_o 15_o 16_o 17._o and_o 2._o v._o 1_o 2_o 11_o 12._o and_o 3._o v._o 8_o 9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o and_o 5._o v._o 2_o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o 2_o pet._n 3.11.17_o 18._o 1_o john_n 2.4_o 5_o 6._o and_o 3.18_o and_o 2_o john_n v._n 8_o 9_o judas_n v._n 20_o 21._o rev._n 2.5_o rev._n 14.6_o 7_o 12._o second_o it_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v that_o god_n have_v suspend_v our_o obtain_n of_o eternal_a glory_n in_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n on_o our_o perform_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n unto_o he_o and_o continue_v therein_o to_o the_o end_n and_o to_o prove_v this_o there_o need_v no_o more_o but_o to_o demonstrate_v from_o scripture_n that_o if_o we_o be_v obedient_a unto_o the_o lord_n as_o be_v say_v we_o shall_v obtain_v the_o possession_n of_o eternal_a glory_n in_o heaven_n but_o if_o we_o be_v not_o so_o obedient_a we_o shall_v not_o obtain_v it_o now_o both_o these_o be_v so_o infallible_o certain_a and_o evident_a that_o real_o it_o be_v a_o shame_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v put_v to_o prove_v they_o unto_o man_n that_o own_o themselves_o to_o be_v christian_n for_o 1._o that_o none_o shall_v obtain_v the_o possession_n of_o eternal_a glory_n in_o heaven_n but_o penitent_a obedient_a persevere_v believer_n be_v it_o not_o as_o clear_v as_o the_o sun_n from_o these_o passage_n of_o holy_a write_v not_o every_o one_o that_o say_v unto_o i_o lord_n 7.21_o matth._n 7.21_o lord_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n 27._o 26_o 27._o compare_v this_o with_o the_o follow_a verse_n and_o you_o will_v see_v that_o our_o saviour_n himself_o have_v declare_v that_o man_n to_o be_v a_o fool_n that_o do_v not_o do_v his_o commandment_n and_o yet_o hope_n that_o so_o live_v and_o die_v he_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o he_o from_o the_o flood_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o vengeance_n of_o all_o such_o disobedient_a rebel_n the_o lord_n christ_n will_v say_v those_o my_o enemy_n who_o will_v not_o that_o i_o shall_v reign_v over_o they_o 19.27_o luke_n 19.27_o bring_v hither_o and_o slay_v they_o before_o i_o and_o bless_a paul_n assure_v we_o that_o when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v be_v reveal_v from_o heaven_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n 8._o 2_o thess_n 1.7_o 8._o he_o himself_o will_v in_o flame_a fire_n take_v vengeance_n on_o they_o that_o know_v not_o god_n and_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n st._n peter_n ask_v the_o question_n 4.17_o 1_o pet._n 4.17_o what_o shall_v the_o end_n be_v of_o they_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n and_o st._n paul_n answer_v it_o in_o the_o place_n now_o cite_v that_o christ_n himself_o will_v take_v vengeance_n of_o they_o in_o flame_a fire_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o everlasting_a destruction_n from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o from_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o power_n the_o same_o apostle_n say_v again_o in_o another_o place_n the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o faith_n but_o if_o any_o man_n draw_v back_o 10.38_o heb._n 10.38_o my_o soul_n shall_v have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o he_o the_o word_n any_o man_n be_v not_o in_o the_o original_a and_o therefore_o they_o be_v print_v in_o a_o different_a character_n it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o he_o draw_v back_o if_o the_o just_a man_n that_o live_v by_o faith_n if_o he_o draw_v back_o if_o he_o apostatise_v the_o lord_n soul_n will_v have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o he_o that_o be_v the_o lord_n will_v abhor_v he_o unto_o perdition_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o context_n this_o passage_n be_v parallel_n to_o that_o of_o ezekiel_n when_o or_o 18.26_o chap._n 18.26_o if_z a_o righteous_a man_n turn_v away_o from_o his_o righteousness_n and_o commit_v iniquity_n and_o die_v in_o they_o for_o his_o iniquity_n that_o he_o have_v do_v shall_v he_o die_v and_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v go_v about_o to_o persuade_v people_n to_o believe_v that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v though_o they_o die_v in_o such_o sin_n without_o repentance_n bless_a and_o holy_a paul_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v caution_v we_o all_o against_o such_o as_o deceiver_n say_v as_o it_o be_v write_v 5.6_o ephes_n 5.6_o let_v no_o man_n deceive_v you_o with_o vain_a word_n for_o because_o of_o these_o thing_n come_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n 12.14_o heb._n 12.14_o and_o assure_v we_o that_o without_o holiness_n no_o man_n shall_v see_v the_o lord_n and_o 2._o on_o the_o other_o hand_n be_v it_o not_o as_o clear_v that_o all_o persevere_v penitent_a obedient_a believer_n shall_v certain_o obtain_v the_o possession_n of_o eternal_a glory_n in_o heaven_n through_o the_o infinite_a mercy_n of_o god_n and_o merit_n of_o christ_n for_o do_v not_o our_o lord_n himself_o say_v very_o very_o if_o a_o man_n keep_v my_o say_n 8.51_o joh._n 8.51_o he_o shall_v never_o see_v death_n that_o be_v the_o second_o and_o eternal_a death_n and_o as_o for_o bodily_a death_n he_o shall_v at_o the_o last_o day_n be_v save_v and_o deliver_v from_o that_o also_o for_o as_o it_o be_v write_v 29._o john_n 5.28_o 29._o then_o they_o that_o have_v do_v good_a shall_v come_v forth_o of_o their_o grave_n unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o
the_o condition_n of_o it_o it_o be_v clear_a also_o that_o he_o hold_v as_o we_o do_v that_o god_n by_o his_o special_a grace_n purchase_v for_o we_o by_o christ_n and_o give_v to_o we_o for_o christ_n sake_n enable_v we_o and_o all_o the_o elect_n to_o perform_v the_o condition_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o that_o effectual_o and_o infallible_o as_o for_o the_o non-elect_a who_o do_v not_o perform_v the_o condition_n he_o say_v the_o reason_n the_o culpable_a reason_n of_o that_o be_v because_o they_o will_v not_o and_o though_o it_o be_v true_a also_o that_o they_o can_v yet_o that_o be_v not_o a_o mere_a physical_a but_o a_o moral_n can_v which_o arise_v from_o the_o evil_a disposition_n of_o their_o mind_n and_o affection_n whereby_o they_o will_v not_o that_o this_o be_v dr._n twiss_n his_o judgement_n be_v evident_a by_o these_o follow_a testimony_n of_o his_o quote_v out_o of_o the_o same_o book_n observe_v we_o far_o how_o this_o author_n confound_v impotency_n moral_a 156._o ibid._n p._n 155_o 156._o which_o consist_v in_o the_o corruption_n of_o man_n power_n natural_a and_o impotency_n natural_a which_o consist_v in_o bereave_v he_o of_o power_n natural_a the_o lord_n tell_v we_o by_o his_o prophet_n jeremiah_n cap._n 13.23_o that_o like_a as_o a_o blackamoor_n can_v change_v his_o skin_n nor_o a_o leopard_n his_o spot_n no_o more_o can_v they_o do_v good_a that_o be_v accustom_v unto_o evil_n now_o if_o a_o man_n take_v in_o stealth_n shall_v plead_v thus_o before_o a_o judge_n my_o lord_n i_o beseech_v you_o have_v compassion_n upon_o i_o for_o i_o have_v so_o long_a time_n enure_v my_o hand_n to_o pilfer_a that_o now_o i_o can_v forbear_v it_o will_v this_o be_v accept_v as_o a_o good_a plea_n to_o save_v he_o from_o the_o gallow_n as_o for_o faith_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o divine_n distinguish_v between_o fides_fw-la acquisita_fw-la and_o side_n infusa_fw-la acquire_v and_o infuse_v faith_n that_o we_o may_v call_v a_o faith_n natural_o acquire_v which_o be_v find_v in_o carnal_a person_n whether_o profane_a or_o hypocritical_a and_o this_o to_o wit_n the_o infuse_a be_v a_o faith_n inspire_v by_o god_n spirit_n the_o object_n of_o each_o be_v all_o one_o and_o a_o man_n may_v suffer_v martyrdom_n for_o the_o one_o as_o well_o as_o for_o the_o other_o which_o manifess_v the_o pertinacious_a adherence_n thereunto_o and_o it_o appear_v that_o all_o profession_n have_v have_v their_o martyr_n albeit_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n to_o believe_v side_n infusa_fw-la with_o a_o inspire_a faith_n yet_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n side_n acquisitâ_fw-la with_o a_o acquire_v faith_n which_o depend_v partly_o upon_o a_o man_n education_n and_o partly_o upon_o reason_n consider_v the_o credibility_n of_o the_o christian_a way_n by_o light_n of_o natural_a observation_n above_o all_o other_o way_n in_o the_o world_n and_o when_o man_n refuse_v to_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n not_o so_o much_o because_o of_o the_o incredibility_n of_o it_o but_o because_o it_o be_v not_o congruous_a to_o their_o natural_a affection_n as_o our_o saviour_n tell_v the_o jew_n light_n come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o man_n love_v darkness_n father_n than_o light_n because_o their_o deed_n be_v evil_a john_n 3.19_o be_v there_o any_o reason_n why_o their_o condemnation_n shall_v be_v any_o whit_n the_o easy_a for_o this_o neither_o have_v i_o ever_o read_v or_o hear_v it_o teach_v by_o any_o that_o 〈◊〉_d shall_v be_v damn_v for_o not_o believe_v with_o a_o infuse_a faith_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v because_o go●d_n have_v not_o regenerate_v they_o but_o either_o because_o they_o have_v refuse_v to_o believe_v or_o else_o if_o they_o have_v embrace_v the_o gospel_n for_o not_o live_v answerable_a thereunto_o which_o also_o be_v in_o their_o power_n quoad_fw-la exteriorem_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la emendationem_fw-la as_o to_o the_o outward_a reformation_n of_o their_o life_n though_o it_o be_v not_o in_o their_o power_n to_o regenerate_v their_o will_n and_o change_v their_o heart_n any_o more_o than_o it_o be_v to_o illuminate_v their_o mind_n yet_o i_o never_o read_v that_o any_o man_n damnation_n be_v any_o whit_n the_o more_o increase_v for_o not_o perform_v these_o act_n again_o the_o man_n bereave_v of_o his_o eye_n have_v a_o will_n to_o read_v and_o consequent_o it_o be_v no_o fault_n for_o not_o read_v for_o all_o sin_n be_v in_o the_o will._n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o not_o obey_v either_o law_n or_o gospel_n 170._o ibid._n page_n 170._o if_o a_o man_n have_v a_o will_n to_o obey_v and_o believe_v but_o he_o can_v not_o in_o such_o a_o case_n it_o be_v unreasonable_a he_o shall_v be_v punish_v but_o in_o the_o case_n of_o disobedience_n unto_o god_n we_o speak_v of_o all_o the_o fault_n be_v in_o the_o will_n voluntary_o and_o wilful_o they_o neither_o will_v obey_v the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o like_a as_o they_o that_o have_v accustom_v themselves_o to_o do_v evil_a can_v do_v good_a as_o a_o blackamoor_n can_v change_v his_o skin_n yet_o with_o this_o difference_n that_o man_n be_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o more_o excusable_a or_o less_o punishable_a for_o not_o do_v that_o which_o be_v good_a not_o so_o the_o blackamoor_n for_o not_o change_v his_o skin_n but_o such_o be_v the_o shameful_a issue_n of_o they_o that_o confound_v impotency_n moral_a with_o impotency_n natural_a as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n etc._n etc._n again_o to_o the_o rule_n of_o law_n object_v by_o mr._n hoard_n that_o contractus_fw-la sub_fw-la conditione_n impraestabili_fw-la nullus_fw-la aestimatur_fw-la a_o contract_n or_o promise_v make_v upon_o a_o condition_n not_o performable_a by_o the_o party_n 186._o ibid._n p._n 185_o 186._o be_v esteem_v none_o at_o all_o twiss_n answer_v thus_o conditio_fw-la impraestabilis_fw-la a_o condition_n not_o performable_a be_v there_o such_o as_o can_v be_v perform_v by_o reason_n of_o impotency_n natural_a but_o the_o impotency_n we_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o case_n between_o god_n and_o man_n be_v mere_o impotency_n moral_a to_o wit_n therefore_o they_o can_v because_o they_o will_v not_o be_v it_o not_o for_o the_o corruption_n of_o their_o will_n no_o power_n be_v want_v in_o man_n to_o believe_v and_o repent_v again_o do_v thou_o complain_v thou_o have_v no_o power_n to_o believe_v but_o i_o pray_v thou_o tell_v i_o have_v thou_o any_o will_n to_o believe_v if_o thou_o neither_o have_v nor_o ever_o have_v any_o will_n to_o believe_v 220._o ibid._n p._n 219_o 220._o what_o a_o shamesul_n and_o unreasonable_a thing_n be_v it_o to_o complain_v that_o thou_o have_v no_o power_n to_o believe_v st._n paul_n have_v a_o most_o gracious_a will_n but_o he_o sound_v in_o himself_o no_o power_n to_o do_v what_o he_o will_v but_o what_o be_v the_o issue_n of_o this_o complaint_n to_o sly_a in_o the_o face_n of_o god_n nothing_o less_o but_o to_o confess_v his_o own_o wretchedness_n and_o flee_v unto_o god_n in_o this_o manner_n who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o the_o body_n of_o this_o death_n and_o receive_v a_o gracious_a answer_n concern_v this_o conclude_v with_o thanks_o i_o thank_v god_n through_o my_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n if_o i_o have_v a_o will_v to_o believe_v to_o repent_v i_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o complain_v but_o to_o run_v rather_o unto_o god_n with_o thanks_o for_o this_o and_o pray_v he_o to_o give_v that_o power_n which_o i_o find_v want_v in_o i_o and_o indeed_o this_o impotency_n of_o believe_v and_o infidelity_n the_o fruit_n of_o natural_a corruption_n common_a to_o all_o be_v mere_o a_o moral_a impotency_n and_o the_o very_a ground_n of_o it_o be_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o will_n therefore_o man_n can_v believe_v can_v repent_v can_v do_v any_o thing_n please_v unto_o god_n because_o they_o will_v not_o they_o have_v no_o delight_n therein_o but_o all_o their_o delight_n be_v carnal_a sensual_a and_o because_o they_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n they_o can_v please_v god_n and_o because_o of_o the_o hardness_n of_o their_o heart_n they_o can_v repent_v sin_n be_v unto_o they_o as_o a_o sweet_a mirsel_n unto_o a_o epicure_n which_o he_o roll_v under_o his_o tongue_n this_o and_o much_o more_o to_o this_o purpose_n have_v twiss_n in_o his_o book_n against_o hoard_n and_o that_o this_o be_v his_o settle_a judgement_n be_v evident_a by_o what_o he_o write_v in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n it_o be_v true_a that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o man_n to_o add_v unto_o the_o word_n the_o efficacy_n of_o god_n spirit_n 123._o page_n 122_o 123._o and_o it_o be_v as_o true_a that_o a_o carnal_a man_n have_v no_o desire_n that_o god_n will_v add_v the_o efficacy_n of_o his_o spirit_n
covenant_n he_o be_v find_v to_o be_v a_o godly_a man_n through_o grace_n to_o be_v evangelical_o godly_a because_o he_o be_v just_a such_o a_o man_n as_o the_o lord_n by_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o evangelical_n law_n require_v he_o to_o be_v that_o he_o may_v be_v first_o justify_v by_o christ_n righteousness_n impute_v to_o he_o that_o be_v he_o be_v find_v to_o be_v a_o man_n who_o god_n have_v bless_v with_o a_o new_a heart_n and_o who_o be_v a_o true_a penitent_a believer_n and_o that_o be_v a_o man_n evangelical_o godly_a now_o there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n at_o all_o in_o this_o for_o the_o same_o man_n at_o the_o same_o time_n to_o be_v legal_o ungodly_a and_o evangelical_o godly_a because_o it_o be_v with_o respect_n to_o different_a law_n and_o covenant_n that_o such_o contrary_a thing_n be_v affirm_v of_o he_o let_v our_o author_n if_o he_o please_v consult_v turretine_n and_o he_o will_v find_v that_o that_o learned_a calvinist_n say_v express_o 714._o turret_n instit_fw-la part_n 2._o loc_fw-la 16._o pag._n 714._o that_o a_o true_a believer_n when_o he_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v impius_fw-la partim_fw-la antecedenter_fw-la partim_fw-la respectiuè_fw-la ad_fw-la justificationem_fw-la non_fw-la autem_fw-la concomitant_a ungodly_a partly_o antecedent_o and_o that_o be_v because_o he_o be_v altogether_o ungodly_a in_o former_a time_n partly_o with_o respect_n to_o justification_n because_o he_o have_v nothing_o in_o himself_o that_o can_v be_v the_o matter_n and_o cause_n of_o his_o justification_n but_o he_o be_v not_o concomitant_o ungodly_a that_o be_v he_o do_v not_o remain_v ungodly_a when_o god_n be_v justify_v he_o and_o till_o immediafe_o after_o he_o be_v justify_v if_o our_o author_n upon_o this_o shall_v say_v to_o we_o what_o he_o say_v to_o his_o poor_a awaken_v sinner_n that_o it_o be_v nonsense_n ignorance_n and_o pride_n 31.32_o let._n p._n 31.32_o to_o maintain_v that_o a_o man_n must_v be_v in_o some_o measure_n godly_a in_o disposition_n and_o principle_n before_o he_o be_v godly_a in_o act_n and_o that_o he_o must_v actual_o believe_v with_o a_o godly_a faith_n in_o order_n of_o nature_n before_o he_o he_o justify_v for_o this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o a_o man_n must_v be_v pretty_a well_o recover_v before_o he_o make_v use_v of_o the_o physician_n etc._n etc._n we_o shall_v reply_v 1._o that_o as_o for_o his_o poor_a awaken_v sinner_n he_o make_v a_o poor_a fool_n of_o he_o he_o put_v what_o word_n he_o please_v in_o his_o mouth_n and_o make_v he_o say_v in_o effect_n that_o if_o he_o first_o have_v faith_n before_o he_o first_o have_v faith_n than_o he_o will_v first_o believe_v before_o he_o have_v first_o believe_v which_o we_o think_v no_o man_n ever_o think_v or_o say_v nor_o be_v capable_a of_o say_v unless_o it_o be_v some_o poor_a creature_n that_o be_v awaken_v out_o of_o his_o right_a wit_n or_o else_o it_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o our_o author_n who_o have_v the_o art_n of_o believe_v or_o write_v contradiction_n 2._o that_o he_o have_v need_n to_o take_v heed_n that_o he_o do_v not_o blaspheme_v our_o saviour_n who_o have_v say_v that_o the_o tree_n must_v be_v good_a before_o the_o fruit_n can_v be_v good_a matth._n 7.16_o 17_o 18._o and_o 12._o v._o 33._o and_o that_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v what_o we_o hold_v that_o there_o must_v be_v some_o renovation_n of_o the_o inward_a disposition_n of_o the_o heart_n before_o a_o man_n do_v actual_o believe_v with_o a_o save_n justify_v faith_n 3._o that_o if_o our_o author_n will_v not_o believe_v we_o let_v he_o believe_v his_o own_o belove_a self_n for_o he_o say_v pag._n 16._o that_o a_o man_n be_v to_o believe_v that_o be_v may_v be_v justify_v and_o that_o necessary_o imply_v that_o he_o must_v bring_v forth_o some_o good_a fruit_n in_o order_n of_o nature_n before_o he_o be_v justify_v and_o in_o pag._n 12._o he_o himself_o quote_v matth._n 12.33_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o tree_n must_v be_v good_a before_o the_o fruit_n be_v good_a 4._o we_o believe_v that_o our_o heavenly_a physician_n come_v first_o to_o we_o ordinary_o in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n by_o his_o prevent_a grace_n and_o do_v indeed_o recover_v we_o in_o part_n by_o cure_v the_o deadness_n and_o indisposedness_n of_o our_o heart_n before_o we_o go_v to_o he_o by_o a_o actual_a save_v justify_v faith_n and_o thereby_o employ_v he_o for_o our_o justification_n christ_n come_v first_o to_o we_o by_o his_o word_n and_o spirit_n and_o begin_v to_o cure_v we_o of_o our_o spiritual_a deadness_n to_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v save_o good_a before_o we_o go_v to_o he_o by_o actual_a justify_v faith_n and_o be_v by_o he_o deliver_v from_o our_o legal_a death_n in_o justification_n by_o faith_n in_o his_o blood_n 5._o if_o our_o author_n will_v yet_o go_v on_o to_o tell_v the_o people_n that_o we_o teach_v they_o not_o to_o employ_v the_o physician_n of_o soul_n till_o they_o have_v first_o pretty_a well_o cure_v themselves_o we_o take_v heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o witness_v that_o he_o belie_v we_o and_o abuse_v the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o people_n for_o we_o believe_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o confess_v with_o our_o mouth_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n the_o physician_n of_o soul_n that_o it_o be_v he_o who_o by_o his_o word_n spirit_n and_o grace_n both_o begin_v carry_v on_o and_o perfect_v the_o cure_n of_o all_o his_o select_a people_n and_o that_o he_o do_v it_o in_o the_o way_n and_o order_n set_v forth_o in_o his_o word_n of_o which_o we_o have_v here_o give_v the_o world_n a_o account_n according_a to_o that_o measure_n of_o light_n which_o it_o have_v please_v he_o of_o his_o rich_a mercy_n and_o free_a grace_n to_o bestow_v upon_o we_o 6._o and_o last_o we_o desire_v it_o may_v be_v consider_v whether_o our_o author_n say_v that_o to_o tell_v the_o people_n they_o must_v begin_v to_o be_v godly_a through_o grace_n by_o be_v penitent_a believer_n in_o order_n to_o their_o be_v justify_v be_v all_o one_o as_o to_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o must_v be_v pretty_a well_o recover_v and_o must_v cure_v themselves_o before_o they_o employ_v christ_n the_o physician_n of_o soul_n we_o say_v it_o be_v our_o desire_n people_n will_v consider_v whether_o this_o be_v not_o a_o piece_n of_o antinomian_a cant_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o this_o be_v the_o language_n of_o saltmarsh_n one_o of_o the_o gross_a of_o that_o sect_n in_o england_n that_o the_o promise_n belong_v to_o sinner_n as_o sinner_n not_o as_o repent_v or_o humble_a sinner_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o gataker_n shadow_n without_o substance_n pag._n 53._o and_o again_o say_v saltmarsh_n like_o our_o author_n in_o this_o do_v you_o look_v that_o man_n shall_v be_v first_o whole_a for_o the_o physician_n or_o righteous_a for_o pardon_n of_o sin_n or_o justify_v for_o christ_n 54._o ibid._n pag._n 54._o or_o rather_o sinner_n unrighteous_a ungodly_a and_o gataker_n there_o confute_v this_o precious_a stuff_n in_o pag._n 54_o 55_o 56_o 57_o 58._o again_o you_o saltmarsh_n say_v that_o every_o one_o who_o receive_v christ_n receive_v he_o in_o a_o sinful_a condition_n and_o consequent_o in_o a_o impenitent_a one_o ibid._n p._n 73._o and_o again_o say_v saltmarsh_n as_o our_o author_n do_v in_o pag._n 11._o of_o his_o letter_n can_v any_o man_n believe_v too_o soon_o 75._o gataker_n shadow_n without_o substance_n p._n 75._o to_o which_o question_n gataker_n answer_n no_o more_o than_o he_o can_v repent_v too_o soon_o thus_o we_o have_v at_o large_a answer_v every_o thing_n which_o we_o can_v find_v in_o the_o letter_n that_o look_v like_o a_o objection_n or_o argument_n against_o the_o truth_n which_o we_o believe_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n but_o after_o all_o it_o may_v be_v some_o will_v serious_o put_v this_o question_n be_v it_o likely_a that_o god_n will_v give_v we_o any_o grace_n to_o sanctify_v we_o in_o any_o kind_a or_o degree_n before_o he_o so_o love_v we_o as_o to_o justify_v we_o to_o which_o we_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o only_o likely_a to_o be_v but_o it_o certain_o be_v so_o that_o god_n love_v we_o so_o far_o as_o to_o make_v conditional_a promise_n to_o every_o one_o of_o his_o people_n and_o so_o far_o as_o to_o give_v they_o for_o christ_n sake_n grace_n to_o begin_v to_o perform_v the_o condition_n before_o he_o so_o far_o love_v they_o as_o actual_o to_o justify_v they_o for_o christ_n sake_n and_o that_o we_o say_v be_v a_o give_v of_o grace_n to_o sanctify_v we_o initial_o or_o to_o begin_v a_o holy_a change_n in_o we_o before_o we_o be_v actual_o justify_v and_o our_o sin_n be_v forgive_v we_o this_o we_o have_v so_o clear_o prove_v by_o
the_o sincere_a love_n the_o holy_a intention_n and_o kind_a will_n of_o those_o worshipper_n of_o demon_n and_o this_o seem_v agreeable_a to_o reason_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o for_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o the_o most_o just_a and_o merciful_a god_n do_v require_v more_o of_o a_o man_n than_o he_o have_v receive_v and_o more_o than_o be_v in_o a_o man_n power_n yea_o it_o be_v rather_o probable_a that_o god_n accept_v of_o what_o a_o man_n be_v able_a do_v if_o it_o be_v offer_v with_o a_o due_a intention_n thus_o the_o profound_a doctor_n and_o by_o this_o let_v all_o calvinist_n judge_n and_o let_v the_o conscience_n of_o our_o author_n judge_n how_o well_o that_o doctor_n have_v confute_v the_o pelagian_o and_o how_o great_o england_n be_v bless_v with_o such_o a_o confuter_n one_o touch_n more_o and_o we_o have_v do_v with_o he_o in_o the_o 26_o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n against_o pelagius_n he_o maintain_v with_o all_o his_o might_n that_o nothing_o be_v evil_a of_o itself_o but_o by_o accident_n no_o not_o the_o wicked_a thing_n that_o a_o man_n do_v or_o can_v do_v and_o therefore_o that_o the_o most_o horrid_a wickedness_n a_o man_n can_v commit_v in_o other_o circumstance_n may_v cease_v to_o be_v evil_a and_o be_v no_o sin_n to_o he_o that_o commit_v it_o to_o prove_v this_o he_o make_v several_a supposition_n as_o 1._o in_o pag._n 256._o he_o put_v this_o case_n which_o he_o say_v be_v possible_a that_o a_o simple_a man_n without_o any_o forego_n fault_n of_o he_o be_v so_o delude_v by_o the_o devil_n who_o he_o call_v behemoth_n the_o most_o cunning_a of_o all_o sophister_n that_o he_o be_v make_v to_o believe_v that_o unless_o he_o blaspheme_v or_o hate_n god_n he_o shall_v necessary_o and_o unavoidable_o commit_v more_o sin_n than_o that_o blasphemy_n or_o hatred_n of_o god_n amount_n unto_o now_o say_v our_o profound_a doctor_n in_o this_o case_n iste_fw-la simplex_fw-la secundum_fw-la judicium_fw-la rectissmae_fw-la rationis_fw-la tenetur_fw-la blasphemare_fw-la deum_fw-la vel_fw-la odire_fw-la ne_fw-la alius_fw-la incidat_fw-la in_o majus_fw-la peccatum_fw-la quoniam_fw-la secundum_fw-la communem_fw-la animi_fw-la conceptionem_fw-la de_fw-la duchus_fw-la malis_fw-la minus_fw-la malum_fw-la est_fw-la eligendum_fw-la cujus_fw-la causa_fw-la est_fw-la quia_fw-la in_o bonis_fw-la est_fw-la è_fw-la contrario_fw-la scilicet_fw-la quod_fw-la majus_fw-la est_fw-la magis_fw-la eligendum_fw-la that_o simple_a man_n according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o most_o right_a reason_n be_v bind_v to_o blaspheme_v god_n or_o to_o hate_v he_o lest_o otherwise_o as_o satan_n tell_v he_o he_o fall_v into_o a_o great_a sin_n for_o according_a to_o the_o common_a notion_n of_o man_n mind_n of_o two_o evil_n the_o least_o be_v to_o be_v choose_v the_o reason_n whereof_o be_v this_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_a of_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a the_o great_a be_v to_o be_v choose_v from_o these_o premise_n he_o conclude_v that_o to_o blaspheme_v or_o hate_n god_n be_v not_o of_o itself_o necessary_o and_o unalterable_o evil_a and_o sinful_a because_o there_o may_v happen_v a_o case_n wherein_o a_o simple_a man_n delude_v by_o the_o devil_n be_v bind_v to_o blaspheme_v or_o hate_n god_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o reason_n of_o right_a reason_n yea_o of_o the_o most_o right_a reason_n and_o that_o be_v of_o the_o best_a reason_n in_o the_o world_n 2._o in_o the_o same_o page_n he_o put_v another_o like_a case_n which_o he_o say_v be_v possible_a also_o without_o any_o forego_n fault_n of_o the_o person_n concern_v suppose_v a_o simple_a man_n swear_v to_o be_v entire_o obedient_a to_o his_o prelate_n or_o superior_n in_o all_o thing_n then_o that_o prelate_n or_o the_o devil_n transform_v into_o he_o command_v the_o simple_a man_n to_o hate_v or_o blaspheme_v god_n the_o poor_a man_n be_v certain_o catch_v in_o a_o snare_n but_o how_o shall_v he_o get_v out_o why_o according_a to_o bradwardin_n it_o be_v possible_a for_o he_o to_o get_v out_o safe_a by_o blaspheme_v or_o hate_v god_n in_o obedience_n to_o his_o superior_a and_o out_o of_o conscience_n of_o his_o oath_n for_o that_o be_v the_o least_o evil_a of_o the_o two_o and_o so_o comparative_o be_v no_o evil_a at_o all_o because_o to_o blaspheme_v or_o hate_n god_n be_v but_o one_o sin_n and_o that_o against_o god_n only_o multumque_fw-la excusatum_fw-la per_fw-la praeceptum_fw-la praelati_fw-la and_o it_o be_v much_o excuse_v by_o the_o command_n of_o his_o superior_a whereas_o he_o believe_v that_o in_o this_o case_n not_o to_o obey_v be_v a_o great_a sin_n because_o 1._o it_o be_v against_o his_o superior_a 2._o it_o be_v also_o against_o god_n who_o vicegerent_n his_o superior_a be_v 3._o it_o be_v a_o violation_n and_o breach_n of_o his_o oath_n and_o vow_n this_o be_v another_o of_o his_o demonstration_n that_o blasphemy_n and_o hatred_n of_o god_n be_v not_o of_o itself_o and_o unalterable_o evil_a because_o here_o be_v a_o possible_a case_n wherein_o it_o cease_v to_o be_v evil_a and_o a_o honest_a man_n outwitted_a by_o a_o knave_n may_v do_v it_o without_o sin_n in_o the_o next_o page_n he_o have_v other_o argument_n of_o the_o like_a nature_n to_o prove_v the_o same_o position_n but_o we_o be_v unwilling_a to_o have_v any_o thing_n more_o to_o do_v with_o he_o for_o he_o next_o suppose_v satan_n to_o be_v transform_v into_o christ_n himself_o and_o in_o that_o likeness_n to_o act_v his_o part_n so_o dexterous_o and_o effectual_o as_o to_o discharge_v a_o man_n from_o his_o duty_n to_o god_n and_o oblige_v he_o in_o conscience_n to_o commit_v the_o foresay_a wickedness_n for_o a_o time_n for_o fear_v of_o be_v necessitate_v to_o do_v it_o for_o ever_o and_o to_o all_o eternity_n now_o upon_o the_o whole_a we_o refer_v it_o to_o all_o man_n of_o common_a sense_n who_o have_v any_o true_a fear_n of_o god_n and_o love_n to_o christ_n and_o pure_a christianity_n to_o judge_v whether_o this_o be_v blessed_v or_o curse_a doctrine_n and_o whether_o england_n be_v behold_v to_o that_o man_n who_o commend_v such_o book_n to_o young_a minister_n but_o though_o we_o think_v the_o nation_n and_o young_a minister_n in_o it_o be_v little_a behold_v to_o he_o on_o that_o account_n yet_o we_o hope_v better_a thing_n of_o he_o than_o that_o he_o will_v ever_o become_v a_o prosylite_n to_o the_o popish_a religion_n or_o that_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o bradwardin_n he_o will_v ever_o embrace_v the_o foresay_a doctrine_n which_o many_o papist_n themselves_o abhor_v it_o may_v be_v he_o will_v say_v that_o this_o bradwardin_n be_v a_o english_a man_n that_o live_v long_o since_o and_o he_o do_v not_o ken_v he_o well_o but_o if_o he_o have_v ken_v he_o or_o his_o book_n either_o he_o will_v never_o have_v so_o commend_v he_o and_o if_o he_o be_v ingenuous_a to_o say_v so_o we_o readl_o admit_v the_o excuse_n for_o we_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v very_o true_a and_o find_v that_o in_o more_o thing_n than_o that_o one_o he_o write_v of_o what_o he_o do_v not_o understand_v and_o that_o too_o with_o a_o air_n of_o confidence_n that_o deserve_v a_o rebuke_n and_o withal_o we_o advise_v he_o for_o the_o future_a to_o forbear_v talk_v of_o old_a author_n and_o commend_v their_o book_n to_o minister_n for_o he_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v much_o acquaint_v with_o that_o kind_n of_o learning_n as_o he_o write_v in_o his_o letter_n pag._n 2._o that_o a_o great_a many_o young_a student_n have_v content_v themselves_o with_o study_v english_a author_n so_o we_o think_v it_o have_v not_o be_v ill_o for_o he_o if_o he_o have_v content_v himself_o with_o study_v such_o scots_a author_n and_o english_a too_o as_o never_o tread_v in_o the_o by-path_n of_o bradwardin_n saltmarsh_n or_o crisp_n we_o have_v mention_v some_o of_o that_o sort_n already_o to_o who_o we_o will_v now_o add_v a_o few_o more_o and_o first_o we_o commend_v to_o our_o author_n consideration_n a_o passage_n or_o two_o of_o a_o reverend_n learned_a and_o modest_a scots_a divine_a who_o he_o shall_v ken_n better_o than_o the_o old_a englishman_n bradwardin_n it_o be_v mr._n dickson_n once_o professor_n of_o divinity_n in_o the_o college_n of_o edinburgh_n who_o in_o his_o therapeutica_fw-la sacra_fw-la write_v thus_o 92._o dickson_n therapeutica_fw-la sacra_fw-la book_n 1._o chap._n 6._o pag._n 92._o together_o with_o these_o external_a mean_n mention_v before_o serve_v for_o draw_v on_o the_o covenant_n and_o go_v on_o in_o it_o the_o common_a operation_n of_o god_n do_v concur_v common_a to_o all_o the_o call_v both_o elect_n and_o reprobate_n and_o gift_n common_a to_o both_o be_v bestow_v such_o as_o illumination_n moral_a persuasion_n historical_a dogmatical_a and_o temporary_a faith_n moral_a change_n of_o affection_n and_o some_o sort_n of_o
external_a amendment_n of_o their_o outward_a conversation_n save_v grace_n be_v the_o special_a gift_n of_o god_n to_o his_o own_o etc._n etc._n and_o pag._n 95._o the_o lord_n make_v use_v of_o this_o outward_a and_o common_a covenant_v with_o all_o receiver_n of_o the_o offer_n as_o a_o mean_a to_o draw_v the_o confederate_a in_o the_o letter_n to_o be_v confederate_a in_o the_o spirit_n for_o the_o faith_n which_o he_o require_v as_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n he_o work_v in_o the_o elect_n if_o not_o before_o or_o with_o the_o external_a covenant_v yet_o undoubted_a after_o in_o a_o time_n acceptable_a and_o that_o by_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n the_o use_n whereof_o be_v grant_v to_o all_o confederate_n external_o and_o so_o as_o common_a illumination_n be_v a_o mean_a to_o that_o special_a spiritual_a and_o save_a illumination_n and_o dogmatical_a and_o historical_a faith_n be_v a_o mean_a unto_o save_v faith_n and_o external_a call_v be_v a_o mean_a to_o effectual_a call_v so_o external_a covenant_v in_o the_o letter_n be_v a_o mean_v most_o fit_a and_o accommodate_v to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o covenanter_n in_o the_o spirit_n here_o be_v preparation_n and_o disposition_n before_o either_o regeneration_n or_o justification_n plain_o assert_v by_o dickson_n then_o pag._n 99_o he_o enter_v upon_o a_o large_a discourse_n concern_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o he_o say_v that_o in_o receive_v of_o grow_v person_n into_o covenant_n there_o be_v three_o condition_n to_o be_v observe_v and_o distinguish_v one_o from_o another_o 1._o the_o condition_n of_o the_o person_n desire_v to_o be_v in_o covenant_n with_o god_n for_o reconciliation_n and_o grace_n through_o christ_n 2._o the_o condition_n upon_o which_o he_o be_v enter_v into_o covenant_n 3._o the_o condition_n require_v of_o he_o for_o evidence_v of_o his_o sincere_a covenant_v and_o pag._n 100_o he_o say_v all_o these_o three_o be_v express_v by_o christ_n in_o matth._n 11.28_o 29._o first_o they_o that_o labour_n and_o be_v heavy_a lade_v be_v they_o who_o christ_n call_v unto_o a_o covenant_n and_o fellowship_n of_o his_o grace_n this_o that_o he_o call_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o person_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o that_o which_o we_o call_v the_o disposition_n or_o qualification_n of_o the_o person_n second_o he_o propound_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n or_o come_v unto_o he_o that_o in_o he_o they_o may_v find_v full_a relief_n from_o sin_n and_o misery_n and_o in_o he_o full_a righteousness_n and_o felicity_n three_o he_o require_v of_o they_o who_o do_v embrace_v he_o by_o faith_n and_o so_o have_v accept_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n that_o they_o give_v evidence_n of_o their_o faith_n in_o he_o by_o take_v his_o yoke_n upon_o they_o take_v my_o yoke_n upon_o you_o say_v he_o mr._n dickson_n call_v this_o the_o three_o condition_n and_o say_v a_o little_a before_o that_o it_o be_v the_o covenanter_n up_o give_v of_o himself_o to_o christ_n government_n and_o obedience_n of_o his_o command_n this_o bring_v to_o our_o remembrance_n a_o passage_n in_o the_o catechism_n publish_v by_o the_o calvinist_n of_o marpurgh_n in_o the_o year_n 1606._o fidem_fw-la sufficere_fw-la ad_fw-la apprehendendam_fw-la salutem_fw-la non_fw-la autem_fw-la ad_fw-la cam_fw-la conseruandam_fw-la sed_fw-la amplius_fw-la requiri_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la emendationem_fw-la that_o faith_n be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o first_o apprehend_v or_o receive_v of_o salvation_n but_o not_o for_o the_o conserve_n or_o continue_v of_o it_o but_o there_o be_v moreover_o require_a amendment_n of_o life_n it_o remind_v we_o also_o of_o what_o we_o read_v in_o the_o four_o tome_n of_o monsieur_n claude_v posthumous_n work_n in_o the_o very_a entrance_n of_o his_o treatise_n of_o justification_n pag._n 75._o that_o there_o be_v disposition_n previous_a unto_o justification_n and_o that_o there_o be_v condition_n which_o god_n necessary_o suppose_v in_o man_n and_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v find_v actual_o in_o he_o and_o then_o that_o there_o be_v condition_n which_o god_n impose_v upon_o a_o man_n when_o he_o justify_v he_o to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v observe_v they_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v in_o like_a manner_n he_o distinguish_v in_o his_o historical_a defence_n of_o the_o reformation_n part_v 2._o chap._n 6._o pag._n 218._o of_o the_o english_a translation_n between_o the_o condition_n suppose_v to_o justification_n which_o be_v faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o the_o condition_n impose_v upon_o we_o by_o the_o lord_n when_o he_o justify_v we_o which_o be_v that_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v we_o live_v holy_o according_a to_o the_o law_n which_o he_o have_v give_v we_o but_o this_o on_o the_o by_o from_o dickson_n we_o pass_v to_o the_o learned_a charnock_n he_o say_v that_o beside_o the_o passive_a capacity_n that_o be_v 148._o charnock_n vol._n 2._o p._n 148._o the_o rational_a faculty_n there_o be_v more_o immediate_a preparation_n the_o soul_n must_v be_v beat_v down_o by_o conviction_n before_o it_o be_v raise_v up_o by_o regeneration_n there_o must_v be_v some_o apprehension_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o yet_o sometime_o the_o work_n of_o regeneration_n follow_v so_o close_o upon_o the_o heel_n of_o these_o preparation_n that_o both_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o work_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o hand_n the_o preparation_n of_o the_o subject_n be_v necessary_a but_o this_o preparation_n may_v be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n with_o the_o conveyance_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o afterward_o for_o several_a page_n he_o say_v no_o more_o than_o what_o we_o have_v say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o absolute_a causal_n connection_n between_o such_o preparation_n etc._n ibid._n p._n 148.149_o etc._n etc._n and_o regeneration_n nor_o any_o connection_n that_o be_v meritorious_a yet_o all_o along_o he_o assert_n preparation_n from_o charnock_n we_o pass_v to_o flavel_n 402._o flavel_v method_n of_o grace_n from_o pag._n 347_o to_o pag._n 402._o who_o spend_v two_o whole_a sermon_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o come_n ordinary_o to_o christ_n without_o the_o application_n of_o the_o law_n to_o our_o conscience_n in_o a_o way_n of_o effectual_a conviction_n this_o our_o author_n will_v grant_v as_o we_o perceive_v by_o his_o letter_n but_o mr._n flavel_n spend_v two_o sermon_n more_o to_o prove_v that_o this_o can_v be_v without_o the_o teach_n of_o god_n in_o the_o way_n of_o spiritual_a illumination_n from_o flavel_n we_o pass_v to_o firmin_n etc._n firm._n real_a christ._n p._n 6_o 7_o 8_o etc._n etc._n who_o show_v at_o large_a that_o man_n natural_o be_v not_o a_o subject_n fit_a or_o dispose_v to_o receive_v christ_n immediate_o when_o offer_v to_o he_o but_o before_o he_o will_v receive_v he_o there_o must_v be_v some_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n upon_o he_o to_o prepare_v he_o make_v he_o willing_a and_o glad_a to_o receive_v he_o and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o so_o but_o as_o our_o author_n will_v have_v it_o it_o will_v follow_v unavoidable_o that_o mr._n hooker_n and_o mr._n shepherd_n in_o their_o book_n about_o the_o soul_n preparation_n for_o christ_n and_o the_o several_a step_n of_o it_o viz._n conviction_n compunction_n humiliation_n etc._n etc._n write_v very_o great_a impertinency_n and_o which_o be_v worse_o do_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o hurt_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n for_o our_o part_n since_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v middle-way-man_n we_o think_v that_o to_o answer_v that_o character_n that_o be_v give_v of_o we_o we_o ought_v to_o avoid_v all_o extreme_n as_o well_o in_o this_o as_o in_o other_o matter_n and_o therefore_o we_o say_v that_o no_o more_o of_o the_o foresay_a preparatory_a disposition_n be_v simple_o and_o absolute_o necessary_a than_o what_o make_v the_o soul_n 1._o see_v its_o absolute_a need_n of_o christ_n and_o its_o be_v utter_o lose_v and_o undo_v without_o he_o 2._o what_o make_v it_o see_v and_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v abundant_a help_n and_o relief_n for_o lose_a sinner_n in_o christ_n that_o he_o be_v a_o alsufficient_a saviour_n and_o the_o only_a alsufficient_a saviour_n able_a and_o willing_a to_o save_v to_o the_o uttermost_a all_o that_o come_v unto_o he_o and_o unto_o god_n by_o he_o in_o the_o way_n prescribe_v in_o the_o gospel_n 3._o what_o make_v they_o thereupon_o desirous_a to_o have_v he_o and_o in_o some_o sort_n willing_a to_o receive_v he_o in_o all_o his_o office_n as_o he_o be_v offer_v desirous_a to_o have_v he_o and_o willing_a to_o receive_v he_o and_o his_o benefit_n with_o he_o upon_o his_o own_o term_n the_o term_n hold_v forth_o in_o the_o gospel_n of_o they_o who_o by_o the_o prevent_a grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v thus_o dispose_v there_o be_v no_o more_o require_v to_o be_v do_v by_o they_o in_o a_o